Take A Chance With Me | J.ww (18+)
Take a Chance With Me | j.ww (18+)

You could not believe that no one ever told you how frustrating (and beautiful) it was to be hopelessly captivated by a boy who thinks love is overrated.
one | two | three | four | five
Genre: college au, strangers to lovers, slow burn Pairing: Jeon Wonwoo x afab!Reader Warnings: fluff fluff, she fell first he fell harder kinda slow burn lol, mature themes, explicit sexual content (18+) Notes: 25k words. Part 3 of the Heartbreak Hotel series, but it can be read as a standalone fic. Listening to Take a Chance with Me by NIKI. Longer fic because writing this was my coping mechanism for the devastating tragedy that was Backburner. Disclaimer: This is a work of fiction. I do not know them personally and do not claim they would ever behave like they were portrayed in this story.
Playlist: Take a Chance with Me by NIKI, Forces by Japanese Wallpaper, I Think He Knows by Taylor Swift, Taglist: @katfaceu @mansaaay @scoupsjin @iarayara @gaslysainz @silvermist002 @ssmebody @alyssa19123456

Jeon Wonwooâs story began one hot evening, just two weeks into your senior year of college. It was at a partyâone where youâd arrived late after a supposedly quick pre-game session with your girlfriends at Leaâs apartment turned into a full-on mini-party on its own. Youâd almost ditched the party altogether, but Mina said she had to meet this guy at the party, or sheâd regret it forever. Of course, she was exaggerating at the time, but you went anyway.
You were the designated driver since you were the only one who didnât drink, which was because you were late even to the pre-game. Some things just never change, and being late is one of your many talents.
As soon as you pulled up to the driveway of the party venue, your friends rushed out of the car and into the house, leaving you behind to park. Just as you were stepping out of your car, you spotted Wonwooâtall standing next to the lamppost, and handsome under the yellow-orange glow of the light. He was attractiveâthe slight flush on his cheeks, his skin glowing under the lamplight, and even in simple square glasses and a plain white tee, he radiated a quiet confidence that made you pause.
He was cute. And he was heading toward you.
Why though? Did he want to talk to you? Maybe get your number? Oh my god. What are you gonna do?
You stood frozen, heart pounding in your chest as Wonwoo closed the gap between you. Sure, he wasnât the first guy to ever approach you, but he was cute, and it was ridiculous how fast you were crushing on him.
Heâs coming, you told yourself, glancing around casually, trying not to look too eager. But just as he was about three steps awayâbam! He hit the ground, limbs sprawled out in every direction.
You gasped, rushing over. âOh my God, are you okay?â
He groaned, kicked at the offending rock that had tripped him, and then dramatically flopped onto the grass as if it had betrayed him too.
You crouched beside him, waving a hand in front of his face. âHey, you alright?â
Wonwoo blinked up at the sky, glaring like the stars were personally out to get him. Then, locking his glassy eyes on yours, he said, âHi. My asshole friends abandoned me here.â He hiccupped. âIâm kinda drunk and youâre kinda gorgeous. Would you be so kind to help me out?â
Caught off guard by his random compliment, you chuckled. âHere, let me help you up,â you said, tugging his arm, trying to haul him back to a sitting position. âYou can walk, right? You were walking just now.â
âWalkingâs overrated,â he muttered, but with your help, he managed to get back on his feet, wobbling slightly.
You told him your name. âWhatâs yours? Where do you live? Do you need a ride?â
He opened his mouth to speak but someone suddenly appeared beside him, patting his chest. It was Hoshi. âThere you are, Wonwoo. Weâve been looking all over for you!âÂ
âHosh! You know this guy?â you asked.
âLook,â Wonwoo said, turning to you and pointing a very unsteady finger at his friend. âSee that? Fake friend. Never trust people who abandon you.â
âWhat are you talking about? Youâre the one who wandered off!â
Wonwoo smirked, leaning in as if sharing a deep truth. âPeople who gaslight you arenât your friends. Donât forget that.â
âI canât believe I ditched my girl for this. Okay, that's enough from you.â Hoshi slung Wonwooâs arm over his shoulder. âWhereâs that idiot Jun? Junhui!â
A second later, a man came jogging toward you. âFound him?â
âYeah, help me get him out of here,â Hoshi said, struggling to hold up Wonwooâs weight.
Jun smiled apologetically at you as they shifted Wonwooâs arm off your shoulder. âHe seems like a handful, but heâs nice sometimes.â
You stepped back, watching them as they wrangled him toward a black pickup truck. âHe doesnât seem that drunk, though.â
Jun chuckled. âYouâd be surprised. One time he got wasted and started working on a coding project. Finished the whole thing in one sitting.â
âDidnât even remember it the next day,â Hoshi added, making a mock exploding gesture at his temple.
You couldnât help laughing, finding it both amusing and adorable that a fine man like him would have such drinking habits.
âAnyway, thanks again,â Hoshi said, flashing you a quick grin as they started loading Wonwoo into the truck.
âBye, gorgeous lady!â Wonwoo called from the back seat, waving weakly. âI love you!â
Jun scoffed. âYou donât even know her name.â
âWho cares what you think, Jun? Youâre a fake friend!â
You couldnât help but laugh again, waving them off as the truck pulled away. Standing there, you found yourself thinking about Wonwooâstrangely intrigued by this cute, clumsy guy. But before you could dwell on it for too long, you heard Leaâs voice calling your name from inside the house.
âWhy are you out here alone? Letâs go!â
You skipped toward her, linking arms as she pulled you inside. âI just met the cutest guy ever.â

If Seungcheolâs face wasnât the first thing you saw as you stepped into the pool pavilion, you wouldnât have recognized him at all. His neat blue suit from yesterday had been swapped for something far more relaxedâcrisp white pants and a cream button-up that made him look more⌠approachable. He greeted you the moment you arrived, gesturing to the lounge chair beside his.
âI ordered cocktails,â he said, motioning to the bellinis on the table. âBut I took liberties since I didnât know what you like.â
âYou didnât have to include me, but thanks,â you smiled, taking one of the flutes.
Seungcheol watched you take your first sip before saying, âSo, what depressing tale would you be telling me today?â
You coughed, choking very slightly on your drink. âYou said you wouldnât judge.â
He shrugged, leaning back on the chair and fixing his eyes at the infinity pool. âI wasnât judging. My expectations are based on past experiences. In this case, the experience was yesterdayâs story. It was quite heavy.â
âExactly,â you nodded, setting your glass down. âYesterday was intense, so Iâm dialing it down today with a lighter story about my favorite ex.â
âYou have a favorite ex?â
âAs a matter of fact, I do,â you replied, rolling your eyes. âBut thatâs not the point. Do you wanna hear it or not?â
Seungcheol nodded. âPlease. Proceed.â
âAlright.â You took a sip of your drink before starting. âHis name is Jeon Wonwoo.â
THE DAY after you'd first met him at that party, youâd prioritized looking for Wonwoo. Living in the on-campus dorms gave you time to walk around the campus before your class. The problem was, you didnât know where to start. Your friends could swear they were sick of you, gushing about him and retelling the story of how he called you gorgeous and basically confessed his love for you in under five minutes of meeting each other.
âI know he was drunk, Jill. But people say you become more honest when youâre drunk,â you insisted, not even trying to hide your excitement as you scanned the cafeteria for any sign of him.
âWhatâs his name anyway?â Mina asked, scowling slightly as she watched you crane your neck, practically spinning in your seat.Â
âWonwoo. I donât know his last name.â
Mina scoffed. âWonwoo? Arenât you like neighbors?â
You stopped mid-scan, turning to her with wide eyes. âWeâre WHAT?â
As it turned out, Wonwoo lived in the on-campus dorm too. He and Hoshi were roommates, and you only knew this because, apparently, the guy Mina just had to meet at last nightâs party was Hoshi.Â
âYouâre telling me Iâve been looking around campus for him like a lunatic when heâs been right under my nose this whole time?â you asked, clutching your pearls.
Jill snorted into her iced coffee. âYouâve been obsessed for, what? Twelve hours?â
âThirteen,â you corrected. âBut whoâs counting?â
For a while, you tried catching glimpses of Wonwoo around your apartment complex. You even took slightly longer routes on campus, hoping to spot him by chance between classes or during meals. But every time, you came up emptyâno sign of him at all.
âJust where does this hot specimen hide his gorgeous self?â you grumbled. âItâs been three days.â
Lea watched you with a glimmer in her eyes. âThis is a first. Youâve had crushes before but never hyper-fixated on one until now.â
âRight? I was just thinking the same thing,â Jill affirmed.
âThereâs no one like him,â you gushed, tilting your head dreamily. âI think he might be the one.â
Mina choked on her drink. âYouâre not serious.â
You laughed, stroking her back gently. âOf course not. Iâm just having fun, guys. Relax.â
âAnyway, why donât you just ask Hoshi?â Jill suggested, sounding like the only sane one in the group.Â
Oh. Right. Hoshi. Why didnât you think of that earlier? You paused, considering the idea. It was practical. Sensible.
âDo you think thatâs weird? Just asking out of nowhere?â you asked, biting your lip.
âYouâre the one whoâs been running around campus like a headless chicken,â Mina pointed out dryly. âAsking Hoshi would be a lot less weird than that.â
You smiled at Mina, batting your eyelashes prettily. âAsk him for me.â
Mina swatted your hand away when you tried to hold her. âWeâre not talking right now. And no, I wonât tell you why.â
You grimaced. âWell, no oneâs asking!â
Jill laughed. âJust go to Hoshi. You guys are friends. And itâs not like youâre asking for Wonwooâs hand in marriage. Youâre just curious.â
âAlright, alright,â you relented, standing up from the table. âIâll ask Hoshi.â
Mina gave you a thumbs up as you left the cafeteria, heading out to start your quest. You just hoped your heart didnât explode from the anticipation before you got there.
You spotted Hoshi in the dance room, drinking water after practice. Perfect. You strode over, determined but trying to keep it cool. He saw you coming and grinned, clearly already knowing what this was about.
âWell, well, well,â Hoshi said, putting his bottle down and crossing his arms with a smirk. âWhat brings you to my humble corner of campus today? Or should I say... who?â
You rolled your eyes but couldnât help laughing. âOh, stop. I just wanna ask you something.â
âUh-huh,â he said, leaning in conspiratorially. âYouâre about to ask me where Wonwoo is, arenât you? Donât worry, Iâve seen this before. Youâre already head over heels. Itâs okay, itâs a common reaction.â
You tried to look annoyed, but your lips twitched, betraying you. âFine. Yes. Where is he?â
Hoshi raised his eyebrows, looking overly impressed with himself. âSee? Iâm basically psychic. I should be charging for my services.â
âJust tell me!â You lightly shoved him.
âOkay, okay,â he chuckled, clearly enjoying himself. âHeâs usually holed up in the tech building, doing nerd stuff. You know, coding, hacking the mainframe, whatever those guys do.â He waved a hand in the air. âOh, and Iâm gonna tell you this only because you and I are tightâyouâre gonna need to bring a snack. Wonwooâs been known to forget to eat when heâs in the zone.â
You crossed your arms, half-joking but half-serious. âWhatâs that supposed to mean? Do I need to worry about him starving to death before I even get the chance to talk to him?â
âMaybe,â Hoshi said, eyes twinkling. âBut hey, if he does, Iâll make sure his last words are something romantic. Like, âTell her... she was... gorgeous.ââ
âOh my god, youâre impossible,â you groaned, turning to walk away, though you couldnât help laughing.
He called after you, still grinning. âDonât say I didnât warn you! And heyâif you need a wingman, you know where to find me!â
Now you had a solid lead... and maybe a ridiculous wingman if things got really desperate. But most importantly, you had a plan: bump into him casually.

You spent the next few days timing your trips past the IT building. At first, it felt sillyâpretending like you were just âhappening to walk byââbut today, your patience paid off. There he was, standing just outside the doors, tapping away on his phone. Your heart fluttered the second you saw Wonwoo, that same flush you remembered from the night before creeping up your neck.
You were about to walk over, but then a group of people spilled out from the building, laughing loudly as they passed by Wonwoo. You turned away, worried someone might recognize you. As soon as they were far enough, you spun back to see Wonwoo, only to find him gone.
You sighed. âNext time.â
The next time cameâseveral next times, actually. You just couldnât land the perfect opportunity! The universe was against you, you could swear with how each encounter was always interrupted by other people, unexpected circumstances, and now, even the weather!
You stared at the sky with a deadpan expression. âReally? Just tell me you donât want me to shoot my shot with him, why donât you?â you spoke to the sky, as if it would respond.
You were supposed to do your routine attempt at âbumping into Wonwooâ but the rain started pouring right when you stepped out of your building. As if that wasnât bad enough, you didnât bring an umbrella with you. You sighed, scuffing your shoe against the pavement, debating whether to make a run for it or just wait it out.
âMaybe Iâm just unlucky?â you muttered to yourself.
Staring at your feet, you noticed a new pair falling into step beside you. You looked up and gasped audibly upon seeing Jeon Wonwoo standing there with an umbrella in his hand. He looked as handsome as you rememberedâneat appearance, well-kept hair, and his glasses that suited his face perfectly.
âWonwoo!â you exclaimed, making him glance at you.
He scanned you for a second. âIâm sorry. I donât think I know you.â
You told him your nameâclearly and in full. âWe met at the party last Friday,â you smiled, hoping heâd remember.
âOh, I met a lot of people that night.â
âYou called me nice and gorgeous?â you offered, gouging a reaction from him, but so farânothing. âAnd, uh, you also kinda said you love me.â
Wonwoo blinked, clearly taken aback. âDid I?â You saw the confusion in his expression, followed by a flicker of embarrassment. He looked away, his jaw tensing slightly. âSorry, I donât remember any of that,â he said, his voice softer, but there was no warmth in it. It felt more like a brush-off.
âYeah, itâs okay,â you said, waving it off casually. âYou were really drunk, so I guess it makes sense.â You grinned, hoping the playful tone might make the moment less embarrassing
He seemed like an entirely different person. He was fun that night, sweet even. Was that a one-off thing?
For a moment, neither of you spoke. The sound of the rain pounding on the concrete was oddly loud. You could feel your heart hammering in your chest, not entirely sure if you should say something or just let it go.
âWell, then. I should go.â
You nodded. âOf course. It was nice seeing you.â
You watched him walk into the rain, dry and safe under his umbrella. You couldnât help but scoff. If it was the Wonwoo youâd met that night, he would probably share his umbrella with you.
âWhat a bummer,â you muttered, looking down at your feet again as you kicked your tiptoes on the floor.Â
You kept your gaze there, replaying the encounter with Wonwoo and how awful it made you feel. You barely noticed the car that pulled over in front of you until you heard someone call your full name.
When you looked up, you saw Wonwoo in a car with his window rolled down. He turned to reach for something behind him before extending his umbrella out to you. You stepped into the rain for a second to grab it and then backed away with a confused look on your face.
âThank you,â you called out.
He just nodded, lips tight. âLeave it to the dorm lady when youâre done with it.â
âI will!â you replied, smiling at him.
As he drove away, you waved your hand in the air, your smile getting impossibly wider as you clutched his umbrella in one hand.
Just like that, your quest to make Jeon Wonwoo fall for you was on. You chased him aroundâwell, not really, but you seized every chance to talk to him. First, you personally delivered his umbrella to his dorm, which surprised him because obviously, he wasnât expecting it.
When you found him at the cafeteria that day, sitting alone at a table while working on something on his laptop, you walked over with your tray and casually slid into the seat across from him.
âYou look like you could use some company. Lucky for you, I could use some too. Letâs accompany each other,â you beamed, and he looked up from his laptop brieflyâjust to see who you were.
âIâm working,â he said, reverting his attention to his work.
You leaned forward with a grin. âI can multi-task. Do you want me to be quiet while you work?â
âDo what you want,â he said, noncommittal.
That made you perk up. As long as he didnât tell you to leave him alone, you were fine with being quiet. He was quiet too, but didnât seem to mind your presence. So you stayed, eating your lunch while on your phone and occasionally sneaking glances at him.
One time, you find him at the library sitting at a table with his headphones in, immersed in whatever he was working on on his screen, again. You plopped down next to him, spreading your books out.
âIt appears you might need some intellectual stimulation. Iâm excellent company for that too,â you said.
Without looking away from his screen, Wonwoo said, âPass.â
âAre you coding?â you asked, ignoring his refusal.
âI'm studying.â
âFor what?â you asked, leaning back to take a peek at his screen. âYou're reading a book on your laptop?â
âIt's convenient.â
You grimaced. âI bet you don't know what books smell like.â
âNo, and I don't really wanna know,â he said, facing you. âNow, can I have some peace and quiet?â
âOh, of course. Sorry. Iâll just be over here being pretty and smart. Donât mind me.â
He didnât respond, just nodded slightly, continuing to work. You watched him for a bit, playfully resting your chin in your hand.
âWow. My man is so cute and smart,â you muttered and Wonwoo suddenly glanced sideways at you.
You looked away immediately, opening a book, and burying your face in it. Wonwoo reached for it, taking it out of your hand and flipping it.
âItâs upside down,â he said before fixing his gaze on his screen again.
If it wasnât for your prior commitment to your friends, you would probably stay in the library until he leaves. Half-heartedly, you packed away your books and got ready to leave. Wonwoo noticed you then but didnât say anything.
You tapped on the table next to his laptop, making him take off his headphones and look at you inquiringly.
âI was thinking of watching a movie this weekend. Youâre welcome to join me.â
Wonwoo raised an eyebrow. âI donât watch movies.â
You shook your head disapprovingly. âGuess weâll have to change that about you.â
âGood luck with that,â he replied, putting his headphones back on.
He didnât seem put off by your forwardness, which was all that mattered to you because it didnât seem like you were bothering him. You were resolved to continue what you were doing.
Another time, you saw him at the gym when you were there with your friends. He was lifting weights, and you confidently strode over, showing off your figure in your gym outfit. You casually leaned over the machine he was using.
âWow, so youâre not just working out your brain, you work out your biceps too? Impressive,â you complimented.
âI come here to avoid conversations,â he deadpanned.
âYouâre still talking to me, so youâre not really doing a great job,â you chuckled.
Wonwoo sighed, but again, he didnât tell you to leave. He just continued what he was doing, and you watched for a minute, smirking. You were enjoying yourself, despite his lack of reactions.
âIâll be over there if you need me,â you said, winking.
âWhy would I need you?â he asked, resting his hands for a second.
You shrugged. âYou never know when you might.â
As you walked away, your friends were waiting for you with playful smiles. Mina said, âGirl, is it just me or are you kinda embarrassing?â
You scrunched your nose cutely at her. âI am, kinda. But itâs okay. Heâll warm up to me soon.â
You kept âaccidentallyâ bumping into him at random spotsâby the vending machine, dorm hallways, the library aisles, or even walking to class despite being in different buildings.Â
Sometimes, you felt a little embarrassed, but you liked how fun it was to tease him and flirt with him, despite his aloof attitude. He was gonna break sooner or later, and whatever he decided to do when that happened, you were prepared to accept. You had projected about a dozen different scenarios of him confronting you, but the reality was far more unique.
âLook at us, fate keeps putting us together. Ever think the universe is trying to tell you something?â you told Wonwoo when you coincidentally (for real this time), ended up in the same college seminar together.
He stared at you. âThe universe doesnât work that way.â
Unfazed, you shrugged, opening your laptop. âMaybe not, but itâs more fun to believe it does.â
Wonwoo closed his laptop and turned his body slightly toward you. âDo you have feelings for me?â
âYes,â you replied without missing a beat. âWasnât it obvious? I made sure youâd get the message though.â
He was quiet for a while, staring at you with a blank expression. After about thirty seconds, he asked, âWhy?â
You shrugged, keeping your smile. âBecause I do. Hey, you confessed your love to me first!â
âWhen did Iââ he stopped and then sighed. âI donât even remember any of that.â
âItâs okay. I remember enough for the both of us,â you teased, tilting your head with an innocent smile.
Wonwoo seemed to realize arguing wasnât going to get him anywhere. He shook his head slowly, as if accepting defeat. âDo whatever you want, but I wonât take responsibility for your assumptions.â
âYouâre not telling me to leave you alone?â you asked, raising your brows in genuine surprise.
He looked at you, baffled. âWhat?â
âYouâre not telling me to leave you alone,â you repeated, this time more matter-of-factly. âSo can I take that as a sign that I can keep following you around?â
Wonwoo grimaced, though it was more out of exasperation than irritation. âYouâre not seriously going to follow me everywhere, are you?â
You grinned mischievously. âNo, not really. But now that you mention it, maybe I should. What do you think?â
âWell then, leaveââ
âGood afternoon, sir,â you exclaimed upon seeing the professor walk in.

You lay sprawled on Leaâs bed, eyes fixed on the ceiling, scowling. Next to you, Lea was perched on her stomach, typing away on her laptop.
âThe guyâs a tough nut to crack,â you muttered, shaking your head in frustration. âDo you think⌠maybe heâs just not interested?â
âI thought he made that pretty clear with how he keeps brushing you off?â Lea replied, not looking up from her screen.
You sat up with a sigh just as Mina and Jill strolled into the room. âHe doesnât really brush me off though,â you argued. âMore like⌠he lets me do whatever I want.â
âYou guys talking about Wonwoo?â Mina asked and you nodded. âHoshi is inviting him over for movie night. Apparently, he said âyesâ.â
Your jaw dropped. âNo way? He said he didn't like movies!â
Mina nodded, pulling out her phone and flashing you the screen. âI don't know the details. Hosh says heâs wingmanning you,â she added with a grin.
You squealed, grabbing Lea by the arm. âQuick! Lend me a cute dress. No! I should just go back to my dorm and get one!â
âItâs a pajama party,â Jill interrupted, sitting beside you with a bowl of ice cream in hand. âYouâre supposed to wear pajamas.â
You paused, considering. âYes, but... like, do you have a cute nightgown? Those count as pajamas too, right?â
âI do,â Jill said, shaking her head, âbut Iâm not lending it to you. Youâll just complain about being cold.â
You slumped back onto the bed dramatically, face-first. âFriendship is dead. It never existed.â
Lea gasped. âJill! Not you eating ice cream on my bed!â
âOops, sorry!â Jill mumbled, quickly getting off the bed.
You rose when you heard ice cream, following Jill off the bed and asking to share. Mina was watching you with a soft smile on her lips. Then she said, âYou changed a lot, did you notice? Remember when you took a break from school when we were freshmen? You were so different back then.â
You rolled your eyes playfully, mouth full of ice cream. Jill answered for you. âThat part of her life was her character development arc. It wouldnât make sense to remind her of such a depressing time when sheâs done a really good job getting over it a long time ago.âÂ
You shot her a pair of finger guns and winked, appreciating the save.
âYouâre right,â Mina said, her expression softening as she came over to hug you. âIâm just so proud of you.â
Jill joined in the hug, and Lea followed soon after, sandwiching you in the middle.
Feeling warm and fuzzy, you leaned over and kissed Minaâs cheek, only for her to pull away, grimacing. âEw, sticky lips,â she complained, wiping the smudge of ice cream from her face.
âSorry,â you grinned, unapologetic.
The smell of popcorn filled the apartment as you rummaged through Leaâs closet, pulling out a cozy sweatshirt that still looked stylish enough for the movie night. âThis will have to do,â you muttered, tugging it on over your pajamas.
Lea, now in a matching set of flannel, raised an eyebrow. âYou really think Wonwooâs gonna notice your outfit at a pajama party?â
âI donât know,â you admitted with a shrug. âBut itâs better to be prepared.â
When you got back to the living room, the usual chaos of movie night was already in full swing. Hoshi and Jun were bickering over what movie to watch while Seokmin raided the snack stash.
Hoshi called out your name, waving you over with a mischievous grin. âLook who actually showed up.â
You froze mid-step. Wonwoo was sitting on the couch, casually leaning back with his arms folded across his chest, looking as aloof as ever. He was wearing pajamas, which was unexpected because you didn't think he'd be the type to engage in silly activities like this one, but he was cute nonetheless.
You blinked. âHeâs real,â you whispered, eyes wide, and Mina stifled a laugh. To Hoshi, you said out loud, âHosh, youâre my most favorite person in the world.â
Just as you were about to claim the spot next to Wonwoo, Jun swooped in and plopped down right where you were headed. Without thinking, you grabbed Jun by the arm. âMove!â
Jun blinked at you, laughing. âWhatâs going on?â
You picked up a throw pillow and hit Jun with it again and again until he moved out of your way.
âYouâre ruthless,â Jun chuckled, shaking his head but laughing anyway. âGood luck.â
âThanks,â you winked at him before turning to Wonwoo. He watched the whole thing unfold with mild amusement, shaking his head as you settled in.
âComfortable?â he asked, raising an eyebrow.
âVery,â you grinned, inching just a little closer to him. âFancy seeing you here. I didnât think youâd really show up. And in pajamas, no less,â you said, flashing him a wide grin.
Wonwoo glanced at his clothes briefly. âHoshi insisted,â he said flatly.
âWell, Iâm glad you came,â you said, batting your eyelashes in what you hoped was a cute way. âItâs not every day I get to sit next to my favorite person.â
Wonwoo raised an eyebrow, unamused. âI thought Hoshi was your favorite.â
You pouted. âYouâre no fun, you know that?â
âWasnât trying to be,â he replied, unbothered.
Determined to get some sort of reaction, you leaned closer, pretending to examine his face. âDo you always wear glasses?â you asked, feigning curiosity. âThey make you look extra smart.â
He pushed his glasses up his nose, side-eyeing you. âI am extra smart.â
You giggled, undeterred. âI bet youâre super smart, Mr. IT Genius. You could probably hack into all our phones right now.â
Wonwoo didnât seem fazed. âIâm not that smart. And hacking is illegal.â
âWell, thatâs good. Otherwise, youâd see all the photos I took of you before,â you teased, leaning even closer so your shoulder brushed his. âFor research purposes, of course.â
This time, Wonwoo did look at you, but only briefly. âResearch for what?â
âOh, just, you know,â you waved a hand vaguely, âstudying the behavior of elusive, handsome introverts.â
âSounds like a waste of time,â he replied dryly, though his lips twitched into a faint smile. Youâd almost missed it if you werenât staring right at him.
You grinned, feeling triumphant at his tiny show of amusement. âDid I just make you smile? Am I your source of happiness and joy now?â
âJust what is up with you?â he questioned, genuinely bewildered.
âIâm persistent. Havenât you noticed?â
âI have.â
Before you could respond, Hoshiâs voice boomed across the room. âMovieâs starting, everyone! Grab your snacks, get cozy!â
The lights dimmed further, and the opening credits began to roll. You wiggled in your seat, purposely leaning just a little closer to Wonwoo, your head brushing against his arm. Wonwoo glanced at you but didnât say anything, so you tilted your head playfully and whispered, âYouâre not gonna move away, are you?â
He looked away, clearly unimpressed. âWhy would I?â
âI donât know⌠because Iâm annoying?â
âYou are,â he said, eyes fixed on the screen.
âHey!â You nudged him with your shoulder, a mock pout on your lips. âIâm charmingly annoying.â
âIf you say so,â he replied.
Every now and then, youâd make little comments, trying to catch his attention. Wonwoo remained mostly unresponsive, only glancing at you occasionally, but he didnât seem bothered either. In fact, the more you nudged him or commented, the more relaxed he seemed.
Finally, you âaccidentallyâ let your head rest on his shoulder. âOops,â you whispered, eyes still fixed on the screen. âMy bad.â
Wonwoo sighed, but to your surprise, he didnât push you off. âYouâre really pushing your luck tonight.â
You grinned up at him, batting your lashes. âWhat can I say? I like taking my chances.â
âJust watch the movie,â he muttered, but you could tellâhe didnât actually mind.
With a satisfied smile, you snuggled a little closer, content with your minor victory.Â
After the movie, everyone stretched and yawned. Hoshi and Seokmin were already debating what to watch next, while Jill and Lea were dramatically complaining about the lackluster conclusion to the movie. You continued the night with laughter and conversations over light drinks. It was a school day, so no one was entertaining the idea of getting wasted.
You glanced at Wonwoo, who had stayed quiet throughout the night, except for a few quips here and there. You often flirted with him in between conversations, but as usual, he couldnât even be bothered.
When the group started to pack up, you took a deep breath and turned to him. âHey, do you wanna walk back to the dorms together?â you asked, keeping your tone light and hopeful.
You were the only ones going back to the dorms, since the rest of your friends lived off-campus, and Hoshi was obviously staying over at Minaâs.
Wonwoo stood up, gathering his things without making eye contact. âNo, thanks,â he said simply, pulling his jacket over his shoulder. âIâll head back on my own.â
Your heart sank a little, but you didnât want to let it show. âOkay, sure,â you said quickly, trying to brush it off with a casual laugh. âDidnât think youâd say yes anyway.â
He paused for a moment, adjusting his jacket before looking at you with a slight frown. âI just donât think itâs a good idea,â he said, his voice firm but not unkind. âYou donât need to follow me around.â
The words stung more than you expected, even though youâd been joking about it all night. You opened your mouth to reply, but nothing came out. Instead, you just nodded, forcing a small smile. âGot it.â
Wonwoo gave a short nod, then turned and headed for the door without a second glance. As you watched him leave, the lightheartedness youâd felt earlier fizzled out. You knew he wasnât trying to be cruel, but his rejection still hurt. Youâd pushed and pushed all night, and for a moment, it felt like maybe he was warming up to you. But now, it seemed like you had been wrong all along.
Mina noticed your shift in mood and walked over. âHey, you okay?â
You plastered on a smile, shrugging nonchalantly. âYeah, Iâm fine. Iâll head back now. See you guys tomorrow, okay?â
Your farewell was noisy, with your girls dramatically begging you to stay. There was a big smile on your lips when you exited the door, but as you headed back to your dorm, thoughts of Wonwooâs words stayed with you.Â
Maybe this little game of flirting wasnât as fun for him as it was for you. Maybe you were pushing too hard. Maybe this was more one-sided than you wanted to admit. It had been fun for the most part, a lighthearted chase that kept your heart racing, but now it was starting to feel tiringâdraining, even.
Your brows furrowed in frustration. âI should stopâŚâ you muttered under your breath, kicking at a stray pebble in your path. Then, with a small pout, you crossed your arms tightly over your chest. âMen ainât shit,â you grumbled, though the bitterness in your voice didnât quite match the half-hearted way you said it.
âNow, now, sweetheart,â said a greasy, slurred voice from behind you, giving you goosebumps all over. âYou donât really mean that, do you?â
How deeply distracted were you that you didnât notice the dragged-out footsteps behind you?Â
You tried to brush it off, but when the pace quickened and the slurred voice called out again, you got ready to run. Before you could, however, he grabbed your arm.
âNot so fast, sweetheart,â the man drawled, his breath reeking of alcohol as he eyed you. âWhatâs a pretty girl like you doinâ out here all alone?â
You shot him a sharp glance, trying to ignore the knot tightening in your stomach. âIâm not interested. Leave me alone,â you said, trying to swat his hand away but his grip tightened.
âIâm not so bad, am I? Câmonâjust a little company,â he slurred.
You yanked your hand back, eyes narrowing as you tried to fight him off. âLet go!â you snapped, your voice rising in panic.
The man chuckled, tugging you toward him. âWhatâs the rush?â
With a rush of adrenaline, you elbowed him in the ribs and stomped on his foot with all the force you could muster. But despite your efforts, he was stronger, and your heart pounded as he forced you back against a wall, your breath catching in your throat.
Just as you started to fear you couldnât fight him off, a sharp voice cut through the air. âHey!â
Before you could process what was happening, Wonwoo appeared, eyes blazing with fury. He swung a solid punch, landing it squarely on the guyâs jaw. The man stumbled, dazed, before collapsing to the ground with a heavy thud.
You stared in shock, chest heaving, barely registering the fact that Wonwoo had just knocked the guy out. He reached for your hand, his grip firm but reassuring. âLetâs go,â he said, his voice calmer now, though still laced with urgency. âBefore he gets back up. Come on.â
Grabbing his hand, you ran with him, your pajamas flapping awkwardly as the two of you bolted down the street. Imagine getting harassed in oversized Pucca pajamas? The ridiculousness of the situation wouldâve made you laugh if you werenât so shaken. Â
Your heart was still pounding, and you could feel Wonwooâs hand tightening around yours as you rounded the corner, not stopping until you were safely back inside the campus walls.
When you finally slowed down, panting, you glanced at him. âYou justââ you started, still breathless, âYou punched him!â
Wonwoo looked at you, still catching his breath. âYeah.â
The simple acknowledgment sent a strange warmth through you. You both stood there for a moment, the adrenaline fading. You were still catching your breath, trying to process everything that had just happened.Â
âThank you,â you breathed out. âYou really saved me back there.â
âI think you wouldâve done well by yourself even if I wasnât there. You probably broke a rib or two with that elbow,â he quipped, a small smile tugging at his lips.
âIs that a joke?â you questioned, pointing at his lips. âAre laughing at your own joke?â
He looked at you, his expression shifting back to his usual. âI didnât laugh. Next time, be more careful. Donât walk by yourself at night.â His voice was steady, almost scolding, but there was an unmistakable note of concern in it.Â
You blinked up at him, feeling your heart flutter in a way that had nothing to do with the scare you just had. He had just knocked out a guy without breaking a sweat, and now he was here, telling you to be careful. You couldnât help itâthe admiration in your eyes mustâve been painfully obvious because you were falling even harder for him.Â
Wonwoo noticed your dazed expression, the way your eyes lingered on him a little too long. His brow furrowed slightly before he sighed, clearly not amused by whatever was going through your head. Without saying a word, he took off his jacket and threw it over your face.
âGo back to your room,â he muttered, his voice carrying a hint of exasperation. âAnd stop being weird.â
You pulled his jacket off your face, blinking up at him with a grin, but he was already turning away, clearly done with the situation.
âHey! Wait for me! What if he comes back?â you called out, running to catch up to him.

This wasnât part of the plan. You were doing just fine on the sidelines of college life, navigating the highs and lows of being a student. You were content not drawing attention to yourself in places that didnât need your presence, happily enjoying the fun college functions from a distance.
Why did you have to join the student council on a whim?
âIâm so sick of this,â you muttered, hauling a large box of banners back into the storage room. Someone else could do it if only there were other hands available to help. Frustrated, you kicked the box, only to recoil in pain when it slammed against your foot. âOuch!â
âMove,â came a familiar voice from behind you. You glanced back just as Wonwoo pushed you aside, his movements smooth and efficient. With ease, he picked up the box and carried it to the storage room. You followed him, a wide smile creeping onto your lips.
âThanks a lot,â you said, genuine gratitude lighting up your tone.
Wonwoo gave you a side-eye. âNext time, ask other people for help if you canât do it by yourself.â
âThere was no one to ask! Everyoneâs busy with other stuff,â you defended, pouting at being scolded.
âYou didnât ask me.â
âYou were busy too!â
âThen you shouldâve waited until I was done.â
âWhat are you so mad about? I didnât ask because you were busy, and youâre not even in the council to begin with. This isnât your job.â
Wonwoo sighed, turning away. You followed him out, trying to keep up with his long strides. When he stopped, you halted too, glancing up at him. He stared at you for a moment, inspecting your appearance with an intensity that made your heart flutter.
âAre you checking me out?â you quipped, knowing how heâd react.
Wonwoo scoffed. âAre you heading back to the dorm now?â he asked, and you nodded. âWait here,â he said before climbing up the sound box to fetch his backpack. When he came back down, he pulled out a jacket and handed it to you.
âOh, Iâm good. I have a jacket in my bag,â you chimed, dismissing it.
âForget it, then,â he said, putting it away, but you stopped him.
âNo! Iâll take it! Mineâs not warm enough,â you grinned. âThank you!â
Wonwooâs deadpan expression remained as he rolled his eyes. âGo get your things. Weâre leaving.â
You blinked, confusion washing over you. âHuh? Are we leaving together?â
âWeâre going the same way anyway. Might as well just go together,â he said, glancing away with a slight furrow in his brows. âYou might get yourself in trouble again.â
âWeâre on the campus, I donât think anyone would try something like that here,â you stated, but you couldnât help smiling.Â
After what happened the other day, Wonwoo seemed to be warming up to you now. It felt good to know that he cared enough to walk home with you and ensure nothing happened again.
âIf you donât want to, suit yourself,â he said, turning his back.
âNo, wait! Letâs go!â
You rushed back to where youâd left your things, bidding hurried goodbyes to your student council friends. When you returned, Wonwoo was still waiting for you. He sighed at the sight of your massive grin and started walking first, so you ran to catch up with him.
âWait for me,â you called, giggling as you intertwined your fingers with his. He didnât shake you off.
âPut the jacket on. Itâs cold.â
âOooh, Jeon Wonwoo,â you teased, peeking at his face. âAre you trying to get promoted to green flag?â
âIâm not a red flag,â he said monotonously.
âWhen did I say you were?â
âYou kept implying it.â
You chuckled lightly. âYou know, I heard that people who claim that theyâre not a red flag tend to be⌠well, a red flag.â
âJust wear the jacket. I donât want to be responsible for you if you get hypothermia.â
You pouted, backing away to put on the jacket. As you did, you unlinked your fingers with his but Wonwoo chased after it, tightening his hold. âLet go. I need to put this on.â
âHuh?â he blurted, retracting his hand like heâd been electrified. His fingers slipped away too quickly, but the warmth lingered on your skin.
âDo you hate it that much?â you scoffed as you wore his jacket. It was warm and smelled like him. âAnd no oneâs getting hypothermia in this weather. Itâs not that cold.â
âCanât we just walk quietly and pretend we donât know each other?â
âNo, we canât,â you chimed, linking your arms with his. âItâs impossible because we look like a couple right now.â
âNo, we donât.â
âYes, we do,â you sang, leaning your head on his shoulder as the two of you strolled down the dimly lit pathway. You allowed yourself to savor the moment, your steps perfectly in sync with his, a warmth spreading in your chest as you walked together under the soft glow of the pathway lights.
The school festival was coming up, and you got to work with Wonwoo on the preparationsâyou as a student council member, and him with the IT Club. Your tasks were different, not overlapping at all but you were content just being in the same space with him.Â
While Wonwoo worked with a clubmate on the sound systems, you were assigned to help with decorations and logistics. Despite your tasks not overlapping, you made a point to stroll by his area often, a smile lighting up your face whenever your eyes met. Wonwoo would only nod to acknowledge you, but each exchange was a little jolt of happiness for you.
The hours passed in a blur of laughter and hard work. You organized tables, hung streamers, and made sure everything was in its right place, all while stealing glances at Wonwoo and his team.
During a break, you found yourself near the sound booth, leaning against the wall to catch your breath. Wonwoo was adjusting a microphone, and you couldnât help but watch. He looked effortlessly cool, his concentration making him even more attractive.
âDonât just stand there, youâre making me nervous,â he teased when he noticed you staring.
You flushed, momentarily caught off guard. âJust appreciating the view!â you shot back with a grin.
âRight,â he deadpanned, shaking his head. âJust donât break anything.â
âOh please, Iâm the master of decorations! No broken things here!â you replied with mock seriousness.
As the day wore on, the festival started to take shape, and your excitement grew. You loved this sense of unity, the way everyone worked together to bring a festival to remember. It was very tiring, wearing out your bodies with work and your minds with how much you kept brainstorming for the best ideas. But as the sun began to set, and the field was transformed into a magical scene with the glow of fairy lights, all your labor had been worth it.
âLooks great,â Wonwoo said, suddenly at your side.
You nodded, unable to suppress your grin. âIt does, doesnât it? You guys did a great job too. The LED displays are cool.â
âWe did what we do best. You guys at the student council worked harder, coming up with cool ideas and stuff,â he replied, giving you an appreciative nod.
Feeling a rush of warmth at his compliment, you could only smile. âLetâs just say we make a great teamâeach in our own way.â
Wonwoo shrugged. âSome of the council guys were a bit pompous and bossy but, yeah, youâre right.â
You laughed at that, hitting his arm and letting your hand stay there. Wonwoo didnât flinch, even flashing a small smile as you both stared at the fruit of your labor.

The school festival was finally here, and the campus was alive with excitement. You could feel the energy in the air, the smell of food wafting from the stalls, and the cheerful sound of laughter and chatter.Â
The day kicked off with a formal ceremony in the main courtyardâwith the school band playing a march. Students and faculty gathered under a large banner that read Welcome to the 00 University Festival! You stood with your friends, cheering as the college president gave a short speech about the importance of community and collaboration.
âLet the festivities begin!â he concluded, and the crowd erupted into applause.
As the ceremony ended, you raced to the game booths that had been set up around the campus. Your friends challenged each other to various gamesâring toss, balloon darts, and a giant inflatable obstacle course. The laughter was infectious, and you lost track of time as you tried your hand at each game, reveling in the thrill of friendly competition.
In between the fun, you made your way to the sound booth, where Wonwoo and Jihoon were busy setting up for the afternoon performances.Â
âSnacks for the most hardworking people on the whole campus,â you called out, showing them the containers of food and drinks.
âThanks a lot!â Jihoon said with a bright smile, taking a snack before returning to his controls. âYouâre so thoughtful.â
Wonwoo, on the other hand, merely nodded, a small smile breaking through his serious demeanor. âThanks,â he said, taking a sip from the drink you brought him.
âYou guys are doing an amazing job! Canât wait for the party tonight!â you exclaimed, your excitement bubbling over.
âWeâll make sure itâs a good one,â Jihoon replied, his enthusiasm infectious.
âAre you kidding me? DJ Woozi is here. I know itâs gonna be a good one,â you chimed, pointing finger guns at Jihoon.
The latter couldnât help grinning at your compliment. âYou should come over more often! Itâs not all boring work here.â
âOh, of course. Iâll be here often. Gotta make sure you stay hydrated. Youâll need the energy to keep up with the crowd.â
Jihoon tilted his head slightly, unconvinced. âPretty sure Wonwoo will appreciate it,â he chuckled, nudging Wonwooâs arm.
You just smiled, winking at Wonwoo before you bid your goodbyes and promised them youâd be back.Â
As the afternoon rolled in, the booths and games continued. You lost yourself in the fun, but each time you never forgot to stop by the sound booth, checking in on Wonwooâand Jihoon because he happened to be there too.
âWant a break?â you asked during one of your visits. âYouâve been at it for hours!â
Wonwoo looked at you, the serious expression on his face softening slightly. âIâm good. Just need to make sure everything is perfect for tonight.â
You nodded, admiring his dedication. âWell, I brought more snacks,â you said, pulling out the waffles you got from one of the booths.
âThanks,â Jihoon said, taking the bag with a grateful smile.
Soon, the day transitioned into the evening. Students gathered around the stage, and the sounds of music filled the campus. You joined your friends, dancing and enjoying the beats as Jihoonâmoniker, Woozi got the crowd hyped.
You could see Wonwoo in the sound booth, focused on the music, and your heart swelled with admiration. Every now and then, you made your way back to him, offering him drinks or just sharing a quick laugh about something funny happening in the crowd.
âHaving fun?â he asked during one of your visits, his gaze momentarily leaving the controls.
âDefinitely! This is amazing!â you replied, breathless from dancing.
âGood. Just keep your distance from the speakers,â he said and you could see a playful glint in his eyes despite his deadpan expression.
âDonât worry, Iâm not here to break anything,â you shot back, grinning.
The night continued to unfold, filled with dancing, laughter, and an electric atmosphere. Later, when the party wound down and the crowd began to disperse, the working group gathered again for a final clean-up.
âI canât believe how well everything turned out,â you said, looking around at the remnants of the festival.
âYeah, it was a success,â Jihoon replied, glancing at you. âThanks for all your help today.â
âOf course! It was so much fun being part of it,â you said, feeling a warmth spread through you.
The student council president clapped his hands together to grab everyoneâs attention. âBefore we call it a night, how about we plan a weekend escapade to celebrate our hard work? A little break after all this?â
Cheers erupted from the group, and you felt your heart race at the thought of spending more time with everyone, especially with Wonwoo.
âGood to know everyoneâs up for it!â the president said, smiling. âFor now, let us pack up what needs to be packed up, make sure not to miss anything, and then we can head to the after-party.â
You helped pack up the necessary stuff that could not wait until tomorrow. Luckily, the university had a cleaning personnel who would handle the rest, so your work was lighter. Afterward, the group dispersed, some resigning to their dorms to rest, and the others heading to the after-party at an off-campus frat house.
Your friends were waiting for you outside the dorm, and you all hurried off to the party. It was a big shift from the organized chaos of the festival to a more liberated vibe. The living room was packed with students, and the atmosphere was thick with the smell of alcohol, vape, and perfumes mixed with the faintest hint of sweat. Colorful lights dance across the walls, along with the bodies of partygoers moving along to the catchy music.
âLetâs grab some drinks!â Mina shouted over the music, and the group surged toward the makeshift bar set up in the corner. You followed, adrenaline coursing through you as you filled a cup with whatever was on offer.
With drinks in hand, you scanned the room, your eyes searching for a familiar face. And there he wasâWonwoo, standing in a corner, a drink in hand, watching the chaos unfold with an amused expression. His dark hair glimmered under the strobe lights, and he stood out in his plain white t-shirt.
Without hesitation, you weaved through the crowd, clutching your drink tightly. âHey, you made it!â you said, trying to sound casual despite the excitement bubbling inside you.
âNot willingly,â he replied, taking a sip from his cup.
âWant to join the madness?â you asked, gesturing toward the dance floor, where a group of students swayed and grinded, lost in the music and alcohol.
âPass,â he said, not even giving it a thought.
âI knew it, but why did I still ask?â you mumbled, chuckling over your cup.
Across the hall, you spotted Mina and Hoshi, getting touchy as they danced to the rhythm. You smiled at the sight of them, lifting your cup in greeting when Hoshi waved at you.
âThey look so in love, itâs annoying,â you snorted, but your fond smile was anything but snarky.
âDoesnât look like it to me,â Wonwoo commented, making you glance at him.
âYou donât see it?â you questioned, genuinely perplexed. âItâs so obvious. They canât even get their hands off of each other.â
Wonwoo hummed, but he looked unconvinced. âIt could be the alcohol, you know, making them hot and touchy⌠and horny. You donât need love to feel that way.â
You observed him for a while, trying to gouge what was in his mind but to no avail. You could tell though that he was a cynic. âYou donât believe in love, do you?â
âLove is overrated,â he said, sipping from his cup.
You just nodded, acknowledging his admittance and respecting his opinions. âAre you sure you should be drinking? You canât handle your liquor.â
âOh, this is plain soda,â he replied, showing you the contents of his red cup. âIâm not drinking. Canât afford to make stupid mistakes.â
âMistakes? Like calling some stranger gorgeous and confessing your love for them?â you quipped but there was a bit of snark in your tone.
âYeah, pretty much.â
That dampened your mood. âWell, good luck then,â you said, bumping your cup gently against his. âEnjoy the party.â
As you turned to walk away, Wonwoo grabbed your hand, stopping you in your tracks. âWhere are you going?â
âIâm gonna go have some real fun. Dancing, drinking, maybe some games because Iâm quite good at them,â you smiled, motioning to the chaos around you. âItâs a party after all.â
He released your arm and you couldnât quite tell what expression he was wearing. âHave fun then.â
âThanks. I will,â you said with a salute before disappearing into the crowd.
You didnât see him around the house after that, neither did you try looking for him. You just enjoyed the night, trying to take him off of your mind and the nagging thought at the back of your mind that going after him would not result in anything but disappointment.

Early Saturday morning, you gathered at the school plaza with other members of the festival working group. You were set to leave at 9 am, and despite the hangover from last night, you managed to make it there on timeânot without a splitting headache that a handful of other members seemed to share.
âAlright?â asked Wonwoo, appearing beside you with a slight scowl as you pressed your fingers to your forehead, trying to ease the pounding pain.
âHi!â you greeted him, smiling from ear to ear only to wince again. âOuch. My head is killing me.â
âAnd whose fault is that?â Wonwoo smirked.
Before you could retort, Jihoon hopped over, a small plastic bag in hand filled with water and medicine. âHere. Itâll help with the hangover,â he offered, his expression earnest.
You groaned dramatically, pouting at him. âThanks a lot, Jihoon. Youâre a literal angel.â
Jihoonâs cheeks flushed at the compliment, the corners of his mouth twitching into a bashful smile. âThatâs⌠Well, itâs not much.â
âNo, I mean it. You really are an angel. Your skin is so fair, itâs blinding,â you said, squinting playfully as if his glow was too bright to bear.
âTake the medicine if your head is hurting that much,â Wonwoo chided sternly on your other side, making you turn back to him.
âOh, right,â you mumbled, opening the bag. You popped a pill in your mouth and fumbled with the bottle of water, struggling to twist the cap off. Just as Jihoon was about to help, Wonwoo snatched the bottle from your hand, effortlessly twisting it open.Â
âThanks,â you said, raising the bottle in appreciation. You mirrored the gesture to Jihoon, grinning widely. âThanks, my angel.â
Soon, the rest of the group arrived, ready for the trip. Since the university didnât sponsor this outing, you all had to pay for expenses and transportation. Some students had cars and agreed to carpool with those who didnât.
Without giving it much thought, you headed straight to Wonwooâs car, making yourself comfortable in the front seat like you belonged there.
He didnât seem to mind, though he did ask, âAre you carpooling with me? I thought you were going in Jihoonâs car.â
âOh, he didnât invite me. Weâre not that close,â you replied, buckling your seatbelt. âBesides, Iâd rather ride you.â
You noticed his hand freeze mid-air, the awkward silence that followed stretching between you like a taut string.
âWith you!â you said in a panic. âI meant to say, Iâd rather ride with you.â
Wonwoo nodded with a blank expression. âYeah. I know,â he said coolly.
You chuckled awkwardly, looking outside his window and mentally cursing yourself. When the other cars started driving away, you realized that Wonwoo still hadnât turned on his engine.
âAre we waiting for someone?â you asked and he nodded.
âThere he is,â he said, gesturing at Seokmin, who was rushing toward you with a backpack slung over one shoulder.
He yanked the backseat door open and hopped in immediately. âWow. Thanks for not leaving me behind.â
âYou had three minutes left,â Wonwoo replied, a hint of exasperation in his tone as he finally fired up the engine and drove out of the campus.
The car ride was filled with laughter as Seokmin took charge of the music, blasting upbeat tracks that made it impossible not to move. He sang along, his voice rising above the catchy beats, and every now and then, he added exaggerated dance moves from the passenger seat, making you and Wonwoo laugh.
âCan you believe we actually survived the festival?â Seokmin exclaimed, throwing his hands in the air. âI thought weâd end up in a full-on food fight or something! Just imagine itâstreamers flying, popcorn everywhere, total chaos!â
You chuckled, picturing the scene, however impossible it was. âYeah, and weâd be the ones cleaning it up afterward.â
âExactly! But it wouldâve been legendary!â Seokmin insisted, a mischievous glint in his eyes. âNext time, Iâm bringing a water balloon launcher. Whoâs in?â
Wonwoo rolled his eyes but couldnât hide his amusement. âYouâd just end up hitting someone with that.â
âDetails, details!â Seokmin waved off the concern. âIt doesnât matter as long as you had fun and made lots of memories.â
He stopped and gasped quietly as he watched you extend the iced coffee toward Wonwoo so he could take a sip. You noticed him only when Wonwoo had taken a sip and youâd placed the coffee back in the cup holder.
âWhat?â you asked.
âWhy donât you guys just kiss in front of me?â
Wonwoo scowled, glancing briefly at his friend. âWhy would we do that?â
âRight?â you blurted, snorting. âDidnât know you were kinky like that, Seokmin.â
Seokmin leaned back in his seat. âYou guys. You know thatâs not what I mean.â
You felt your cheeks heat up. âI was just being nice, okay?â
âRight, just being nice,â Seokmin teased, wiggling his eyebrows. âBut I mean, he didnât look like he was complaining. When did he stop complaining about you invading his space?â
âOh, heâs never complained to me before,â you replied, you didnât even need to think about it.
Seokmin gasped dramatically. âHe did not?â
âNot that I remember,â you said, peering at him in the backseat. âAnd I remember every single interaction we had,â you added with a proud smile.
âBut he doesnât like it when people are in his space,â said Seokmin, pointing at Wonwoo with a surprised expression. âHe hates it.â
You shot a glance at Wonwoo, who kept his eyes on the road, his expression unreadable. âEnough, Seokmin. Youâre gonna make her think Iâm enjoying this.â
âArenât you?â he shot back with a grin. âI mean, who wouldnât want a cute girl following him around, giving him drinks and all that?â
âExactly!â you exclaimed. âLook at me! 1-800-hot-n-fun.â
Seokmin leaned between your seats, pointing a finger gun at your temple. âExcuse me, maâam. Youâre under arrest for being 10 out of 10 and 2 hot 2 handle.â
You and Seokmin burst out laughing, and even Wonwoo couldnât hide his grin.
âSettle down, or I'll kick you two out of the car,â Wonwoo chided.
âIs it strange that Iâm more invested in your relationship than you are?â Seokmin asked after a momentâs pause.
You shushed him. âShut up. No one is more invested in our relationship than I am!â
As the miles rolled by, the countryside unfolded around you, with fields of wildflowers swaying in the breeze. Just as you were nearing the location, you had to stop at a gasoline station because Seokmin needed to use the restroom.
âHow about you?â he asked, just as Seokmin had left the car.
âNo, Iâm good,â you replied, glancing at him and found him scrolling through his phone. He just hummed, eyes fixed on his screen.
You took in his featuresâhandsome, of course, with that natural air of confidence he always seemed to carry. His jawline gave him an angular, sharp look, yet there was something almost delicate in the way his eyes softened when he looked at you, or the way his lashes fell gently against his skin when he blinked.
Your gaze fell to his lipsâsymmetrical with a defined cupidâs bow and subtle but natural fullness. There was that ever-present slight curve. It wasnât quite a smile, but it always seemed like it was on the verge of one, and it made you wonder what itâd take to coax a real one out of him.
âYou know,â you said, voice dripping with playful mischief, âyou have really pretty lips.â
Wonwoo paused, blinking as if processing your comment. His eyes flicked to your mouth, and for a second, the silence between you seemed to thicken. But then he shifted his gaze back to the road, brushing off your words like it was nothing. âThanks,â he replied, as nonchalant as ever.
At the back of your mind, you wonder if it was as soft as it appeared to be.
âCan you tie a cherry stem into a knot with your tongue?â you asked again, leaning a little closer with an innocent smile on your lips.Â
You knew exactly what you were doingâthe teasing tone, the loaded question. It was playful, sultry, but in a way that you could brush off if he didnât bite. You fully expected his usual indifferent response.
Then again, there was the possibility that maybe heâd pick up your hints this time, and maybe heâd do something about the tension that was building up between you right at this moment. Maybeâ
âI donât think anyone can,â he answered flatly, the corner of his mouth barely twitching.
You threw your hands up dramatically. âOh my god. What was I expecting?â you groaned, looking away.
Wonwoo remained quiet, so you glanced back at him. You met his eyes, dark with an intensity that you hadnât seen before. His jaw was clenched tightly, and somehow it felt as though you had done something wrong.
âWhat?â you asked, cocking an eyebrow at him.
He didnât say anything. He just unbuckled his seatbelt and leaned towards you. Before you could react, he was already cupping the back of your head and crashing his lips into yours.
You were momentarily stunned, grappling with the sensation of his lips pressing against yours. He tightened his grip on your head, tilting it just right, allowing him to kiss you more deeply. It was firm, yet slow, like heâd been thinking about it for much longer than youâd realized. You closed your eyes as you melted into him, kissing him back with a rhythm that made your skin prickle with the warmth that was slowly creeping into your chest. Your heart raced in its cageâso wildly that you swore Wonwoo could feel it echoing in his own.
When he finally pulled back, his expression was unreadable, but there was a flicker of triumph in his eyes.
âSo?â His voice was low, teasing. âCan I?â
You blinked, still a little dazed. âHuh?â
He smirked, the smug confidence catching you off guard. âCan I tie a cherry stem into a knot with my tongue?â
Your mouth fell open in disbelief before you burst out laughing, the tension between you now crackling in the air. âY-yeah,â you stammered, the flustered grin spreading across your face. âAbsolutely. Youâre amazing. Basically a pro. Heh.â
Luckily, Seokmin arrived before the mood could get any more awkward. He did notice the shift between you, but when he asked about it, you just brushed it off. Deep inside, you were reeling in the bliss of kissing Wonwooâwait, noâof being kissed by Wonwoo.
You soon arrived at the villa, its warm stone exterior blending beautifully with the surrounding trees. There was a welcoming warmth to it, and you hoped it was as comfortable as it looked.
âWow, this place is massive,â Seokmin commented dramatically as he stepped out of the car, looking up at the villa as if it were a five-star resort.
Just then, a girl with beautiful long hair and a bright smile appeared on the porch. âHey, guys! You made it!â she called out, waving enthusiastically.Â
âClaire?â Seokmin blurted, evidently surprised.
âSeokmin!â she squealed, running to him for a quick hug.
You noticed Wonwoo stiffen slightly at the sight of her, his expression shifting as he watched the reunion. It didnât go unnoticed by you, but Claire seemed blissfully unaware.
âWhat are you doing here?â Seokmin asked, backing away with a neutral expression.
The student council president came out before Claire could respond. âYouâve arrived! Good. Good. Have you met Claire?â he said, smiling at Claire. âClaire here was kind enough to offer their family villa, so this is going to be our home for the weekend.â
âOh, I know these guys. We go way back,â said Claire, referring to Seokmin and Wonwoo.
Prez introduced you to her and Claireâs smile widened as she extended her hand to you. âNice to meet you!â
âNice to meet you too!â you replied, trying to match her enthusiasm. You were still processing the sudden tension in the air, especially from Wonwoo.
âCome on in! The others are waiting.â
As the president guided you inside, you watched as Claire held Wonwoo by the arm and walked ahead of you. You felt a sudden surge of annoyance at her, clearly out of jealousy.
Seokmin leaned in to whisper in your ear. âThatâs Wonwooâs ex.â
The revelation hung in the air as you watched them. Wonwooâs expression was blank, while Claire remained upbeat.
As you stepped further inside the villa, you couldnât shake the feeling that this weekend was going to be more complicated than you had anticipated.

The first order of business in the villa was dinner. After arriving early, everyone gathered around for snacks and chatted, but by dinner time, the group split into twoâthose helping in the kitchen and those exploring the villa.
You hadnât planned on helping out in the kitchen, but when you noticed only a few had volunteered, you reluctantly joined in. A mistake, you realized, as your eyes drifted to the living room where Wonwoo sat with Claire beside him. She looked far too comfortable, leaning in close as they talked, her laughter ringing out over the murmur of conversations. Your chest tightened at the sight, the feeling of irritation and insecurity creeping up on you.Â
Itâs fine. Heâs allowed to have a past, you told yourself, gripping the knife a little tighter as you sliced through a watermelon. But does she have to sit so close? Exes shouldnât be too nice to each other. And does she have to appear now?
âHey, focus!â Jihoonâs voice cut through your thoughts as he nudged your shoulder. âYouâre going to cut yourself if youâre not careful.â
âOh, shit,â you muttered, blinking down at the cutting board. You had nearly reached the end of the watermelon and were dangerously close to nicking your finger
âWhy are you so distracted?â Jihoon teased, glancing briefly at Wonwoo and Claire before turning back to the stove. âRelax. Heâs yours. Iâm sure of it.â
You let out a dry laugh, though your stomach twisted. âYou canât be so sure. Not with his ex clinging to him like that.â
âI donât know... Heâs heading this way now, so I think Iâm right,â Woozi replied, stirring the contents of the pan with a knowing smile.
Before you could process Jihoonâs words, Wonwoo appeared beside you. His presence made the kitchen feel smaller.
âWhat are you doing?â he asked, his gaze fixed on the watermelon as he gently nudged you aside. His body brushed against yours as he took the knife from your hand, his touch lingering a little longer than necessary. He began slicing the fruit with ease.
Your pulse quickened. âWhat do you think?â you pouted, stepping aside but staying close enough for your elbows to brush every now and then.
âI think youâre trying to get my attention. Getting hurt and all,â he replied, making your jaw drop. He laughed at your expression. âArenât you?â
âI wasnât hurt,â you told him, rolling your eyes although your heart was fluttering at the sight of his smile. âAnd even if I did want your attention, I donât need to hurt myself to get it.â
Wonwoo nodded, agreeing. âYouâre right. You donât need to. Itâs one of your many talents.â
You took a paring knife and started slicing the pears, scooting closer to Wonwoo so your elbows touched slightly. âSeokmin told me Claire was your ex.â
Wonwoo hummed in response, not looking up from the watermelon he was slicing. âShe is. Freshman year.â
You stopped the urge to roll your eyes. âSo you did believe in love.â
âJust because I had girlfriends before doesnât mean I believe in love.âÂ
âYou know, I heard somewhere that people who claim not to believe in love tend to be the most hopeless romantic individuals to ever walk the Earth.â
âWhoever said that was lying,â he replied, shoving a small piece of watermelon in your mouth, his fingers lightly brushing your lips.
You chewed slowly, feeling a blush creep up your neck. The way Wonwooâs eyes lingered on your lips didnât go unnoticed by you. On an ordinary day, that would be a good opportunity to make fun of him, but after what happened in the car earlier, you could not bring yourself to tease him.
He cleared his throat, looking away and resuming his task. You glanced around, suddenly feeling self-conscious and didnât know where to put your hand, so you grabbed a slice of watermelon.
âItâs very sweet. Try it,â you said, offering the slice to him.
Without looking, Wonwoo leaned sideways to you and took a bite of the fruit. You instantly regretted that because now you were the one staring at his lips, recalling the vivid imagery of earlierâs kiss.
âWonwoo!â a voice called out from the living room, snapping you out of your imaginations. It was Claire and she didnât have anything to say, just waving at Wonwoo with a smile.
You glanced at Wonwoo who didnât even bother to show a reaction, let alone respond.
âDoes it bother you that sheâs here?â you asked, your voice softer now, more curious than playful.
He paused, his gaze finally meeting yours. âNo, it doesnât bother me.â
âSo youâre unbothered?â
âIâm unbothered.â
You tilted your head, eyes narrowing in playful suspicion. âYou know, I heard that people who say theyâre unbothered tend to be... well, very bothered.â
Wonwoo let out a small, resigned laugh, finally setting the knife down. His gaze softened as he turned to face you fully. âAgain with your odd wisdom.â He raised an eyebrow, his tone teasing but warm. âWhatâs next? People who claim to have allergies arenât actually allergic?â
âOh, I wouldnât go that far,â you shot back, laughing. âAllergies are backed by science. But being bothered when youâre in the same room as your ex? Thatâs a little harder to prove. Just like not believing in love.â
âYouâre too smart for your own good,â he said sarcastically. âI might need to practice my patience so I can keep up with your antics.â
âOh? Youâll do that instead of telling me to leave you alone?â
Wonwoo scowled lightly. âDid you forget what Seokmin said? That I hate it when people bother me?â he asked, reaching to tuck a few stray hairs behind your ear. âI donât hate you, so I wonât tell you to leave me alone.â
Your heart skipped a beat, but before you could reply, Claireâs voice carried over from the living room, breaking the moment. You glanced over, watching as she stood up, her eyes briefly meeting Wonwooâs before she looked away.
I have a feeling in my gut that sheâs doing this on purpose, you thought to yourself, narrowing your eyes slightly at the other girl.
âDinnerâs almost ready!â someone called from the kitchen, pulling your attention back.
Wonwoo didnât seem to notice Claire at all as he turned to the stove to help Jihoon with the final touches. After that, you moved to the backyard just as the evening settled into a cool, dusky warmth.Â
The smell of barbecue filled the air, rich and smoky. The large grill crackled and popped as steaks, skewers, and vegetables sizzled under Seokminâs watchfulâalbeit playfulâeye. You could hear him narrating the process dramatically to anyone who would listen, complete with sound effects.
âAnd now, behold! The perfectly grilled steak, sizzling under my masterful technique,â Seokmin proclaimed, waving his spatula like a wand.
You sat at one of the long picnic tables on the patio, nursing a cold drink and watching the light from the grill flicker across the faces of your friends. Wonwoo sat beside you, quietly observing the scene while Claireâwho had rejoined the groupâchatted animatedly with some others across the table. You were trying not to feel too aware of her presence, but it was impossible not to glance her way now and then.
âHey, are you going to give me a hand, or are you just going to sit there looking cute?â Seokmin called to you with a playful wink.
You snorted, setting your drink down and getting up. âYou know, you canât use that line for everything.â
Seokmin shook his head, grinning widely. âWho said itâs a line? You just happen to look cute all the time, okay? Now, get over here and help me with the skewers.â
Wonwoo chuckled beside you, and you gave him a teasing glance as you headed toward the grill. âDonât laugh too much, or youâll be next on Seokminâs target list.â
âIâll pass,â Wonwoo replied dryly, though his eyes followed you with a hint of amusement.
You reached the grill, where Seokmin handed you a plate of marinated vegetables to arrange onto skewers. âSo, howâs it going over there with Mr. Mysterious?â Seokmin asked in a low voice, wiggling his eyebrows suggestively as he leaned closer.
You raised an eyebrow at him. âWhat do you mean?â
Seokmin nudged you with his elbow. âDonât play dumb. I saw how you and Wonwoo were looking at each other earlier. Youâre practically making out with your eyes.â
You rolled your eyes, trying to hide the smile tugging at your lips. âOkay, you win. You are more invested in our relationship than me.â
âI told, didnât I?â he asked, giving you a knowing grin. âIâve known the guy for ages. Heâs not usually this... I donât know, present. Itâs like he actually pays attention when youâre around. Normally, heâs off in his own world.â
You opened your mouth to respond but were interrupted when Wonwoo appeared at your side, casually grabbing one of the skewers you had just finished assembling.
âHey!â you exclaimed, laughing. âYouâre supposed to let them cook first.â
Wonwoo raised an eyebrow, popping a piece of bell pepper into his mouth. âItâs good raw.â
Seokmin gasped dramatically. âItâs what?â
Wonwoo flicked Seokminâs forehead, discouraging his thoughts. âTake your mind out of the gutters.â
Seokmin rubbed the part of his forehead that Wonwoo flicked, grinning at you and wiggling his eyebrows knowingly. You playfully swatted his arm with the back of your hand.
âSo dirty-minded, go away,â you scolded though you were grinning.
Wonwoo smiled softly, and for a moment, the noise of the group around you faded. His gaze held yours, and you felt that familiar warmth spread through your chest again, that quiet tension that always seemed to hover between you.
Seokmin cleared his throat loudly, breaking the moment. âOkay, lovebirds, enough with the eyes! Weâve got mouths to feed.â
You blushed, turning back to the skewers as Seokmin gave you a teasing grin. He leaned over and whispered, âSee? What did I say? Sparks.â
âShut up,â you muttered, though you couldnât help smiling.
Seokmin sighed reminiscently. âMan, Iâm so single. I wish the others were here too.â
âRight? I wouldâve been fun to have them here,â you noted, remembering your rowdy friends.
âWe should do this again with them. Say âyesâ.â
âYes,â you replied, not missing a beat. âAbsolutely, yes.â
As the grilling continued, you could hear laughter and chatter all aroundâSeokminâs over-the-top narrations, Jihoon offering sarcastic commentary from where he stood near the grill, and Claireâs voice chiming in from the table, still carrying that same vibrant energy she had when you first arrived.
Once the food was ready, everyone gathered around the picnic tables, the platters piled high with grilled meats, skewers, and sides. The scent of charred meat and fresh herbs mixed with the cool evening breeze. The plates clinked as people passed around dishes, and conversations overlapped in the comfortable chaos of friends enjoying a good meal.
You found a spot next to Wonwoo again, your plate full, though you were more focused on the way his knee brushed against yours under the table. Each little touch felt like a secret between the two of you, unnoticed by everyone else.
Across the table, Prez pointed his fork at you and Wonwoo, grinning. âYou two are awfully close for two people who arenât dating.â
You almost choked on your food, but Wonwoo calmly sipped his drink, completely unfazed. âWeâre just eating, Prez,â he said, but his hand landing gently on your thigh under the table contradicted his statement.
âYeah, and sitting suspiciously close while doing it,â Seokmin quipped, wiggling his eyebrows. âJust saying. The grill master knows things.â
âYou really need to stop calling yourself that,â one of your companions teased, shaking her head at Seokmin.
Seokmin gasped dramatically. âExcuse me, maâam, but this title is earned through years of culinary excellence andââ
âHey, Claire, do you think Seokmin deserves the title of âgrill masterâ?â someone called from the other end of the table, cutting off his exaggerated speech.
Claire, who had been quiet for a while, looked up with a smile. âI mean, he did a good job, but I wouldnât go that far.â
The group erupted into laughter, and Seokmin threw his hands up in defeat. âFine, fine. Iâll accept the demotion.â
As the laughter died down, you felt Wonwoo lean a little closer, thumb rubbing your thigh over your jeans. He didnât say anything, but the way he quietly stayed by your side, even in the midst of all the noise, spoke volumes.
The evening carried on, full of easy laughter, good food, drunk anecdotes, and the soft glow of lanterns that lit up the patio as night fell. You couldnât remember the last time you felt this light, this content, as the warmth of the barbecue wrapped around you like a comfortable blanket and the buzz of alcohol numbed the cold air hitting your skin.
âYou alright?â Wonwoo asked, placing a hand over your back as you were resting your head on the table.
Everyone had gone back inside, save for a few others who continued their drinking by the poolside. You and Wonwoo were the only ones left at the table, mainly because you were tired and he didnât want to leave you.
You sat up and stared at him. âMy god, youâre so handsome. I could kiss you.â
âYouâre drunk.â
You snort. âIâm not drunk. I never get drunk!â you paused, staring at your index finger. âActually, I did get drunk⌠once, twice? Was it thrice? I donât remember. Anyway!â
You took a deep breath and tucked your hair behind your ears. âEven if Iâm not drunk, I always want to kiss you.â
âYou do?â he questioned, amused.
You stood up and stepped closer to him, he remained in his seat, watching you with soft eyes. You wobbled a bit but Wonwoo caught your arms firmly, keeping you steady. You held his face with your hands, squeezing his cheeks slightly. âDonât dodge this, okay?â

âSo? Did youâŚâ Seungcheol paused, hesitating. There was a hint of embarrassment on his face as he finished his sentence. â...kiss?â
You laughed, lolling your head back. âYouâre a grown-ass man and youâre hesitating to say the word âkissâ?â
Seungcheol shifted uncomfortably in his seat, looking away with a small pout. That expression intrigued you, surprised to know he could make such a face. Then again, what do you really know about him?
âItâs not my fault. The mood of your story is quite⌠Iâm not sure what to call it. Innocent? In a way?â
âI get what you mean. But to answer your question, we didnât kiss,â you jeered, rolling your eyes. âI blacked out and forgot, but he told me that we didnât kiss. He dodged it.â
âYou believed that?â
You shrugged. âWonwoo had no reason to lie about it. I mean, thatâs just out of character for him.â
âI see,â said Seungcheol, thinking. âSo? What happened next?â
You groaned, taking a big sip of your drink before continuing. âRemember Claire?â
âYeah, we do not like her.â
âGood, sheâs annoying,â you said, rolling your eyes. âShe was even more annoying the next day after that...â
Prez had a hike planned for the next day. The area was a popular spot for its beautiful river up the mountain, so you all agreed to go. When you heard a knock on your door, you had expected it to be Wonwoo, but instead, Jihoonâs smile greeted you.
âLooks like weâre carpooling today,â he said.
âWe are?â you asked, blinking in confusion.
Jihoon gave a half-shrug. âYeah, I thought the same. Figured youâd be with Wonwoo, but apparently, he already left.â
âWonwooâs gone?â You tried to keep your voice steady, masking the sting of disappointment that followed his words.
âYeah, he headed out early with Prez, Claire, and a few others,â Jihoon explained, noticing the subtle shift in your expression.
You forced a smile, quickly masking the sinking feeling in your chest. âWell, canât be helped. Iâll just grab my jacket.â
âTake your time. Calumâs not even ready yet, so weâve got a bit.â Jihoon leaned against the doorframe as you moved back inside to grab your things.
âWho else is with us?â you asked, emerging with your jacket and a small backpack.
âJust Calum,â Jihoon replied with a smirk. âWhich means we get to listen to him complain the whole way.â
You snorted, shaking your head. âWell, we better go before he decides to ditch us too.â
As the three of you arrived at the foot of the mountain, you spotted the rest of the group already gathered around the guide for a quick briefing. Your eyes immediately searched for Wonwoo. Sure enough, he and Seokmin were at the front of the line, both seemingly unaware that youâd arrived. A strange tension filled the air as your gaze lingered on Wonwoo, but you quickly pushed it aside, focusing on the hike ahead.
âOkay! Everybody ready to go?â the guide asked and everyone responded with a chorus of yesses.
You saw Wonwoo scanning the crowd behind him, stopping only when he locked eyes with you. There was a subtle change in his expression, something softer as if in recognition of you. He patted Prez on the back, saying something to him before he jogged toward you.
âThere you are,â he said with a small smile. âI thought you werenât coming?â
âWho said that?â you asked, genuinely perplexed.Â
âClaire. She said she heard you tell someone that you werenât coming out today.â
You smirked, annoyed at Claire and her obvious attempt to sabotage you. âAnd you didnât think to check with me?â
Wonwoo shrugged. âI didnât wanna wake you. You seemed pretty drunk last night.â
The annoyance you were feeling suddenly dissipated, replaced by shame as you recalled trying to kiss him last night. You looked away, covering your mouth in shock.
âAre you shy?â he asked, chuckling lightly. âThatâs new.â
You tutted at him and hit his arm playfully. âShut up.â
He chuckled, casually taking your sling bag and wearing it across his chest. âIâll take this.â
You grinned playfully. âAre you a gentleman now? Is it because youâve fallen in love with me?â
âNo. I just donât want to deal with you complaining about a heavy bag halfway through the hike.â
The hike started out smoothly, with the morning sun filtering through the trees. Your group moved at a comfortable pace, with chatter filling the air as you climbed higher, nearing the mountainâs scenic river. Claireâwho somehow found a way to walk next to Wonwoo and you, was leading the conversation close to Wonwoo, which irritated you more than youâd like to admit.Â
âAre you alright?â Jihoon asked quietly, his voice pulling you from your thoughts. He flashed you a knowing smirk, catching the direction of your gaze.
âIâm fine. Just⌠taking in the view,â you replied quietly.
Jihoon didnât seem convinced but dropped the subject. âWell, weâre almost there. Save your energy. Thereâs still the climb up to the ridge,â he added, pointing ahead to a steeper incline.
You felt a hand on your back and glanced at Wonwoo who just smiled at you. As the group made its way up, the conversation turned to reminiscing about old hiking trips. Claire, of course, found her way into this again, laughing as she talked about a time she and Wonwoo had hiked a similar trail.Â
âWonwoo was such a show-off back then,â she said with a laugh, nudging him. âYou remember that, right?â
You could hear the hint of nostalgia in her voice, but Wonwoo barely reacted. He just gave a polite nod, keeping his eyes on the trail ahead and his hand on your back.Â
âI was younger. Probably didnât know better.â
Claire smiled at his response, but there was something about the way she looked at himâlike she was waiting for more. It twisted something in your chest.
âYeah, when youâre younger, you make stupid decisions,â said Seokmin, laughing a tad bit louder than necessary. âYouâre so relatable, man. I try to forget my stupid decisions too. Especially the worst ones.â
You didnât know the context, but you grasped the picture Seokmin was trying to insinuate about Wonwoo and Claireâs history. For some reason, it made you feel better about yourself to know that Wonwooâs friend didnât like his ex.
After another thirty minutes of steady climbing, you reached the ridge, overlooking the crystal-clear river that sparkled in the distance. Everyone took a breath, the beauty of the view silencing the group momentarily.
âThis spot is perfect!â Prez called out, breaking the stillness as he bounced forward with his phone, ready to take pictures. âLetâs get some photos, everyone!â
Some of the group began to gather for a group shot, while others wandered around, taking in the scenery. You stayed back, wanting to enjoy the moment without Claireâs constant presence.
After a few photos and a lot of teasing from Seokmin, everyone dispersed, walking back toward the trail to continue on. As you moved ahead, you glanced at Wonwoo, who seemed quieter than usual, lost in his thoughts. You wondered if it was Claire getting to him, or if he was just being his typical reserved self.
The hike continued around the river, with a playful challenge thrown in along the way. Seokmin, always full of energy, dared anyone to balance on a fallen log that stretched across a small stream.
âCome on, whoâs got the best balance?â he called out, clapping his hands together. âItâs a rite of passage for this hike!â
Prez shook his head, grinning. âIâm out. Iâll leave that to the younger ones.â
Seokmin turned to you, eyebrows raised. âHow about you? I bet youâve got some hidden skills.â
You shook your head. âHave fun without me.â
âCome on!â Seokmin grinned, motioning for you to step up. âJust once. Letâs see who wins.â
âFine. You asked for this,â you told him, taking off your jacket and tying it across your hips.
The challenge began, and as you wobbled your way across the log, the others cheered from the sidelines. Seokmin was right behind you, steady but focused, and you could feel his presence as you tried not to lose your balance. A few slips here and there, but you made it across, jumping off the log with a victorious grin.
âNot bad, not bad!â Seokmin cheered, clapping his hands as he followed behind you, landing with ease.
You were catching your breath when you noticed Claire, standing a bit too close to Wonwoo, again sharing some kind of inside joke. Your stomach twisted as you watched them, the sight more irritating than the thought of falling off the log.
Feeling a bit frustrated, you turned away, pretending to check your bag but realized it was with Wonwoo. You sighed again, and then suddenly you felt a hand on your shoulder. You turned to see Wonwoo, holding out his water bottle.
âYou didnât bring water, did you?â he said simply, eyes soft but unreadable. âDrink up.â
You blinked, caught off guard by the gesture. âOh⌠thanks.â
âDonât wanna have to carry you all the way back.â
You rolled your eyes, knowing he was only trying to downplay his concern for you. âOf course, of course.â
You took the bottle, your frustration softening as you realized heâd been paying attention. It wasnât much, but you loved it anyway. You basked in itâin his attention which seemed to be on you most of the time.
He didnât say anything more, just walked beside you as the group started unloading their stuff for a quick lunch by the river. The others went for a swim, led by Seokmin, as expected. You quietly took a sip of the water, the cool water hydrating you as you glanced over at Wonwoo in his usual quiet demeanor. He handed you a sandwich that heâd peeled open for you. Even though he wasnât saying much, his actions were enough, and you couldnât help but wonder what exactly was going through his mind.

After lunch, Seokmin managed to talk you into looking for wild berries. The guide mentioned there were plenty of wild berries around, so it sounded like a harmless adventure. You walked with Seokmin, Jihoon, and a few others, but Wonwoo decided to sit this one out, saying he was a bit tired. You glanced back at him, wondering why he didnât want to join. He simply gave you a small wave before sitting by the waterâs edge, his quiet presence still lingering in your thoughts.
As you wandered deeper into the trees with the group, the sound of laughter and rustling bushes filled the air. Seokmin was practically bouncing from one patch of greenery to the next, exclaiming every time he found a small cluster of berries.
âLook, these are the good ones! I told you I had an eye for this!â he boasted, holding up a handful of bright red berries.
âOkay, okay! We know youâre the berry master,â you teased, bending down to pluck a few yourself. But as you reached for another low-hanging cluster, you misjudged your footing on a slippery rock. The moss-covered surface gave way under your shoe, and before you could catch yourself, you stumbled forward, scraping your hand against a sharp branch. A sharp sting shot through your palm, and you hissed in pain, clutching your hand.
âOw!â You winced, inspecting the cut. It wasnât deep, but a small trickle of blood appeared, and the sting was enough to make you stop in your tracks.
âAre you alright?â Jihoon was quick to notice, walking over to check on you.
You waved him off with a sheepish smile, trying not to make a big deal of it. âYeah, I just slipped on a rock. Itâs not that bad.â
Seokmin, always the dramatic one, rushed over too. âWhoa, are you bleeding? Should we get you back? Do we need a first aid kit? A stretcher?â
You rolled your eyes but couldnât help laughing. âIâm fine. I just need to wash it off.â
But despite your attempts to brush it off, the sting lingered, and you felt a little foolish for not watching your step. Jihoon offered you his handkerchief to wrap around your hand for now. âHere, itâs not much, but it should help until we get back.â
âThanks,â you muttered, feeling a bit more embarrassed than hurt.
After a while, the group decided it was time to head back to the riverbank. As you approached, the sight of Wonwoo sitting alone by the water came into view. He was gazing out at the stream, looking serene.
When he saw you returning, his eyes instantly dropped to your hand, the makeshift bandage catching his attention. Without a word, he stood up and walked over to you, his brow furrowed slightly.
âWhat happened?â he asked sternly, his gaze locking onto yours.
âOh, I just slipped. Itâs nothing, really,â you said, trying to sound casual, though the throbbing in your palm said otherwise.
Wonwoo, however, didnât seem convinced. Without asking, he gently took your hand, carefully peeling back the cloth to look at the cut. His touch was soft but firm, and you felt your heart skip a beat as he inspected the wound.
âYou should clean this properly,â he said, his voice low, a hint of concern in his tone.
âI will, itâs justââ you started, but he was already pulling you toward the riverâs edge.
He crouched down by the water, motioning for you to follow. âCome here, rinse it off.â
You knelt beside him, dipping your hand into the cool water. The sting intensified for a moment before the fresh stream washed the dirt and blood away, leaving the cut cleaner. As if on cue, the guide appeared with a small first-aid kit, handing it to Wonwoo. He opened it, cleaning the wound with a steady hand before covering it with a Band-Aid.
âHere,â he murmured. âThis should be better than that cloth.â
You glanced at your hand, grateful, but Wonwoo's next words caught you off guard.
âYou said you donât need to hurt yourself to get my attention?â he asked, an almost teasing glint in his eyes.
You blinked, caught between amusement and exasperation. âI didnât do this on purpose! And you werenât even there when it happened. How is this an attempt at getting your attention?â
âYou came here with a wound,â he replied, his gaze softening slightly. âThat got my attention.â
You scoffed, shaking your head. âI didnât ask for you to clean it up or worry about me.â
For a moment, his brow furrowed as he studied you. âYou donât want me to?â
âWhat? Of course, I do!â you stammered, caught off guard by the sudden shift. âBut if youâre just going to hold it against me, no thanks. Iâll take care of myself.â
Wonwoo didnât let the comment slide. âAs if you have to take care of yourself. Lots of people will do that for you,â he said, scoffing as he nodded at Jihoon who was chatting animatedly with other people in a distance. âLike Jihoon, for example.â
You felt a spark of irritation flare. âGod, I hope youâre saying that because youâre jealous.â
Wonwooâs scoff came out a little too loud, and he quickly cleared his throat. âWhy would I be jealous?â
âExactly,â you said, pouting as you stood up abruptly, a wave of frustration rising in your chest. âYou donât like me enough to get jealous of other guys.â
Wonwoo stood up too, his expression softening just slightly. âLetâs go back together, okay? Donât go with Jihoon.â
You crossed your arms, turning away. âDid you hear me complain when you came here with your ex?â
Wonwoo fell quiet for a second longer than expected. When you turned to look at him, he was smiling. You raised an eyebrow, making him chuckle lowly.
âYou don't have to worry about her.â
âI'm not worried,â you denied, huffing. âWhy would I be worried? I'm a 10. 2 hot 2 handle.â
Wonwoo chuckled, pulling you by the waist and wiping your damp forehead. âDon't hang out with Seokmin too much, you're starting to sound like him.â
You didn't say anything, too caught up in the feeling of being close to him to form a coherent sentence.
âCome on. Letâs pack up,â he said, quietly dismissing whatever it was that just happened between you.
After the hike, you all went back to the villa to pack and get ready for the long drive home. Everyone seemed to be moving in slow, tired motions, still buzzing with the high of a day spent outdoors, but ready to settle into the comfort of a car seat. You grabbed your jacket and water bottle, feeling a slight soreness from the hike, but overall content with how the day had gone.
When Wonwoo finished loading your stuff in the trunk, you made your way to the shotgun and sat there while waiting to leave. Claire appeared at your window, startling you a little. She was smiling as she knocked.
âHi, Won,â she greeted as if she couldnât see you there. âYou didnât forget your promise, right? That youâd give me a ride back?â
âOf course,â Wonwoo replied.
âYay, thank you!â she said, opening the front seat door, much to your confusion.
Claire stared at you for a while, making you feel self-conscious all of a sudden. You gave her an inquiring look, which she returned with a raised eyebrow, gesturing for you to get off.
âDo you want me to get off so you can sit here?â you asked aloud, genuinely curious. âSeriously?â
âWhatâs going on?â Wonwoo asked, making you glance at him.
Claire spoke before you could respond. âOh, I donât mean to offend you or anything. Itâs just⌠well, I get woozy when I sit in the backseat for long drives. Wonwoo knows this. I hope you understand.â
Her words seemed innocent enough, but her tone grated on you. You glanced at Wonwoo, half-expecting him to shoot down the excuse for what it wasâa blatant attempt to sit next to him. Instead, he gave a simple nod, signaling for you to move.
Your heart sank. Seriously? It was obvious what she was doing. Glaringly obvious. And yet, he was just... fine with it? You bit back your frustration, forcing a polite smile as you got out of the shotgun seat.
âOh, thanks a lot! Youâre such an angel,â Claire gushed as she slipped into the seat beside Wonwoo. Her voice was dripping with exaggerated sweetness, but there was a glint of malice in her eyes that you were sure only you could see because her back was on Wonwoo.
âI have snacks,â she added to Wonwoo, pulling out a bag. âWe can share it. I know you like to nibble on something when driving.â
Still silent, deadpan, you slid into the backseat, trying not to let it bother you. You stared out the window, hoping somethingâanythingâwould distract you from the irritation building up. Then you spotted Seokmin jogging toward the car, his usual carefree grin plastered on his face.
That was a relief. Seokmin is fun so youâd probably be too busy laughing to even notice the two other people in front of you.
You moved to open the door for him, but he went straight to knock on Wonwooâs window.
âWhatâs going on? I thought you said you were too tired to drive?â Seokmin called through the rolled-down window.
âYeah, I was waiting for you,â Wonwoo replied, his voice light as he opened the door to step out.
You blinked in confusion as Seokmin slid into the driverâs seat, chatting animatedly. Wonwoo made his way to the back, where you sat still trying to piece together what just happened. When he reached for the door, you instinctively tugged it shut, surprising both of you.
âOh, sorry,â you blurted, opening it again quickly, your cheeks flushing. Wonwoo raised an eyebrow but said nothing, just chuckled softly as he pulled the door open himself.
He settled next to you, draping an arm over the seat. âWhereâs our blanket?â he asked, glancing around.
âOurââ you started, then caught yourself. âItâs⌠uh⌠there!â
You pointed toward the compartment near the gear shift. Wonwoo reached for it, undoing the fold and casually covering himself with it.
âHey, I brought that for myself,â you protested, though there was no real heat behind your words.
âIâm cold. If you need it, you can scoot closer,â he teased, the corners of his mouth twitching into a small smile.
âDonât just hog it,â you complained, tugging the blanket but Wonwoo tutted, glaring at you playfully before scooting closer to you and covering you with the blanket.
Seokmin, who had been fiddling with the carâs controls, sighed dramatically, tilting his head toward you two. âIâve never felt so single until now.â
You rolled your eyes, but the smile tugging at your lips was undeniable. As the car finally started moving, you caught Claireâs icy stare in the rearview mirror. She was not enjoying the ride at all, and you hadnât even left the parking lot yet.

The ride back to the university had been a blur. After the initial chatter and laughter, the exhaustion from the hike finally caught up to you. You vaguely remembered the sound of Seokminâs playful banter, Claireâs chipper voice fading in and out, and the muffled conversations that filled the car, but most of it was a fog.
By the time you woke up, the sun had dipped lower in the sky. You blinked groggily, your eyes taking a moment to adjust. It was then you realized your head was resting on Wonwooâs arm, nestled comfortably against his shoulder. The scent of his hoodie filled your senses, and you stiffened slightly, unsure how long youâd been using him as your personal pillow.
You hesitated to move, not wanting to wake him if he had dozed off too, but then you felt him shift. His arm flexed slightly under your weight, and you quickly sat up, feeling your face grow warm as you straightened yourself.
âSorry, was I heavy?â you started, voice still heavy with sleep.
Wonwoo turned his head toward you, a soft smile playing on his lips. âItâs fine. You looked tired.â His voice was calm, as if it was no big deal, and somehow that made you relax a little.
You glanced out the window to see familiar buildings coming into view. The car was already pulling into the university parking lot, the journey back seemingly much shorter than expectedâprobably because youâd slept through most of it.
Seokmin was the first to break the silence from the front seat, stretching dramatically as the car came to a stop. âFinally! I thought weâd be driving forever.â
Claire, who had been unusually quiet toward the end of the ride, turned in her seat to glance at you and Wonwoo with a tight smile. âDid you get enough sleep back there?â she asked, her tone sugary but edged.
You smiled politely, pretending not to notice the underlying tone of her question. âYeah, I feel better now, thanks.â
Stepping out of the car, you pulled the blanket tighter around your shoulders as the cool evening breeze hit you. Wonwoo came around the side of the car, his backpack slung over one shoulder and yours in his hand, his expression as calm and unreadable as always. You walked together in silence toward the dorms, the sounds of your friendsâ voices fading behind you.
âI guess thatâs the end of our little trip,â you said softly, breaking the quiet between you.
âYeah,â Wonwoo replied, glancing over at you. âIt was fun.â
You nodded, the memory of the hike and the car ride settling into something softer, quieter. You couldnât recall every detail of the trip, but a few things stuck with youâthe feeling of warmth each time he attended to you, the quiet closeness that had lingered in the space between you, and although it had been a silly joke, the kiss that you shared with him in the car.
At the dorm entrance, he paused, turning to you with a small flicker of worry on his face. âHowâs your hand?â
âThis? Oh, itâs totally fine,â you said, showing him your hand. âYou took really good care of it.â
Wonwoo gave a slight nod, his lips curling into a faint smile.
He walked you all the way to your room, with your bag in his hand while you kept talking to him, asking him this and that like a curious toddler.Â
âWhat are you doing today?â
Wonwoo shrugged. âProbably working on an assignment.â
You raised a brow, pushing the conversation further. âAnd after that?â
âGaming, maybe,â he replied with a small smirk, clearly entertained by your persistent questioning.
You tilted your head, pretending to think deeply. âDo you need help with the assignment?â
He gave a short laugh, shaking his head. âNo, Iâve got it.â
As you reached the door to your room, you hesitated, glancing at him. The idea of letting the day end here felt anticlimactic, and you werenât ready to let it slip away so easily. He stood there, still holding your bag, his usual calm expression giving nothing away.Â
âDo you wanna come in for a bit?â you asked, glancing at him.Â
He blinked, a little surprised. âWhy?â
âSo I can hang out with you more,â you answered honestly, flashing him a playful smile. âYou can get started on that assignment and I promise not to bother you too much.â
His eyes flickered to the door, then back to you, his lips quirking into that small, barely-there smile he often wore. âSure.â
You opened the door and stepped inside, the cool air from your room greeting you as you flicked on the lights. It wasnât muchâa cozy little dorm room with just enough space for a bed, desk, a single couch, a built-in closet, and a small shelf where you kept a stash of snacks.
âMake yourself comfortable,â you said, motioning to the small couch by the window. You placed your bag down and went over to the mini-fridge. âIâve got some juice or water. Or⌠ah, here we go,â you smiled, pulling out a couple of sodas. âWould you like some?â
Wonwoo took a seat, casually stretching his long legs out in front of him, his gaze following you as you handed him a can. He accepted it with a nod, popping it open with a soft hiss. The sound filled the quiet room, making the moment feel more intimate somehow.
He opened his laptop and began working, but you couldnât help glancing over at him every now and then. The subtle shift of his focus, the way his fingers moved over the keyboardâit was distracting in a way you werenât expecting. You grabbed a bag of chips and sat on the floor next to the couch, close enough that your shoulder pressed slightly on his leg.
âWhy are you on the floor?â he asked, reaching for the side of your head and rubbing his thumb through your hair.
âI donât wanna eat on the bed,â you replied, leaning slightly in his touch. âIâm fine, you can keep working,â you added, pulling up an app on your phone.
You were content with the quietâboth of you immersed in your own different bubbles, but still feeling the warmth radiating from each other. You didnât think youâd actually keep your promise to be quiet and let him work, but here you are.
âSo, about the hikeâŚâ Wonwoo said after a while, leaning back into the cushions as he stretched out his fingers. âDid you enjoy it?â
You took a sip of your soda, trying to act nonchalant. âYeah, it was nice. Different.â
âDifferent?â
âIn a good way.â You smiled. âI didnât expect to have that much fun either. Well, except for the part where I hurt myself,â you added with a playful grimace, showing him your bandaged hand again.
Wonwooâs eyes softened as he glanced at your hand. âJust be careful next time.â
There was a pause. You could feel him watching you, and when you finally looked up to meet his gaze, there was something in his eyes that made you feel both nervous and confident at the same time. It felt like the perfect moment to say something, to push the boundary of whatever this tension was between you.
Wonwoo put his laptop away. âCome here,â he said, patting his lap.
You stood up almost immediately, placing your arm around his neck as you lowered yourself down on his toned thighs. Not many words were exchanged between youâyou didnât need to anyway, you both knew exactly what you wanted.
Wonwooâs lips met yours in a soft, lingering touch, as if testing the waters. But after a second, a wave of heat surged through you, and you felt your entire body come alive. His lips were soft, warm, and tasted faintly of the soda he'd had earlier, and you couldnât help but lean in closer, deepening the kiss.
He responded almost immediately, a low, quiet sound escaping him as his hands found your waist, pulling you flush against him. His fingers dug into your sides, not harshly, but enough to make your breath hitch. The room around you disappearedâthere was no bed, no walls, no anything. Just the two of you lost in each other.
Your lips parted, allowing the kiss to deepen, and when his tongue swept across your lower lip, a shiver ran down your spine. It wasnât just a kiss anymore. It was something more, something primal, and hotâvery hot. Your fingers tangled in his hair, pulling him closer, needing more of him, and he obliged, his lips moving against yours with more urgency, more need.
You gasped when his teeth grazed your lower lip, the sensation sending a shock of pleasure through your body, and your knees weakened. His arms tightened around you, holding you steady, as though he could sense how much you were melting into him.
When you pulled back, you were in awe, staring at him with your mouth hanging open. Wonwoo smiled a content smileâproud, even, as he traced the outline of your face with his thumb.
âWow, that was so much better than what we did in the car,â you blurted before you could think about it. âI mean⌠heh. Not saying that one was bad, just, you know. This one is better.â
He chuckled softly, his gaze lingering on you a moment longer before reaching for his laptop. His focus reverted back to his work, which caught you off-guard since you were still sitting on his lap, with his hand supporting your back.
Heâs not seriously going back to his assignment, is he? you pondered, a bit disappointed. But he did, pulling you closer slightly as he used his two hands to type.
You casually slid out of his lap, sitting your butt on the armrest, but he held your legs in place just as you were about to get off completely, so you just left it there. For the next hour, you sat there together, him working on his assignment, and you scrolling through your phone.
You were both silentâheâd always been quiet, but you? Your mouth may be quiet, but your mind is spiralingâoverthinking, replaying, wondering, and projecting different scenarios in your headâall while celebrating another blissful kiss from Wonwoo.

In the days that followed, things between you and Wonwoo felt differentâ and unmistakably so. It wasnât just the quiet, stolen glances anymore, or the playful teasing that came so naturally. There was a shift in the way you interacted, in the way he smiled more often, and in how he seemed more comfortable around you.
Before, it had always been you who initiated any kind of physical touch in publicâholding his hand, a playful nudge, resting your head on his shoulder when you were tired. But now, it was him, too. Wonwoo would casually drape an arm across the back of your chair when you sat together in the library, or he'd give your shoulder a quick squeeze as you passed him by in the hallway. In private, he would hold your hand, or rest his hand on your thigh when you were out with friends. There was nothing over the top about itâjust small, simple gesturesâbut the warmth of it lingered each time, leaving your heart racing a little faster.
One afternoon, you both sat in a quiet corner of a cafe, sipping iced coffee while you pretended to focus on your assignments. Wonwoo was clicking away on his laptop, his attention mostly on the screen, but every now and then, heâd look up, meet your gaze, and flash you that rare, quiet smile that made you melt just a little.
âYouâve been smiling a lot lately,â you teased, narrowing your eyes at him.
He didnât look up, but his lips curved upward. âWhat? I always smile.â
âNot like this. Youâve been smiling because of me.â
Wonwoo finally met your gaze, rolling his eyes in mock exasperation. âI smile for a lot of people.â
âOh? Do you kiss a lot of people too?â you shot back, leaning forward and watching as a faint flush touched his ears.
He shook his head, still smiling but retreating behind his usual mask of aloofness. âThat was a fluke. And I didnât kiss you, you kissed me.â
You gasped dramatically. âYou filthy little liar!â
He simply chuckled but didnât argue further. Instead, he glanced over at your half-empty cup and nudged it toward you. âFinish your drink, or youâll complain about all the ice melting away later.â
Your heart fluttered at the subtle care behind his words. Wonwoo wasnât the type to outwardly fawn over anyone, but these little moments showed how much he paid attention. You wanted to impress him, so you drained your cup in one go, even though you were already full. He chuckled softly, giving you a look that said he saw right through you.
It wasnât all just the proximity and teasing, though. Youâd started noticing how you both went out of your way to take care of each other. You would save him snacks from lunch or remind him about deadlines, just wanting to show you cared. He, in turn, would grab an extra coffee for you in the mornings or walk you to class when it got dark, without making a big deal out of it. He was thoughtful, considerateâgenuinely so.
Later that evening, you met up with him for dinner at a small restaurant near the campus, you greeted him with your usual chipper smile.
âIs that a scrunchie?â you asked, eyeing the yellow lace scrunchie around his pulse.
âHmh?â He glanced at his wrist. âOh. Yeah, itâs a backup.â
âBackup?â
âYou keep losing yours when we go out. I got this for backup.â
âAw. Youâre so obsessed with me and I totally understand. I meanââ With flair, you flicked your hair out of your shoulder. âJust look at me.â
âDonât push it,â he warned, taking the scrunchie from his wrist and handing it to you. âFix your hair. I donât want it in my soup.â
You took it with a teasing grin. âThanks. You could have just gotten those plain black hair ties though. That way, I wouldnât feel too bad for losing them.â
âI thought it would look good on you,â he mumbled but you heard him just fine.
Out of habit, you wouldâve teased himâasked if heâs falling for you. But the way he looked away with the tiniest hint of shyness, the red tint on his ears, and the slight furrow of his browsâthey all made your heart race. You needed not to ask, the fact was staring right back at you.
The thought of Wonwoo finally falling in love with you was dauntingâterrifying in the best way. But you didnât know how to navigate this phase.
You decided to keep things playful, like always. âAre you falling in love with me, Jeon Wonwoo?â you teased, leaning forward with a mischievous glint in your eyes.
Wonwoo scoffed, leaning back in his chair with an air of practiced indifference. âIâm not falling in love with anyone,â he denied smoothly.
âMaybe not,â you shot back, a knowing grin curling your lips. âBut you definitely like me.â
Just then, the server approached, a middle-aged woman with kind eyes and a gentle smile. âOh, to be young again,â she said, her gaze flitting between you two. âYou two look adorable together. How long have you been dating?â
âWeâre not dating,â you said automatically, flashing the woman a charming smile. âItâs just me. I like him a lot, and heâs⌠well, heâs just putting up with my antics.â You scrunched your nose for added effect, fully expecting the server to move on.
But the woman tilted her head thoughtfully. âIsnât that what a couple is?â she said, her smile widening.
You blinked, taken aback by her question. âSorry?â
âIf you like him, and he puts up with all your silly antics,â she continued with a hearty laugh, âthen youâre a couple.â
Your heart skipped a beat, the teasing atmosphere suddenly charged with a different kind of tension. You glanced at Wonwoo, half-expecting him to deny it too. But he just stared back at you, lips quirking into an amused smile, saying nothing.Â
This wasnât the first time someone mistook you for a couple. Youâd lost count of how many times people asked things like, âWhen did you start seeing each other?â And every time, you laughed it off, always the first to deny it, brushing away the idea with a joke. Not because you didnât want it to be trueâbut because you were scared of making Wonwoo uncomfortable, scared of pushing something he wasnât ready to acknowledge. Wonwoo, however, never once denied it, though he never really confirmed it either.
âHave you decided on your order yet?â the woman asked, prompting your attention.
After dinner, you walked back to the campus, completely satisfied by the good food. You were clinging on Wonwooâs arm, your head swaying from side to side as you hummed a song that you liked listening to these days.
âWhy do you keep telling everyone weâre not a couple?â he asked out of nowhere, making you glance up at him in surprise.
âBecause weâre not?â you replied, brow furrowed.
A smirk tugged at his lips, his gaze fixed straight ahead. âFor someone whoâs supposedly head over heels for me, you seem to hate it when people think weâre a couple.â
âI donât hate it. I actually like it!â you defended, tightening your grip on his arm. âIâm denying it for your sake. I donât want you to feel uncomfortable.â
âUncomfortable?â he echoed, glancing down at you.
You paused, biting your lip, trying to think of how to respond. âBecause⌠I guess I just didnât want to assume you were okay with it. I didnât want to make it weird by pushing something you hadnât even said you wanted.â
âWhy would you go out of your way worrying about me when I donât even make a big deal out of it?â
His tone was casual, almost indifferent, but there was something in the way he said itâsomething that made your heart skip. You opened your mouth to respond, but nothing came out. You couldnât quite piece together what he was really getting at. It was confusing and you didnât want to make your own conclusions.
Wonwoo let out a soft sigh, moving a step ahead of you, his hands slipping into his pockets as he walked on.
âHey, wait up!â you called after him, jogging to catch up, completely unaware of the small, knowing smile that played on his lips.
BACK IN the present, Seungcheol scoffed and started clapping, shaking his head as he leaned back in his chair. âWow.â
You frowned, confused. âWhat? Why are you clapping?â
He stopped, resting his hands on his thighs and giving you a sarcastic smile. âYou were so dense, itâs embarrassing.â
âHey! Whatever happened to just listening and not judging?â

You were in your dorm room again, the familiar comfort of your space wrapping around both of you. It had become routineâspending time here, where you could sit across from him or lie together in peaceful silence. Wonwoo, as usual, had his legs crossed, leaning on the backrest of the couch, looking more relaxed than ever as he talked about his plans for the future.Â
It was the kind of conversation that youâd expect from Wonwoo. He had been so open about his future, talking about post-college job prospects and what he planned to do with his IT degree. You listened, intrigued by his calm and composed outlook.
âWhat about you?â he asked, catching you off-guard.
It was odd to be caught off-guard because of the way your conversation was going, it was expected of Wonwoo to ask about your plans too. At the time, it hadnât sunk in yet, but you remembered that you were already a senior and would soon be graduating. It was a difficult question for youâa student who didnât know what to do to launch the career she wanted to pursue.
âWhat do you wanna do?â he asked again, tilting his head in the way he did when he knew you werenât paying attention.
You found yourself drifting, your gaze shifting from his eyes to his lips. It was a habit now, the way your eyes traced the curve of his mouth whenever he spokeâhow his lips moved with each word, the subtle way they pressed together in thought. You barely registered the question he had just asked, lost in the subtle details of him.
âHey?â
You blinked, your gaze snapping back to his eyes, but the words tumbled out before you could think. âI so badly want to kiss you right now.â
Wonwoo sighed, like he was almost bored, and you could feel the heat rising in your cheeks. His non-reaction is only comical to you now.
You shrugged, already moving to stand up. âNever mind, then.â
You turned to leave but then came a sudden tug that had you sitting on Wonwooâs lap, a brief glimpse of him swiftly taking his glasses off and tossing them aside before his lips crashed into yoursâall in a span of two seconds.Â
You were dumbfounded, but you immediately returned his kiss with the same amount of fervor.
âThere. Happy?â he muttered, looking bored, though you werenât fooled by his attempt to downplay what had just happened.
You blinked, still catching your breath. Slowly, you pouted as you reached out to fix the collar of his shirt. âI donât really wanna talk about careers right now.â
âOkay,â he said, shrugging. âThen letâs talk about us.â
âUs?â you echoed, trying to sound casual, though your pulse had quickened.
He nodded, watching you with gentleness on his face that gave you butterfli. âYeah. Us. Me, you, and what we want this relationship to be.â
The room felt still, his words hanging in the air between you. You couldnât stop staring at himâat the way, his dark eyes softened as they traced your face, the way his lips parted ever so slightly as if there was something more he wanted to say but couldnât bring himself to.
Your heart was pounding, your pulse echoing in your ears, and the proximity of himâso close, so invitingâwas intoxicating. He looked at you with a quiet intensity, his gaze flickering down to your lips, and in that instant, something between you snapped.
Wonwoo grabbed your face and pressed his lips onto yoursâsoftly, languidly, like heâd been deprived of it for so long that he wanted to savor every second of it. You quietly kissed him back, closing your eyes to immerse yourself. Every touch felt electric. The way his hands slid up your back, leaving a trail of heat in their wake. The way his lips moved with a rhythm that seemed to match the pounding of your heart. It was overwhelmingâthe intensity of it, the way you could feel his heart beating through his chest, how the heat was engulfing you from head to toe.
You pulled back for a moment, just enough to catch your breath, but your forehead stayed pressed against his. His breath was warm against your lips, and his eyesâhalf-lidded and dark with desireâlocked onto yours. He didnât say anything, but he looked at you like you were the only person in the world that mattered. You could still taste him on your lips, the memory of the kiss lingering, sending a thrill through you all over again.
âKiss me like that again and Iâm gonna take it as your confession of love,â you said, breaking the silence.
Wonwoo rolled his eyes and kissed you again with the same amount of sweet abandon. You gasped when he pulled away, utterly shocked.
âIs that⌠Is that your confession of love?â
âYouâre impossible,â he sighed.
Before you could say anything else, his hand cupped the back of your neck, pulling you in for another kiss. This time, it was deeper, hungrier. His lips molded against yours, his grip on you tightening as though he couldnât bear to let you go. You moaned softly into his mouth, the sound swallowed by the kiss as he tilted his head, changing the angle to kiss you even harder.
You felt dizzy, lightheadedâcompletely consumed by him. His lips, his touch, his scentâall of it was too much, yet not enough at the same time. You wanted more of him, more of this.
Your hips bucked forward, slamming onto his crotch where you found out that he too was being spurred further into the pit of desire. The contact made Wonwoo grunt, nipping your lower lip and wrapping strong arms around your waist.Â
Breathless, you pulled away, staring into his eyes and wondering if this was actually happening. Wonwoo lifted you by your thighs and moved from the couch to the bed in a heartbeat. There, he carefully laid you down, running gentle fingers through your hair.
âWonwooâŚâ you whispered, unsure of what you were going to say, but needing to break the silence.
He pressed a thumb on your lip, shushing your softly before kissing you again. This time, he abandoned your lips too quickly, moving his kisses down to your jaw and up to your earlobe. The tickling sensation spread through your nerves, intensified by his hand slipping under your shirt to palm your breast. You moaned out, arching toward his touch as your way of asking for more.
Wonwooâs lips left your ear, trailing to your neck down to your collarbone. His hands were busy with the buttons of your shirt, all while you were angling your neck to give him better access of your skin.
He pulled back once he was done with the buttons, marveling at the sight of your body, and letting out a sharp exhale before lifting the hem of his shirt and tossing it across the room.
âI can do a lot more without those,â he rasped, gesturing at your underwear and you hurriedly took them off.
While you were fiddling with the hook of your bra, Wonwoo dived down to kiss your belly, sucking with an intensity that you knew would leave tiny bruises on your skin. He was moving upwards, grabbing a boob as he peppered his path with kisses and then taking his mouth to meet your nipple. As if by his design, he sucked your nipple and pressed his fingers on your sex at the same time.
The moan you let out was throaty, spurred on by the ministrations of his mouth and his fingers. He rubbed tentative circles on your cunt, trying to find your clit based on your reactions. When he did find it, your mouth parted open as you took a sharp intake of breath, and the confidence on Wonwooâs face made you want him even more than you already did.
âOh, I see,â he grinned, licking a stripe on your neck. âThatâs the spot, isnât it?â
You bit your lower lip, trying not to lose your mind with just this. âSince when were you so arrogaâagh!â
âShh, youâre distracting me,â he said after pushing a finger in your cunt that had you gasping. He watched you writhe underneath him, going absolutely feral with just a finger. When he pushed another one inside, you were close to crying, whimpering, and clenching around his fingers.
âWonwoo pleaseâŚâ you whined, forehead creased and lips downturnedâdesperate, needy. âInside, baby. Please.â
âCome on. Say it properly. I canât give you what you want unless you speak to me clearly.â
You threw your head back and sobbed before meeting his gaze again to say, âFuck me, Wonwoo. I need you to fuck me really really good.â
Wonwoo groaned softly, clenching his jaw as he pulled his fingers out of your pussy. He shimmied out of his sweatpants and positioned himself between your legs, watching you with half-lidded eyes.
You watched in anticipation as he licked his fingers and used them to palm his erection. As he did, your breath hitched, chest heaving up and down as you waited patiently for him to do what he came to do. He lowered himself, placing his hands beside your head as he prodded your entrance with his cock.Â
Finally, you let out a guttural moan as he pushed inside you with one messy stroke. The nerves all over your body were rejoicing, feeling both relief and a delightful pain as your cunt stretched exquisitely.
âDamn, look at you,â he drawled, leaning lower to give your open mouth a sloppy kiss. âI didnât know you could get any prettier. If I did, I would have done this a long time ago.â
âMove, Wonwoo,â you managed to rasp out, not even trying to hide the desperation in your voice. âPlease, move. Please, please, please, please!â
He did as you asked, moving languidly as he practiced the clench. That didnât take long. In no time, he was rocking inside you over and over in a rhythm that made you lose your mind. You writhed and whimpered, urging Wonwoo to keep going.
When it looked like you couldnât take any more, he paused for a bit, squeezing your skin as he whispered sweet nothings in your ear. Then he lifted your leg over his shoulder and rammed deeply into you, grunting at how tightly you clung onto his manhood.
âFuck,â he groaned, pausing to take a break. You reached to wipe the sweat forming on his forehead and saw the expression on his faceâsomething between pained and delighted. âWeâre not done yet,â he said, hovering over you and ravishing your neck before picking up where he left off.
You kept at it, moving in sync with each other, getting lost in a blur of passion and desire. Your mind was clouded, thinking about nothing except satisfaction and release. You rose to meet his thrust, clawing at his back as you desperately chased a high that was almost within reach.
âOh, Wonwoo,â you cried out, eyes rolling back just before the pulsating release engulfed you with euphoria.
âDamn it,â Wonwoo murmured, his thrusts becoming sloppy and unsteady as he chased his own climax, driven further into a high by your blissed-out face.
When you finally broke apart, both of you were breathless, staring at the ceiling with nothing but the sound of your ragged breathing to break the silence. You turned on your side, moving toward him and resting your head on his arm. His hands found a spot on your waist, thumb absentmindedly tracing small circles on your skin.
âIs this the part where I ask if I could be your boyfriend?â he asked, breaking the silence.
You giggled. âWeâre way past that now. But Iâd say âyesâ just for the sake of it.â
âBut I donât believe in love. Is that okay?â
You rolled your eyes. âItâs okay.â
âItâs overrated.â
âYes, youâve told me that,â you replied, chuckling lightly.
He turned on his side so he could face you, his eyes gleaming with affection and fondness. Those eyes were directed at you. âIâm not good at this. And I donât know what to call this, but I know I canât stand the idea of not being yours.â
You kissed his cheek. âItâs fine, Wonwoo. If you want me like I want you, it doesnât matter what we call it.â
âOkay, babe,â he grinned, pushing your hair out of your shoulder. He brushed his thumb over the skin of your neck, staring intently at it. âI may or may not have left someâŚâ he trailed off. â...marks.â
You gasped, sitting up with a jolt and hitting his chest. âJeon Wonwoo!â
Wonwoo simply grinned, propping himself on his elbow as he wiggled his eyebrows at you.
âThe girls are gonna see that and know that we had sex!â
He shrugged. âTheyâll probably just say something like, âAbout damn timeâ, you know?â
You rolled your eyes. âYouâre annoying,â you said, standing up at once and heading for the bathroom. Wonwoo followed behind you, draping an arm around your shoulder and then kissing the side of your head.
âIâm sorry. I wonât do it again,â he said, chuckling lightly.
âNo, do it again,â you said sheepishly, looking away. âJust⌠not where people can see it.â
You peeked at Wonwooâs face and saw him sporting a massive grin. âIâll keep that in mind.â

From the start of your official relationship, things shifted dramatically. Wonwoo was completely different from his usual aloof self. Heâd be all over youâholding your hand, lying on your lap, hugging you from behind, anything as long as he was attached to you. Heâd hold your hand even when the two of you were quietly reading booksâa habit he eventually picked up from you after your constant attempts to get him to read an actual physical book made of paper.
Your dorm room, as always, was the prime spot for these intimate moments. Heâd lazily wrap his arms around you, leaning in to steal kisses when you least expected it. The guy who once seemed indifferent now craved your touch.
When hanging out with friends, it was no different. Wonwoo would always reach for you without looking because he knew youâd always be within his reach. He would casually intertwine his fingers with yours, or simply place a hand on your thigh. It was so second nature that he did it once to Hoshi by mistake, his hand absentmindedly landing on Hoshiâs knee while he played a game. Hoshi, immediately recognizing his chance to mess with him, leaned his head on Wonwooâs shoulder, pretending to cuddle closer.
Still blissfully unaware, Wonwoo absentmindedly reached up and cupped Hoshi's cheek, rubbing gentle circles with his thumb.
âMan, I didnât realize you were this clingy,â Hoshi teased, leaning into the warmth.
Wonwoo blinked, his brain catching up, and when the realization hit, he let out a horrified gasp, retracting his hand so quickly it was like he'd been burned. âHoshi, what theâ!â he stammered, scooting away from him as far as possible.
Across the room, you were in stitches laughing with the rest of your friends, watching the whole thing unfold.
âBabe,â Wonwoo called out to you, almost desperately, making a beeline toward where you sat. The sudden, affectionate tone in his voice had everyone cringing.
âI could never get used to this,â Jun said, shaking his head with exaggerated disbelief
âI hate it when they call each other that,â Seokmin added with a mock grimace. âLike, okay, youâre not single and lonely. We get it.â
Wonwoo pouted as he made his way to you, wrapping his arms around you like a child seeking comfort. âI missed you,â he mumbled dramatically into your shoulder, sending another wave of exaggerated groans through your friends.
You playfully tapped his forehead. âIâm like five steps away.â
âThatâs five steps too far,â he said, all mock seriousness, burying his face into the crook of your neck while the others looked away in mock disgust.
Moments like this had become common now, where he let little things slip that showed just how much he cared. Yet, he still clung to his old habit of feigning indifference, as though denying his feelings made it easier to hide how deeply heâd fallen for you. But it was all in good fun, and you found it adorable when he would switch back to his aloof, âtoo coolâ personality just to see you smile.
Despite the teasing, you liked this new side of him. It felt good knowing Wonwoo was willing to show both you and your friends a part of himself that not everyone got to see. Your relationship had leveled up, and it was evident not just in the way he acted but in the ease you felt together now
âCan we go back to when the only simp in this friend group was her?â Jill asked, pointing at you. âWonwooâs giving me the creeps.â
Feigning offense, you placed your hands on your hips and said, âWow, okay. Sue me for being drop-dead gorgeous and having a boyfriend whoâs head-over-heels with me. Whatever.â
âDonât listen to them, babe. Jealous friends are fake friends,â said Wonwoo, covering your ears and kissing the side of your head.

âHe was perfect. The best boyfriend one could ever ask for, except for the part where he didnât believe in love. Actually, that didnât even matter in the long run because he was still such a great guy,â you recounted, sighing contently as you gazed at the horizon, the warm colors of the sunset painting the sky. âI had never met anyone like him again. I donât think I will.â
Next to you, Seungcheol furrowed his brows slightly, the confusion evident on his face. âIf he was so perfectââ
âIâm gonna stop you right there,â you interjected, turning to him with your palm raised. âThere was no âif.â Wonwoo is perfect.â
âNo, hear me out,â he insisted, grabbing your hand and gently putting it down. âIf he was so perfect, why did you break up?â
You retracted your hand and glared at him, pretending to be offended. âIt is, what it is.â
âWhat does that mean in this context?â
âIt means, we were just not for each other,â you said, shrugging in acceptance. âHe was lovely and perfect, and all that. ButâYou know, I read somewhere that we were all created in pairs, and that we were put in this Earth to be with that one personâour pair.â
âPolyamorous people are not gonna like it when they hear that,â he shot back, a teasing grin on his face.
You tutted, shaking your head. âListen!â Narrowing your eyes at him, he mimed zipping his lips, letting you continue. âAs much as I wanted Wonwoo, we werenât the perfect match.â
âOkay, I get it,â he replied, nodding thoughtfully. âSo how did it end?â
You let out a heavy sigh then flattened your lips together in a tight smile. âI donât know if you noticed, but the whole time I was telling the story, I never once mentioned anything about us fighting.â
Seungcheolâs face lit up in realization.
âThatâs because weâve never had a fight. Not even once,â you added. And somehow, that was everything.
How did it end?
It wasnât anything grand, much like how you got together in the first place. Wonwoo continued to be a great boyfriend, one you could always boast about. Your friends were envious of such a perfect relationshipâone where your man was obsessed with you and adored you to death, not to mention good-looking and smart. He was a catch.
Wonwoo had a quiet patience that made it easy to handle your boundless energy. When youâd burst into a room excited, full of chatter, he would always listen with a soft smile, never overwhelmed by your liveliness. He didnât need to match your enthusiasm; his calm presence was enough.
And you understood him just as well. You knew when he was getting tired, even when he tried to hide it behind his usual stoic demeanor. Like when heâd sit a little closer than usual or his fingers would linger on your arm. Thatâs when youâd ease up, toning things down without him needing to say a word. You were attuned to his subtle cues, a silent understanding between the two of you that others rarely noticed.
But Wonwoo wasnât just passive; he knew how to take care of you, too. When your stress bubbled over, heâd pull you into his arms, resting his chin on top of your head, whispering words of comfort so softly they barely broke the silence. Youâd feel the tension melt away in those moments, reassured just by being close to him.
âI hate dental checkups,â you complained, slumping on Wonwooâs bed the moment you entered their dorm room.Â
You had just arrived from a dentist appointment and had to have your teeth cleaned as a regular procedure. Wonwoo sat in front of his computer, eyes fixed on the game he was playing, but he was listening to you.
âWas it bad?â he asked, fingers moving rapidly on the keys and eyes darting left and right as he focused on the screen before him.
âIt was! I forgot it was time for a cleaning procedure, so I went there totally unprepared. I didnât get to meditate and mentally prepare myself for the torture. It was awful,â you grumbled, burying your face in the sheets.
âCome here,â he called, glancing only briefly at you.
You walked towards him with a slouched back, sitting on his lap and burying your face in his neck.
âIt canât be helped, itâs not like you can just neglect your teeth. You did a great job back there,â he murmured, his voice gentle and comforting. âI hate dentist appointments too.â
You lifted your head and peeked at his face. âRight? Itâs the worst.â
He hummed. âI canât even last two minutes on that table without gagging. Itâs a nightmare.â
âReally?â you asked, surprised to learn something new about him. âYou know, I donât have a gag reflex.â
Wonwoo cocked an eyebrow, finally meeting your gaze just as the unmistakable sound of âVictoryâ echoed from his headphones. âReally now? Should we put that mouth to use then?â
You gasped, covering your mouth dramatically at how incredibly attractive he sounded. The atmosphere shifted, a sultry heat igniting the air between you.
âWhat? You didnât tell me that just to brag about it, did you?â he teased, his lips curling into a smirk.
At this point, you were sure your panties were already on the floor. âJeon Wonwoo, you hot specimen of a man,â you said, lunging at him with an urgent kiss.
Your relationship was not only built on mutual respect and adoration but also on an undeniable passion. As your lips met, you could feel that familiar spark, igniting something deep within you.
And despite his usual laid-back attitude, Wonwoo would go along with your plans. Youâd drag him to social gatherings with friends, where he might seem indifferent, but you knew better. His hand always found yours under the table, and though he stayed quiet, the squeeze of his fingers let you know he was happy to be thereâjust because you were.
Even when you coaxed him to take breaks from gaming or studying, heâd give you that knowing look, letting you win every time. âAlright,â heâd say with a sigh, but the way he let you guide him outside for fresh air told you he enjoyed the break more than heâd ever admit.
Yet, as you basked in these moments, a thought nagged at you, echoing in the back of your mind. You turned to Wonwoo, breathtakingly handsome in the golden light of the sunset.Â
âBabe,â you began, âdid you know we never had a fight yet? Not even about the smallest things.â
His brow furrowed slightly, realizing the truth in your question. Then he looked at you curiously. âI didnât realize. Isnât that a good thing?â
You pondered his response. âI think it is, but itâs weird, isnât it? Why donât we fight? Couples fight all the time. Look at Hosh and Mina.â
Wonwoo shrugged, taking a bite out of his churro. âMaybe because we donât let small things get in the way of our relationship?â
âHmmh. We understand each other so well, donât we?â you replied, a small smile tugging at your lips. âI donât know why, but somehow, I canât help but think that maybe itâs too easy. Like we never challenge each other or have those deep conversations.â
âWe have deep conversations all the time.â
âYouâre right, but not because of a fight,â you stated in a matter-of-factly tone.
Wonwoo frowned, and you could sense the wheels turning in his mind. Then he hummed, and said, âIt does make you wonder if weâre really communicating or just avoiding issues.â
What he said struck a chord with you. Days turned into weeks, and the questions loomed larger with each passing moment. You began to notice the cracks beneath the surface of your perfect relationship. The playful teasing became tinged with seriousness, and the easy laughter felt strained at times.
You pondered over the conversations with Mina and your other friends about love and relationships, and it began to dawn on you: What if what you have was limiting your growth instead of nurturing it? What if you had mistaken stagnation and decay for safety and comfort?
One evening, you and Wonwoo sat in your dorm room, the atmosphere cozy as you both worked on separate assignments. He was focused on his computer, while you scribbled notes on a notepad. You glanced at him, the familiar sight of his concentrated expression making your heart flutter. It was in these moments that you felt most at peace. And then came the thought that you couldnât seem to shake: How could something so good not be enough?
âHey,â you said, breaking the silence. Wonwoo looked up, his brow furrowing slightly. âIâve been thinking a lot about us.â
He tilted his head, taking in your every word. âWhatâs on your mind?â
âRemember when we talked about how weâve never fought at all?â you began, fidgeting with your pen.
Wonwoo hummed, nodding.
âWell, I couldnât stop thinking about it andâŚâ you paused to sigh, biting your lower lip to prevent the words from spilling out of your mouth. You knew it had to be said, that it was necessary to see if you should continue moving forward or move on with your lives.
Wonwoo reached for your face, wiping away a tear that you didnât realize had rolled down your cheek. âI know. You donât have to say it.â
Your lips turned downward, trying your best to hold back your tears. âBut isnât that avoiding the issue too?â
He chuckled lightly, pulling you toward him in a tight embrace. âIt is but, isn't it better than saying things that will only hurt each otherâs feelings?â
âWhat do you mean?â you asked, nuzzling against his chest.
Wonwoo was patting your back in a slow, soothing rhythm, calming your nerves and helping keep your tears at bay. âI know what youâre thinking, baby. Iâve been thinking about it too. And itâs okay, it canât be helped. Maybe itâs for the best too.â
You exhaled sharply before letting yourself sob in his shirt, tears rolling down your face like a sudden downpour. Wonwoo tightened his hug, shushing you gently as he rubbed your back, muttering soft âitâs okayâs in your ear.
âI donât wanna lose you,â you admitted, your voice cracking.
âMe neither,â he said softly, pressing a kiss on your head. âBut I think we need to face the reality of our futures. Our paths are set to diverge anyway, even if we try to change it. It might be for the best if we part ways now, while we still have these great, happy memories of each other.â
You pulled away from his embrace, looking up at him with your tear-stained face. The thought of never laughing together again weighed heavily in your heart, but there was also a flicker of understanding that this was the right choice.
âRemember when we were in that seminar, and you asked me if I liked you?â you chuckled through your tears, the memory bringing a smile to your lips.
Wonwoo laughed, a soft sound that felt like a warm hug. âHow could I forget? That was when I started falling for you.â
âReally?â you asked, eyes widening at his revelation. Wonwoo rolled his eyes as if he regretted telling you that. âNo, but seriously?â
âYes, yes,â he gave in. âYou were so confident then. So straightforward and honest. I may have experienced having my heart skip a beat for the first time.â
âNo way!â you giggled, snuggling into him. âWhy were you pretending to be so nonchalant for a long time?â
âI kinda liked having you chase me around,â he admitted sheepishly. âWhy? What were you gonna say about that day?â
You pulled back, sitting up. âOh, I wanted to ask if you were gonna tell me to leave you alone that day before the professor came in and I cut you off.â
He scoffed, feigning indifference. âWell, I guess you know the answer to that now.â
You giggled, wrapping your arms around his torso while you looked up at him. âI love you so much.â
âI love you too,â he replied in a heartbeat. âLove was worth a try with you.â
âIâm gonna remember you forever.â
âThatâs quite a big promise, but okay. Iâll take you up on that.â
And you spent the rest of your college days in each other's embrace, dreading the inevitable but also accepting the reality of your future. Jeon Wonwoo was a breath of fresh air, the warmth of the early morning sun, a prelude to a beautiful song, and a sweet memory of your youth that would stay with you forever.
[fin]
-
pluto1st liked this · 4 months ago
-
nashouldbe liked this · 4 months ago
-
sailorjoonies liked this · 4 months ago
-
cookiesillycreamstuff liked this · 4 months ago
-
dirtyangel17 liked this · 4 months ago
-
ugh-dont liked this · 4 months ago
-
chaerijc liked this · 4 months ago
-
yoouuuhooo liked this · 4 months ago
-
larahnck liked this · 4 months ago
-
blovesh liked this · 4 months ago
-
ewwgetawayfromme liked this · 4 months ago
-
cffeemlk liked this · 4 months ago
-
outro-space liked this · 4 months ago
-
luminouskalopsia reblogged this · 4 months ago
-
luminouskalopsia liked this · 4 months ago
-
hanie10 liked this · 4 months ago
-
nothereforhashtags liked this · 4 months ago
-
caturdayvibe liked this · 4 months ago
-
yolopih liked this · 4 months ago
-
readingspacesblog liked this · 4 months ago
-
selenophyyy liked this · 4 months ago
-
stupidityleaks liked this · 4 months ago
-
pinkwhiteluv liked this · 4 months ago
-
naxirah liked this · 4 months ago
-
iqniskoo liked this · 4 months ago
-
chenh1 liked this · 4 months ago
-
tofethee liked this · 4 months ago
-
imgsthings liked this · 4 months ago
-
moonslitluna liked this · 4 months ago
-
somewonlikewoo liked this · 4 months ago
-
jaehyunsloverblr liked this · 4 months ago
-
lizeey liked this · 4 months ago
-
chrollo-s-princess liked this · 4 months ago
-
ourdonggie liked this · 4 months ago
-
ilyinjun reblogged this · 4 months ago
-
caramelnibblesforlife liked this · 4 months ago
-
12345678910123456789 liked this · 4 months ago
-
younghoonized liked this · 4 months ago
-
themarieeewholovesvt liked this · 4 months ago
-
moonlightbaecs liked this · 4 months ago
-
da1as liked this · 4 months ago
-
clrwonuu liked this · 4 months ago
-
febieps liked this · 4 months ago
-
neofloral liked this · 4 months ago
-
yaleina liked this · 4 months ago
-
lovrehani reblogged this · 4 months ago
-
stayinsane liked this · 4 months ago
-
katsukien liked this · 4 months ago
-
stinglikeabie liked this · 4 months ago
More Posts from Lovrehani
đĽđ´đđŻđđŤđ¤ - đĽđ§đ° | đđđŻđą đŚ


pairing: hong jisoo x female!reader genre: historical au, fluff, angst, smut (later routes), supernatural members: lee jihoon, choi seungcheol, wen junhui, kwon soonyoung, jeon wonwoo, lee seokmin, kim mingyu, boo seungkwan, lee chan, xu minghao, lee chan, choi hansol warnings: crass humor and language, blood, violence, mentions of suicide, alcohol, minor character death, 660's sexism, crossdressing, medical procedures, political upset, historical inaccuracies for the sake of plot progression word count: 24k

taglist: @reiofsuns2001, @hipsdofangirl, @lovrehani

DISCLAIMER: as some parts of the hwarang series appear in every route, some scenes will appear the same with major to minor differences within the text.

đđŻđŹđŠđŹđ¤đ˛đ˘ || đđđŻđą đŚđŚ

đđ˘đđŻđ˛đđŻđś 1đ°đą, 661 â đđĽđŹđ°đĽđŚđŤ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ The cold, gray sky of winter greets you with its hollow breath as you swing the door to your room open, any heat that has accumulated overnight swiftly dissipating as swaths of blustery air invade the space. From the looks of it, thick, gray clouds have begun to accumulate over the city outside the walls of the Hwarangâs compound, forecasting at least a light blanket of snow in the coming hours. Youâd have to make sure that the fires from the kitchen arenât low so that the ondol keeps warm under the buildingâs floors.Â
Before you move to exit the room, you reach to grab a jacket from your handful of things, sighing as you catch sight of a piece of paper hidden under your coat. Itâs the letter that had brought you here in the first place. Nearly two weeks have passed since your arrival at the Hwarangâs headquarters, the same frigidity that had met you on your first meeting is still ingrained into them, the same distrust, no doubt, but it isnât as if you can leave.Â
 A frown as you look down at your clothes after shrugging the jacket onto your shoulders. Instead of your fatherâs clothes that youâd arrived in, theyâd given you robes of their own. Not the blues of their commanders or warriors, but the deep green of their lesser ranks; of the pageboys, cooks, and less desirable positions within their numbers. They were and are foreign to you, youâd much rather wear the clothes that feel more familiar, even if they are menâs. But you arenât meant to raise suspicion, just keep your head low until they find out more information of your fatherâs whereabouts. A female hiding out in the Hwarangâs headquarters would raise suspicion, start rumors, and with how much they hold themselves to a gold standard, it would be irreparable to their reputation.Â
Jihoon, the Hwarangâs commander, had given you strict instructions to keep up the facade as a male. Saying that, while it would be harmful to their reputation if the word got out, it would also be a beacon for those looking for your father, or perhaps even you. Only those that youâd met on the first day, as well as a handful of others within their leadership, know of your true identity.
As you move your hands away from the hem of your jacket, your fingers brush against the blade that Jihoon had given back to you the day youâd arrived. Itâd been somewhat ceremonial in your household, not a thing of use as there was no need for it. Your father had claimed it to be an heirloom kept in the family since the birth of Silla as a kingdom. You arenât sure of the validity of that statement though, as the metal isnât tinged with rust, it looks newly forged at times.
Regardless of the validity of the blade, your father made you take several lessons with your townâs local head guard, whoâd only taught a girl because her father was a well-known physician. Also, because your father could treat any injury you sustained while practicing, which wasnât ever needed as any scrapes or scratches you obtained healed fairly quickly. When you were little you didnât think much of it. Yet as you grew older you realized that you healed faster than most. Your father said it mustâve been a gift from the Heavens but urged you not to tell anyone about it. And you hadnât, fearing that those around you would treat you like a witch or a monster if they were to find out.
Swordplay was never something you took much interest in, seeing that youâd probably never put the techniques youâd learned to use. Besides, you arenât a bloodthirsty fiend looking for a chance to use it anyway, youâd rather help people than hurt them.Â
Youâre pulled from your thoughts for a brief moment as a wang-do, one of the common Hwarang soldiers, passes by your room. They lock eyes with you for a moment, a scowl sneering onto their lips before they break their gaze and continue to stride past. Private rooms were only given to personnel of a higher rank within the Hwarang, and seeing how you are a newcomer, you can somewhat understand the resentment some of them have with your staying not in the typical quarters of those of your rank.Â
With more guilt than not as you accept the hospitality of the Hwarang, you try to help out as much as you can, despite the wishes of the commander. To the average wang-do, it probably seems as if youâre receiving special treatment from the captains. Despite the actuality of them keeping watch over you to make sure you wouldnât spew their secrets; it would be confusing, aggravating even, from an outsiderâs perspective. But, even if you were allowed free reign of the headquarters, itâs not as if you could speak to any of them, most were nobles from families of high wealth. And your father isnât poor by any means, but the wealth disparity between the nobles of the capital and nobles of the countryside is nothing to scoff at.Â
So, you remain alone, for the time being, finding that the best way to not draw attention to yourself is to become practically invisible. Maybe if Jihoon allowed you to go out and search for your father you would find yourself more useful, but heâd just left for Hanseong a few days prior. Seeing as the man in charge of your stay here isnât available, maybe your best bet would be to stay in your room until something of note happened, despite how aggravatingly boring it is.Â
The room is practically empty, only a bed, a small chest of drawers and a writing desk to keep you company. It reminds you of when your father would leave for his patient visits, disappearing for days at a time and leaving you alone at home. Although it isnât the same, those visits had the promise of return. Waiting for someone you knew would come back and waiting for the unknown are vastly different things.
As your reflections manifest into exasperated sighs, you barely notice the sound of approaching footsteps heading towards your room.Â
âThere you are!â Youngmin, the head of the Hwarang, exclaims once he catches sight of you. âIâve been looking everywhere for you; I didnât think youâd be in here!â He beams at you for a moment before stepping into the room with a tray in his hands.Â
âOh, Iâm⌠sorry?â you apologize as he sets down the tray onto the writing desk nestled into the corner of the room.Â
âAh⌠wait⌠This is your room?â He questions as he straightens up, looking around at the interior for a moment.Â
âIt is,â you nod, wondering what heâs thinking about.Â
âThen I just barged into a womanâs room without even announcing myself!â He looks flustered, his cheeks turning a tinge pink as he realizes his mistake and takes a few steps out of the room.
âItâs alright,â you try to assure him, âAfter all, itâs not like thereâs anything here that I wouldnât want you to see.â
âHmm,â he sighs, trying to compose himself, âI thought since weâd assigned you to be Jihoonâs page your room would be next to hisâŚâ It seems as if Jihoon had neglected to inform Youngmin that you hadnât actually been made a page. That isnât in the least bit surprising with how coldly the commander had been treating you.Â
âIâm not fully equipped to entertain guests, but youâre welcome to come in if youâd like,â you offer, motioning for him to come back inside the room.
âYou donât need to worry,â he waves his hand as if to brush off the thought, âAnd, if I may, Iâll take you up on your offer.â Youngmin then steps back into the room, and as if he notices your hesitant demeanor, he speaks up once more, âAnd please donât feel nervous around me, as long as youâre here youâre a guest of the Hwarang.â
You offer him a small smile before looking down to the tray heâd carried in. A look of shock comes over your face as you realize what heâd brought, âThis isâ!â
Youngmin chuckles lightly, âI take it youâre a fan of sweets then? Jihoonâs adoptive mother likes to send them to us every once in a while, and hardly anyone touches them.â Several assorted hangwa lay on the dish, their colors vibrant against the gray gloom of the light shining in from outside, next to a steaming cup of tea. âGo ahead and have some, if youâd like.âÂ
âThank you very much,â you nod and make your way over to gingerly pick up one of the confections. You look at the pink treat for a moment before taking a bite out of it, savoring the sweetness of it before turning back to Youngmin, âItâs delicious.â Snacks like this were only limited to holidays or festivals back home, itâs shocking to hear that Jihoonâs mother had sent such a thing on a whim.Â
âIâm glad you like them,â he smiles. Something about Youngminâs presence holds an aura of warmth, that makes you feel more relaxed than you had been with any other member of the Hwarang since your arrival. âAh, Iâve also heard you havenât been able to go outside?â
A nod, âThatâs right. But if thatâs whatâs needed for me to stay here, I wouldnât want to cause any unnecessary trouble by going out.â
He looks almost sympathetic as he parts his lips once more, âI see⌠Iâm glad you understand. I know that Jihoon can seem a little intimidating at first but heâs a truly caring man.â
To see the man whoâd kept you in relative solitude for a few weeks as a caring person didnât seem fully right⌠But Youngmin knows him much better than you do.
âHe may be a little strict with you, but only because heâs trying to do whatâs in your best interest.â Youngmin sighs, a telling sign that maybe he hadnât agreed with everything Jihoon had done before. âIâll speak to him once he gets back, I know this must be hellish for you, but I can only ask you to hang in for a bit longer.â
âAlright,â you nod, âThank you.â Even if Youngminâs visit hadnât done much to change your living arrangement, it had lightened your mood ever so slightly.Â
After Youngmin had departed and youâd been left to sulk in your room for a while, you notice that the sun was slowly sinking into the sky. The clouds of earlier in the day had parted to let the golden light shine onto the headquarters as the sun made its descent into the horizon. It feels as if time itself has stopped, the sun hanging in the same place for an unimaginably long time.
All this time in solitude is doing a number on both your mental and emotional state. Any hope of getting out of your isolation seems to slip with each passing moment you spend alone. You had come to the capital to find your father, not get swept up into a world where your life lay on the line should you slip up and say something you shouldnât.
Even if they were showing you more hospitality than you couldâve asked for, you know that you canât trust the Hwarang completely.Â
âThey canât all be that bad⌠right?â you mutter to yourself as you sit at the small drawing table, flipping through the letters youâd brought with you.
âHas anyone ever called you âgullibleâ, before?â A voice behind you causing you to jump and turn to see whoâd spoken.Â
Your gaze hardens as you see Boo Seungkwan standing in your doorway, arms crossed with a small frown painted on his lips. âWhat are you doing here?â Asking as you push yourself to your feet, brushing off your pant legs before facing him fully.Â
âYou didnât notice me? Itâs my turn to keep watch over you,â he sighs, âYou talk to yourself a lot, donât you?â
Had you really been thinking aloud earlier? You bite your lip and try to mentally remind yourself to never do that again as youâd never know who could be listening in on you here. Before you can retort, Hansol steps in from the hallway.
âI think thatâs enough picking on her, Seungkwan.â He frowns at the other.
âDid you hear me too?â You question, somewhat embarrassed about how this was playing out.Â
âI only just arrived,â he shakes his head in the negative. âI came to tell you that dinner is ready but,â Hansolâs eyes narrow ever so slightly at you, noticing how incrementally flustered youâre getting, âhave I interrupted something?â
âNothing at all!â You insist, trying to calm yourself.
âI was going to let the two of you continue to speak, but if I had left you two alone, I knew that heâd probably try and get you out of sorts again,â Hansol notes somewhat stoically, probably thinking of the times where heâd been in the exact same situation. His shoulders shrug before the sound of more approaching footsteps reaches you.Â
Soonyoung rushes into the room with loud, heavy stomps. His eyes are somewhat frantic, his voice somewhat annoyed as he speaks, âHey! Itâs dinnertime and Iâm absolutely starving.âÂ
âSorry about that, Iâll be there soon,â Hansol apologizes to the younger.
Soonyoung then looks to you, âYou too, hurry up or Junhuiâs gonna eat all of the food again.â
âSorry Captain Kwon, Iâll be there as soon as I can.â You say as he begins to turn on his heels to leave before stopping himself.
His lips purse together before he looks back at you, âLook⌠can you drop the âCaptain Kwonâ thing? Just call me Soonyoung, everyone else here does.â
âAre you sure about that?â You question with an inquisitive tilt of your head.
âWhy not? Weâre practically the same age, arenât we? And we donât need honorifics either, Iâm not one of those uptight nobles.â He frowns slightly.
âAlright then⌠Soonyoung.âÂ
âThatâs more like it,â he grins, âNow letâs go.â
The walk to the dining area is more familiar than any other route youâd taken thus far during your stay with the Hwarang. Meals are the only time of day that you really are able to leave your room and have company, even if that company was the other captains of the Hwarang.
âYouâre lateee,â a whine from Wen Junhui as he sits in front of his meal, the lids still atop the dishes so as to not let the steam out. âWhoâs responsible for this? My stomachâs crying and I think my soupâs already gone cold,â he frowns as everyone finishes filing into the hall.Â
âYou mean âgrowlingâ,â Soonyoung snickers as he moves to take his seat next to Junhui, you move to sit on the other side of Junhui, next to Mingyu. âSometimes itâs really easy to tell that youâre not from here.â
âThat doesnât even matter, you should all apologize to my stomach,â the tallerâs hands fly to his abdomen as the remaining captains take their seats, âitâs been desperate for food since this morningâs practice routines.â
A small âtchâ from Mingyu as he rolls his eyes at the two, âA commoner correcting a noble, I never thought Iâd see the day.â Thereâs a tinge of sarcasm to his voice as he speaks, the tone disappearing as he pipes up once more, âAlright, now that everyoneâs here we can eat.â
Thereâs general chatter amongst the captains as they start to uncover their dishes and begin to dig into their meals. You sit and eat in relative silence until Junhuiâs voice begins to raise on your right.
âThereâs hardly enough here to feed a kid, let alone a guy like me,â you turn your head and watch his gaze trail down to Soonyoungâs tray to his right, âI guess Iâll have to take yoursâŚâ His now empty hands make a grab for the bowl of rice situated atop Soonyoungâs tray. âSurvival of theââ
âSurvival of the fittest my ass, Junhui,â the other retorts, sticking out his elbow and hitting the other square in the chest. Thereâs a hollow thud reverberating around Wenâs ribcage, it sounds painful, but he doesnât look phased at all. But it did stop him from trying to snatch Soonyoungâs meal. âWhyâre you always stealing my food?â
Junhui laughs, you hear Mingyu also let out a small chuckle to your left. âItâs because of the size difference, Soonyoung. Iâve got a bigger body; therefore I need more food.âÂ
âNo way, Iâve gotta eat too!â Soonyoung protests, his elbow still locked in place trying to hold the other back.Â
âYouâd think theyâd be more civil around a woman,â Mingyu, at the tailend of his laughter, notes about the two, âbut theyâre always like this.âÂ
âI think Iâve gotten used to it by now,â you respond, setting down the cup of tea youâd been drinking before looking at Hansol, whoâs gaze seems to have drifted across the room to the bickering pair.
âHow weâve managed so long without them killing one another is beyond me,â he says before eating a spoonful of the soup in front of him. âAre you not eating?â Hansol questions Seungkwan, who sits next to him. The latter sits reclined back in his seat, seemingly watching the entertainment in front of him instead of touching his food.
âIâm alright. If I eat too much in one sitting I get slow.â He nods, reaching for his cup.
âWhat do you mean âslowâ?â Junhui pokes, gaze shifting from Soonyoung to Seungkwan for a moment and then down to the food on the olderâs plates. âBut if youâre not going to eatâŚâ
âGo for it,â Seungkwan scoots the tray forward with his elbow, passing it over to Junhui as his hand is still occupied with his cup. âAs long as Iâve got makgeolli, Iâm alright.âÂ
âSounds like Iâm going with makgeolli too,â Mingyu sighs and passes a few plates from his tray onto yours after noticing that most of your food was already eaten. Â
âYou donât have toââ you begin to protest before Seungkwan speaks up again. Â
âDonât worry about eating too much or being a freeloader,â he says, a weird bubbling of guilt arising in your stomach.Â
âI understand but I canât help but feel a little badâŚâ You state as you look down to the newly acquired plates in front of you. Â
âIf youâre going to let that get to you, youâre never going to get anything you want,â Hansol says pointedly, continuing to eat the mix of soup in front of him. Â
âA- alright,â you nod, picking up your utensils again and beginning to pick at the newfound food on your tray. Because you never had much contact with others during the daytime, it makes having dinner with the captains something of an entertaining and frightening experience every night. But itâs fun. A small smile curls onto your lips at the thought of some normalcy for a moment when you hear Mingyu speak again.
âYou know weâre not going to hurt you, right?â Heâd seen your smile, probably seeing it as you begin to relax, and he seeks to soothe your anxieties about them even more so. His own lips have a soft smile of their own, an honesty brimming with it. Maybe theyâd all been trying to put you at ease with their antics. Â
It was troublesome to navigate, you have conflicted feelings about staying with them and taking up their time and resources, but it isnât as if you have much of a choice. They seemed to realize that too and instead of scorning you for it, were trying to make the best of it. Â
But before you could ponder on the notion for much longer, Song Eunseok enters the room. Â
âCaptains?â He asks somewhat quietly, but the noise of his arrival had turned all heads towards him. âDo you have a moment?â Voice soft as usual, his eyes teem with a quiet anxiety that you hadnât ever seen during your brief acquaintance with him. The gaiety that had once erupted in the room comes to a fizz as he begins to speak once more, âIâve just gotten a letter from Sabi, Seungcheolâs been gravely injured during a skirmish.âÂ
Your brows raise as Seungkwan shouts out, âWhat the hell happened?!â Â
âA group of Baekje revivalists were laying siege to the chancellorâs home, Seungcheol and Jihoon arrived in time to subdue them, however, Seungcheol was injured at some point during the fight.âÂ
âIs he going to be alright?â You ask, your hands clenching together, nails digging into the skin. Â
âAccording to Jihoon's letter he is gravely hurt, but the wound is on his left arm.â Eunseokâs teeth gnaw at the insides of his cheek for a moment, âIt will be hard for him to draw an arrow or wield a blade but itâs almost certain that he will survive this.â  Â
âThatâs good,â a sigh of relief leaving you, but the air lies tense from the other captains as they await more answers regarding their comradeâs status. Â
âSeungcheol should be returning in a few days,â Eunseok nods, a solemn tone to his voice, âIâll go and talk with Kwak some more regarding the situation, if anything else arises Iâll let you know.â He was already halfway out the door by the time he finished speaking, talking over his shoulder in a bated anxiety to rival that of the rest of the room. Â
âAn injury so bad he canât hold a bow or sword?â Hansol almost thinks aloud, âHe may have severed an artery. He may never carry a blade again if thatâs trueâŚâ You now begin to understand the severity of the situation, why the air grew heavy and the voices grew low. âIf he were to fight one handed against an opponent of similar skill he would almost certainly lose.â Â
â... If push comes to shove heâll have to take it. Seungcheolâs not just going to give up like that,â Seungkwan frowns, the cup in his hand settling down onto the table in front of him with a small clink before his hands fall into his lap. Â
âDonât say that, Boo,â Junhuiâs face mirrors an equal grimace to that of the elderâs. âItâll look bad if captains start joining the Furies.â Â
â... Who?â You question, trying to follow their conversation as best you could but finding yourself lost as they begin to speak of things unknown to you. âThe Furies?âÂ
âFuries,â Soonyoung begins, âThey come from something you drink where any injury can be curââÂ
âSoonyoung!â Before you know it, Mingyu is on his feet and striding around you to the captain. The elder captainâs hand reaches down and pulls up the younger by the front of his robes. Â
âAhââ Soonyoungâs voice catches in his throat, his eyes go wide as if heâs realized heâd said something that he shouldnât have.Â
âYouâre overreacting, Kim.â Junhui stands, trying to pry Mingyuâs irontight grasp away from Soonyoung. âItâs my fault anyway, I said something first.â When Mingyu relinquishes Soonyoungâs green robes from his grip, Junhui shoots the younger a sympathetic look, âSorry.âÂ
âI shouldâve watched myself,â Soonyoung sighs, his hands moving to straighten his now wrinkled garment. Â
Junhuiâs gaze then turns to you, his tone becoming sterner, âEverything you just heard is something you should never repeat. I know youâre probably curious, but we canât say anything else about it, so donât ask.â The cold weight hiding behind his eyes is enough to make you feel uneasy about what youâd just heard. Youâre not even sure what they were talking about, but it seems important enough to stay a secret. Â
âThose Furies that Soonyoung was talking about are pitiful men,â Seungkwan states as he pushes himself to his feet. His voice held none of the snideness that it normally had, taking on a flatter and emotionless tone. A sate sort of melancholy coming over him, itâs clear he has something on his mind. Â
âItâs nothing you have to worry about,â Junhui says to you as he breaks the silence, âSo donât try and get worked up about it.âÂ
Seeing as you were only a guest of the Hwarang and not an actual member among their ranks, you can understand their secrets. But it doesnât make you any less curious. Â
âTry your best to forget about it,â Hansol warns, not so much to you but to your circumstance, âThe more involved you become with our affairs will only put you in more danger.âÂ
The wall built up between you and the captains was almost tangible at this point, not an easy thing to scale or break through.Â
Dinner ended in relative silence, you excused yourself to your room and hurried back to collect your thoughts. You exhale a large sigh as you enter, your mind hopping from the fate of the Hwarangâs colonel to what the Furies were. It reminds you of the rakshasa from the Buddhist texts your father had made you read as a young girl. The phrases âsomething you drinkâ and âbecoming a Furyâ bounce around your skull before you stop yourself. Hansol had asked you to forget, but it feels as if him saying that only makes you want to remember.Â
For whatever reason, the Hwarang captains were keeping hush about whatever ordeal was occurring. Was it to protect you? Regardless, sticking your nose into their business would only be detrimental to your stay with them.Â
With that in mind you try to clear your head as best you can before slipping into bed and trying to drift off to sleep. Â
đđđŻđ đĽ 3đŻđĄ, 661 â đđĽđŹđ°đĽđŚđŤ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Itâs been a little over two months since youâd joined the Hwarang at the headquarters in Seorabeol. Jihoon and Seungcheol had returned from their expedition to Sabi, but morale among the men was low. For a while after their return, due to Seungcheolâs injury, a few operations within the organization became hectic due to his absence. The wounds heâd acquired were grim, draining most of the goodness in his nature before your very eyes. Heâd spend days locked away in his room, the silence deafening to those who would venture in and try to speak to him. Â
On the rare occasion that he did leave his room, his temper lay short before heâd barricade himself away in his abode once more. The Hwarang had offered to let him return to his family for recoveryâs sake, but he insisted that his duty remain with his compatriots, despite his abysmal attitude. Â
Even though you too were holed up away inside of your room, the ways in which the two of you coped with the ordeal were vastly different. Seungcheol was trapped within himself, fallen from whatever pedestal he thought was his to a mere memory of what once was. You, on the other hand, were merely looking for ways to help your hosts. Â
In doing so, you now find yourself wandering the halls of the Hwarangâs main building looking for Lee Jihoon, who hopefully has an assignment for you to complete. Much in fashion for the commander, he was nowhere to be seen. You debate on whether it would be impolite to go to his room directly when an unknown soldier walks up to you.Â
Their face is unfamiliar to you and they arenât wearing the blue robes associated with the Hwarang on patrol. There is a chance youâd never seen them before, but by the way they are looking at you, you can surmise that that isnât the case. Â
âYou⌠wouldnât have happened to have seen Commander Lee⌠would you?â You ask as they approach, their gait long and almost prideful. Â
âAnd who are you?â They question, looking you over with scathing eyes as if to detect your character, âMind telling me what youâre doing here?âÂ
âOh well⌠itâs a long story,â you mumble out, noticing their gaze sharpening on you. Â
âDonât make me repeat myself!â Their voice raises, the sternness only growing, âAnswer me!âÂ
Fumbling out your words, you introduce yourself quickly. Â
âHmm,â he ponders, gaze softening ever so slightly, âI heard that the Commander recently acquired an apprentice warrior as a new page, it must be you.â Â
âI am,â you respond with faux cocksureness, not realizing that the men had referred to you as an apprentice warrior under the Hwarang. Â
âWhy donât you enlighten me on how you came to know the Chief and Commander?â The manâs scrutinizing gaze continues as you straighten your posture, shifting your weight from foot to foot. âI heard youâre from Toehwa-hyeon, but how were you able to squeeze your way in here?âÂ
âI didnât âsqueeze my way in hereâ,â you retort, not liking how this man was addressing you.Â
âJudging by how defensive youâre being, it sounds as if Iâve gotten it right.â He almost scoffs at you in disbelief, âThis isnât some place for a common boy without any worth in his duties or on the battlefield to walk in without earning it. Iâll ask you one last time: how did you come to know the Chief and Commander?â Â
You stay silent, unsure of how to address him or what answer would be the right one. Yet, before you can begin to formulate a response, he steps forward and grabs the sleeve of your robes, âI, Suh Kangjoon, am asking you a question.â With the way he states his own name, itâs as if heâs trying to signal himself as someone of importance, but youâd never heard the other captains speak of him before. âWhat makes you think you can ignore me?â Rather than have a calm air as he asked, his tone had almost shifted to that of a petulant child. Â
âWhat the hell do you think youâre doing?â A voice barks off to the side, coming from one of the hallâs entranceways. Both Kangjoon and you turn to see Jihoon standing in the doorway, an almost scowl painting his lips as he watches the scene before him. Once Kangjoon had realized it was him, his hand falls away from clutching at your robes and returns to his side. Â
âVery well, Commander,â he wets his lips as Jihoon approaches before clearing his throat and speaking once again. âIâm here on business with Gukseon Kwak.âÂ
âIs that right?â Jihoonâs voice is tipped with a poisonous edge, as if he didnât fully trust the character in front of you. âHe failed to mention that to me.âÂ
âHe wrote to me with special orders to aid him while Colonel Choi is out of commission,â he begins, âI have the letter if youâd like to read it.âÂ
âThatâs quite alright,â Jihoon waves him off, âbut I think itâd be in your interest to know that Kwak is out on training runs with Kwonâs squadron today.âÂ
âThen I suppose Iâll have to come back at a later date,â the air of faux civility between the two was nearly palpable, Jihoon doing nothing to hide his distaste whereas Kangjoon only looked at him snidely. The newcomer begins to turn on his heels, heading for the exit before his pace slows and leaves the two of you with a few words, âIs it true that youâve welcomed him as your page, Commander?âÂ
âYes,â Jihoon nods, glancing at you for a moment before returning to look at the other, âbut itâs no concern to you.âÂ
A flash of an uncaring smile, âForgive me, then. Iâll try not to ask more as it seems to be out of my jurisdiction.â Another step before he stills, âI do, however, question your predisposition toward keeping those from higher ranks close to you,â his eyes widen in faux surprise, âAh, it seems Iâve forgotten myself, please excuse me.â Â
Once the stranger has exited the building, only then do you feel a sigh of relief overcome you. But before you have the chance to dwell on it for too long, Jihoon speaks up.Â
âYou shouldnât be walking around the headquarters without my permission, you know.âÂ
âI understand, Commander, I didnât mean to cause any trouble,â you begin to apologize.Â
âYour presence here isnât known by the other factions of the Hwarang, only those staying here at Shoshin,â He explains, âbe mindful of anyone that isnât a Hwarang from this sect, understood?âÂ
âUnderstood,â you nod. âBut can I ask who that man was?âÂ
âThat man is a captain of the Hanseong Hwarang. His name is Suh Kangjoon.â Jihoon looks as if heâs wracking his brain for an adequate description of the man, âHis archery and swordsmanship are decent, but heâs well read and has a knack for military tactics.â His voice lowers a bit for his next statement. âHeâs cunning, so be careful.âÂ
âOkay.âÂ
âRegardless of that,â his voice back to a decent volume as his gaze hardens at you, âif youâre not attending to someone then I fully expect you to stay put in your room.â With that, you suppose, he meant to dismiss you back to your quarters as any strict commander should and would have done.Â
A wordless nod, understanding that asking any more of him would cause his mood to sour even more so after his meeting with Suh Kangjoon. Jihoon turns on his heels the same time as you, drifting away towards his room on the opposite end of the compound while you shuffle back to yours.Â
đđ˛đŤđ˘ 15đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ The air thick with humidity sweeping in from the coast, the entirety of the Kingdom of Silla lies in mourning after the death of the posthumously named King Taejong Muyeol. With the lauded last year's effort of him uniting both Silla and Baekje, the former kingdom to the west of Silla, hanging over the heads of every citizen, his death felt like a sharp blow to all. For the first few days of the month, the Hwarang had traveled to Banweolseong, the Kingâs palace, to pay their respects to the fallen monarch, leaving you alone with only Eunseok as company.  Â
Once the Hwarang had steadily returned to the compounds, an air of normalcy once again began to hang over the inhabitants and the buildings themselves. Yet, midway through the month, Emperor Gaozong of the Tang dynasty called in aid from Silla to attack the kingdom of Gogoryeo. The kingdom resides to the north, and the Tang emperor wished to pincer it from both sides so that it would fall under either Tang or Silla rule.Â
Whereas this may have been the wishes of Taejong Muyeol, the new king, Munmu, found issue in sending out an army so close to the prior monarchâs death. Yet, as an almost tributary state to the Tang, Silla was forced to comply by sending soldiers to the front. No members of the Hwarang were called, as they were to remain in their cities and keep patrol when the officers that normally stood guard could not. Â
Itâs a cooler day of the beginning of summer, youâd just come back to your room with your laundry when Hansol appears at your door. He stands there for a moment, allowing you to put down the basket of clothes in your hands before speaking, âCommander Lee would like a word with you.âÂ
A wordless nod and you begin to follow him. Hansol leads you to the main hall, only stopping at the entranceway and gesturing you inside, you step into the room and hear Hansol go in behind you, closing the door after he enters. Looking around, you spot Jihoon, Seungkwan, Mingyu, Junhui and Soonyoung standing around the hall. It seems as if only the captains and you had been summoned for this meeting. Â
âI know youâve been waiting for this, but the time has come to finally let you out,â Jihoon says once everyoneâs settled into a comfortable silence. Â
Your lips part and you can barely contain the gasp forming in the back of your throat, âReally?â Unable to contain your excitement, you try to compose yourself before speaking again. âSo, there really was someone who saw my father in Hwango-dong?â You question, only hearing rumors of someone whoâd seen a man with your fatherâs profile in one of the cityâs districts.Â
âWeâre not sure if itâs true or not,â Jihoon cedes as he nods his head, âItâs our intention to let you verify for us. Considering that youâd recognize him the best out of everyone here.âÂ
âSo, where is this man who said he saw him?â Â
âThe initial report outlines Jeolin Inn in Hwango-dong, Hansolâs assigned to do a preliminary check.â Both your and his attention turn to the man Jihoon had named. Did this mean that you were to accompany him to check or were you to wait here until after heâd swept the area?Â
âThat doesnât mean that Heo is a guest of the inn though,â Kim chimes in.Â
âYeah,â Junhui agrees, âBeing sighted in Hwango-dong could just mean he was walking around Seorabeol.â Â
âExactly,â Jihoon sighs, crossing his arms and looking at Soonyoung, Junhui and Mingyu, âThatâs why Iâm asking the three of you to take her out on your rounds to assist her in her search.âÂ
âAll of us?â Soonyoungâs head tilts in confusion, âWe normally split up and go our separate ways on our rounds.âÂ
Rather than entertaining Soonyoung with a response, Jihoon looks back to you. It was a quiet way to say that they were still in charge of looking over you, needing to make sure you wouldnât try and make a break for it should they take you out in search for your father.Â
âWe get what youâre trying to say, Jihoon,â Seungkwan notes, âbut I donât like that youâre making us do all of the babysitting. I thought you were planning on patrolling as well?â The teasing lilt to his voice returns, âSo, for your benefit, why donât you show your adorable page the ropes by taking her out with you?âÂ
âArenât you the one who pushed her onto me?â Jihoon scoffs, âIâm not taking any of your shit today, Li. She isnât my page.âÂ
âMaybe she is, maybe she isnât, but a lot of the wang-do are beginning to believe it.â Seungkwan notes, crossing his own arms. âThereâs always a grain of truth in every lie, so why donât you give her a job already?âÂ
As the two continue their stalemating conversation, Mingyu moves to your side and whispers something to you, âSeorabeol isnât the safest place right now, as you know, so you donât have to force yourself to leave. I mean we all know what your dad looks like, so itâs not just your risk alone to bear.âÂ
  It seems like you could either explore where your father had last been seen, patrol the surrounding area, accompany Jihoon as his page, or stay here, from what Mingyu had suggested. Â
âI think I should stay behind today,â after a moment of thinking, you come to the conclusion. There was no assurance that your father is out on the streets of Seorabeol still, and the looming threat of danger still hangs over the city.Â
âWhat?!â Soonyoung frowns, âBut what about your father?âÂ
âI have to understand my place here too, though⌠We donât even know if heâs there anymore,â you give him a small smile and nod, âIâm sure more chances will come.âÂ
âIf you say so,â he sounds a bit jilted, âBut if youâve already made up your mind thereâs no convincing youâŚâÂ
After that, the men deliberate their plans before heading off to their respective destinations and you return to your room. The thought of not going eats away at you, maybe it wouldâve been better to take the risk and venture outâŚÂ
âIf youâre going to regret it that much, you shouldâve gone with them.âÂ
The voice behind you startles you from your thoughts, you swivel on your heels to greet whoâd interrupted your thinking, âSeungkwan⌠Iâm not regretting it.â Yet, you are, so much so that you canât bear to look into his eyes. But he smiles wryly, putting a hand on your shoulder.Â
âNot at all?â He asks with a grin, âNot even if you knew Hansol and I went out of our way to convince Jihoon?âÂ
âYou whatâŚ?â The revelation sucks the air from your lungs, not expecting him to say that at all. Had you wasted their kindness? âIâm sorry! I didnât realizeââÂ
âAh, well, it was actually Hansol that convinced him. I just stood behind him and nodded lightly.âÂ
âEven so,â you say as you look at him, âIâm sorry⌠Iâll apologize to Hansol laterâ Should there be another opportunity, please give me another chance to join you.âÂ
Seungkwan hesitates for a moment before responding, his eyes focusing deeply on yours, âYou may be able to accompany us, but youâd better keep that blade sheathed. We donât need any recklessness holding us back.â His eyes are serious but his smile remains bright, âIf thereâs any sign of you becoming an issue, I wonât hesitate to put my blade through you.âÂ
âI understand,â you say, nodding plaintively.Â
The Hwarang says nothing more as he removes his hand from you, turning on his heels and making his way out of the main hall.
đđ˛đŠđś 7đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Kwon Soonyoung and Boo Seungkwan stand in the great hall as you enter. The past few weeks had given you no information on the whereabouts of your father, despite you going on patrolling rounds with the different Hwarang captains. You assume the information, or lack of, was the reason for your summoning today by Lee Jihoon. Although the presence of the other two Hwarang captains make you feel somewhat more relieved, you wouldnât have to face the Demon commander alone.Â
âYou asked to see me?â There is a sour look on Jihoonâs face as you ask, something clearly eating away at him.Â
âItâs about your father,â he begins, and you perk up for a moment. Jihoonâs frown stays on his face as he looks at you, a sinking feeling in your stomach as you can already tell you wonât like what he says. âI think itâs best we stop searching for him for the time being.âÂ
âWhy?â You can hardly stop yourself from blurting out the question. Youâd only been able to search for him for what felt like a handful of weeks, if you were to stop now there was a major possibility you could lose any leads you have.Â
Jihoon remains collected, his arms crossing as he speaks again, âWe have reports of activity from Baekje loyalists. It would be more than foolish to let you wander the streets in search of your father at a time like this.âÂ
âThen, are you asking me to stay here until things are resolved with the loyalists?â You question with a tilt of your head, unable to hide the disappointment in your voice.Â
The commander nods before turning to Soonyoung and Seungkwan, âThat being said, as for now she isnât to accompany any captain on their rounds.âÂ
âSo thatâs why you pulled us in here?â The question is more like a musing as it falls from Soonyoung. It seems like he too hadnât known why he was called here and it was now beginning to click. âYou know, sheâs never caused any issues when we took her on our rounds⌠I feel kind of bad now that she canât tag along.âÂ
âMhm,â Seungkwan nods, âeven if something were to happen, as long as sheâs not hopping into the fray it should be alright. Besides,â he smirks at you, âitâs not like she could outrun us if she tries to escape.âÂ
âI wonât run,â you protest firmly, knowing that he was fully joking. Eyes lingering on Seungkwan for a moment before you look back to Jihoon, âI made a promise when I agreed to stay here. I promised Iâd look for my father, I canât hold myself to that if you wonât let me.âÂ
âStaying with us is putting yourself at risk,â Seungkwan shrugs in your periphery, âif you donât mind that, I donât mind you joining us.â His gaze travels to Jihoon, his lips parting, âWeâve had witness reports, I donât see why we should stop looking when we still have information coming in.âÂ
âYou might have a point, Boo. But are witness reports a justifiable reason to put her in harmâs way?â The commander rebukes, his hands falling to his sides. âBy taking her out with us, weâre placing an unnecessary burden on our shoulders.âÂ
âIf I lose the opportunity to search for my father,â fists clenching at your sides, your nails digging into the skin of your palms, âthen any future chances of finding him will be nearly impossible.âÂ
Jihoon looks at you, eyes searching yours, his gaze hardening. You think heâs about to refute you, before he starts speaking again. âYou need to follow the orders of every captain youâre on patrol with. No sidetracking them. Am I clear?âÂ
âYes,â you nod, âof course.â Unsure of how to show your gratitude, you bow towards him.Â
âIâm not going to be the one ordering you to join them,â the commander huffs as you rise, âthatâs up to your discretion.âÂ
It feels like no time at all before you reach the cityâs streets accompanying Seungkwan on his rounds.Â
âIt feels like thereâs more people here than usualâŚâ You note as you walk, having to move to the side several times to let flocks of people pass by as the street lay cramped.Â
âMind yourself,â Seungkwan notes, pulling you to the side, out of the way of a passing cart. âTry not to wander off or something. Remember that youâre here to keep me company on my rounds.âÂ
âSorry I was just distracted by everyone!â You say, brushing off the dust on your pants, âThe cityâs much livelier now.âÂ
His eyes twinkle and he smiles voraciously; you can sense him relax. âWell, thereâs a summer festival happening soon, things are busier, Iâll give you that.â His smile wanes just a bit, âOf course, some of those loyalists are acting pretty strange too. What Iâm saying is, watch yourself, alright?âÂ
As you walk down the street with his division, no one comes within a few yards of you; they step away as soon as their eyes catch sight of the blues. Youâd noticed this phenomenon briefly when youâd first joined the Hwarang on their rounds, but it seems clear that the people of Seorabeol hold some sort of respect for these men.Â
You stop every so often to ask some of the less intimidated passersby if theyâd seen your father. Yet, after a few hours of searching, you finally meet someone who claims to have seen a man matching your description.
âOh, yeah⌠I think I mightâve seen that guy a while back, over at Joonâs.â As he speaks, he points toward a store selling inkstones and brushes.
âThank you!â You say as Seungkwan catches your eye, giving you a stern look. It almost looks as if heâs going to scold you whenâÂ
âYou there! Are you from the Kang household?!â The cry comes from a Hwarang, and Seungkwan turns from you, his lips tightening into a thin line. âYour household is currently under investigation by order of the Crown.âÂ
âWell shitâŚâ Seungkwan sighs out, reaching for his sword as he looks at the men in question. âI guess they would choose the worst possible time to stir up trouble.âÂ
Like leaves scattering in a storm, the townspeople move out of Seungkwanâs way as he moves towards the commotion. For a moment you panic in the mass of fleeing citizens, but perhaps realize itâs best. If you stay too close, you may distract Seungkwan from his duties.Â
You duck off into a nearby alley to watch, planning to return to the men once the tension simmers.Â
âHey kid,â a gravelly voice of an elder shopkeeper cries out, âCome over here, you donât want to get caught up in that.âÂ
Time and time youâd been told to be wary of strangers while with the Hwarang, and youâre about to politely refuse his gesture when you realize that his shop is the one that the civilian had pointed out to you just moments earlier.Â
âExcuse me, but is this Joonâs?âÂ
âYes,â the man nods, âIt is.âÂ
âGreat!â You cry out, only before being interrupted by another shop employee.Â
âKang! This guy was just with the Hwarang!â
âWhat?!â The elder says, his eyebrows raising.Â
âHuh? Iâm not a member of the Hwarang.â You push, but the elder already seems to be backing up into his shop, obviously disinterested in helping you now. âNoâitâs not like that! Iâm just looking for someone!â Even if youâd just been walking with them, their reaction seems a bit excessive.Â
A laugh behind you and you see Seungkwan standing there with his arms crossed, âYou really have the shittiest luck, donât you? Still, I guess you could say the same about them, or me.â He gives a small, unconcerned shrug before reaching for his blade and barreling his way through the door of the shop.Â
Joonâs explodes with the clang of blades, men swearing and scrambling.Â
When you return to the Hwarang headquarters, Seungcheol has a number of⌠less than pleasant words to say. Seungkwan and you kneel for quite some time as the colonel berates you before the other speaks up.Â
âYou donât need to lose your head over it Seungcheol,â Seungkwan sighs, âAfter all, we arrested a couple of loyalists.â Â
After the fighting was finished, youâd discovered a massive arms cache, as well as plans for a new meeting for the loyalists. No one had bothered to explain to you what had been going on, however, and youâd been completely lost.Â
âNot something to lose my head over?â Seungcheol frowns, âMy head is right where it belongs. Perhaps you should inquire after yours. The man claiming to be Joon Hyunjin was, in truth, Kang Kwanghyeon, a loyalist spy. You were aware that the Hwarang were allowing him to operate in hopes of gathering enemy intel?âÂ
âYes,â Seungkwan nods, rising to his feet as Mingyu walks into the hall, âbut we didnât have a choice this time. I had to bring him in.âÂ
âWell at least it wasnât a total bust,â Mingyu adds, âLike Seungkwan said, they did arrest some guys.âÂ
âBut donât you feel bad for Wonwoo and Chan?â Soonyoung asks, trailing behind Mingyu. Had they been outside the doors this whole time? âThey were staking out the place to keep an eye on Kwanghyeon.âÂ
The corners of Soonyoungâs mouth twitch into a smile, but Wonwoo interrupts him to continue. âWe appreciate your concern, Soonyoung, but nobody needs to lose any sleep on our account. We hadnât been getting anywhere with him the last few days, Seungkwan did us a favor.âÂ
Chan nods in silent agreement. âHis arrest is over and done, you wonât hear any complaints from us about it, though.âÂ
âYouâre the definition of stoic and reasonable,â Junhui sighs out, crossing his arms, âSeungkwan on the other handâŚâ It doesnât seem as if heâs going to let Seungkwan get away without rubbing his mistake in his face.Â
âItâs all my fault,â you say, âSome loyalists were causing trouble, so I tried to get out of the way⌠I was going to go back to Seungkwan after it settled but the crowds pushed me too far away.âÂ
âBut who was tasked with looking after you?â Seungcheol asks, his eyes glaring at you, expression hard and angry. âA captain of the Hwarang canât even track a charge. Is this the best we can do?â When youâd first met Seungcheol, heâd been nice, if anything a little quiet. After his injury, however⌠It was as if heâd become an entirely different person.Â
âI told her she could go.â Jihoon says as he walks into the hall, âThey were only following orders.â
Seungcheolâs eyes trail him as he moves to stand at the head of the room. He gives the commander a tight, wry smile, but only receives a peaceful, impartial glance in return.Â
âIf youâre here, then that means youâre done interrogating Kwanghyeon, right?â Mingyu asks expectantly.Â
âTheyâre going to wait for a day when the wind picks up, then set Seorabeol on fire and kidnap the King while everyone else is losing their shit.â Jihoon answers, âSo they say, at least.â His voice is calm and measured, but you can all feel the import of his words.Â
âBurn down the city?â Junhui scoffs, âThose loyalists are crazier than I thought.âÂ
âWhatever their reasons, we cannot ignore them,â Hansol says plainly.Â
âTheyâre probably meeting tonight to scramble together a plan without Kwanghyeon in it.â Jihoon says, âWe need to get ready to move out.âÂ
âUnderstood,â Hansol nods.Â
âFinally,â Junhui says as he stretches, several pops coming from his back, âIâm getting chills.âÂ
Even though each man displays their professionalism differently, they are all clearly prepared. As they quiet down, Jihoon turns towards you, as if heâd only just noticed youâre standing there.Â
âWe did get some information on Heo, apparently he visited Joonâs with some men from the west.âÂ
âWhat?âÂ
âSo, the rumors that he was seen in Seorabeol were true, but thatâs all there is to it.âÂ
There are so many questions running through your head that you want to ask but you know that no one here has an answer for them.
Preparations for the raid begin immediately after the captains are all gathered in the main hall. There was even more commotion by the time dinner rolled around. The halls now darkened save for the braziers and candles that light the entrances and walls. The tension is thick enough to cut with a knife.
 It still affects you all the same. Your encounter at Joonâs created some of their current headache, and you hope to make up for it. Yet, any offer of assistance now is rebuked, it became quite clear that you have very little to offer when it comes to preparing for a raid. At the end of it, you stick to the wall, standing there quietly to avoid being a burden.
âYoungmin has only twelve men ready to fight,â Hansol murmurs to Mingyu.Â
âAnd Jihoon and I have twenty-four a piece, everyoneâs sick!â Mingyu says exasperatedly. There had been a swift food poisoning epidemic earlier in the week leaving many men bedridden. Itâs like theyâre now divided in half. Youngmin would lead a group of a dozen men to Wonweol Inn and Jihoon would lead twenty-three to Jeolin Inn on opposite ends of the city. âDo you think weâll bring âem along tonight?â Mingyu asks, âItâd be perfectâŚâÂ
Them?
âI heard they wonât see combat for a while. Theyâre having⌠difficulty adjusting.â Hansol frowns. âThey stop listening to orders as soon as they see blood. Itâs rather inconvenient.â
The topic confuses you, yet you feel as if youâd heard something similar a while ago. Both of the captains hadnât realized that youâre listening to their conversation. But itâs crucial that you donât speak up.Â
âTheyâve gotta be spinning in their graves⌠Didnât they choose to do this so they could fight?âÂ
âMingyu⌠You can only say that after someoneâs actually dead.â
âI guess youâre right,â the younger of the two captains sighs out, âThey arenât really dead, are they? Theyâre actually harder to kill nowâŚâÂ
Now you really know youâre not supposed to be listening to this. To remove yourself from the area, you quickly begin to walk outside of the main hall, but as you open the door, you nearly run into another figure.Â
âHuh? Whatâre you doing here?â Youngmin says as he holds his arms out to steady you as you brake in front of him.
âOh⌠I⌠I couldnât just sit thereâŚâ You explain to him how you feel useless in this situation, that youâd left your room to try and help but found nothing you could do.Â
âOf course,â he smiles, trying to comfort you, âI know how you feel! The men are pretty excited, arenât they?âÂ
âYes,â you nod, not knowing if excited was the best term for him to use. Bloodthirsty may have been better.Â
âWould you care to join us?â He asks simply.Â
âWhat?!â You sputter out, not expecting him to say that. âYou mean go on a raid with you? I donât think that I couldââ
âYou see, many of my men are out with food poisoning, so weâre a bit understaffed. We could certainly use a messenger, but if youâd rather not, thereâs no need to feel obligated.â
âWell, alright,â you nod, remembering that Youngminâs group had lost the most men due to the sickness, âif Iâll just be a messenger, it should be okay.âÂ
His face splits into a grin and you find yourself on the way to Wonweol Inn to accompany their raid.
After you arrived at Wonweol, you were sent off on several short errands nearby. When you return, you hear Junhui talking to Seungkwan.Â
âLooks like weâve hit the jackpot on this one. Not sure if theyâre brave, or stupid, for meeting right next to a government building.â Junhui says, glancing at the building next to the Inn.
âI knew theyâd be here,â Seungkwan sighs, âAfter all, theyâve had a record of meeting at Wonweol.â
âSure,â Junhui says, crossing his arms, âbut the night Kwanghyeon gets arrested? That just seems sloppy to me. Arenât they afraid of looking suspicious?âÂ
âWell obviously theyâre somewhat less than normal,â Seungkwan quips, âThey are meeting at Wonweol, arenât they?âÂ
Their conversation is somewhat lighthearted, which doesnât quite match the subject matter. As you approach, Soonyoung notices you and jogs over.Â
âHowâd it go?â He questions, âDid you see anyone from the Guard?â
 You shake your head before answering, âTo be honest, I didnât really see anyone nearby.â
âSo, they still havenât made their move? We told them that weâd be here before darkâŚâÂ
âCalm down, Soonyoung,â Junhui says as he walks over, lightly slapping the other on the back, âIt wonât do us any good if they show up anyway. If this is gonna happen, weâve gotta do it ourselves.âÂ
âI guess⌠Itâs just that running in on our own seems a little reckless?â Soonyoung frowns, and Kangjoon, whoâs on standby behind Soonyoung, nods in agreement.
âIt is reckless.â He asserts, âWe should wait for the Guardâs reinforcements.â
âIf you believe thatâs the best course of action,â Youngmin cedes, âThen why donât we wait a little longer.â
Yet, no matter how long you wait, the officials still havenât made it.Â
You find yourself looking up at the sky. The moon inching further across the scape the longer you stay in the recesses of Wonweol.
âItâs getting lateâŚâ Junhui murmurs.
âWhat do you want to do, Chief?â Seungkwan asks Youngmin, âItâd be pretty shitty if we just sat here all night.âÂ
Youngmin had been quiet all this time, yet when Seungkwan spoke to him, he stood up, ready to address his men.
âWe canât wait a moment longer. Seungkwan, Junhui, Soonyoung: you all, follow me.âÂ
Seungkwan nods quietly but firmly as Kangjoon speaks up, âI will secure the front entrance so you guys can have at it.âÂ
âArenât you coming?â Soonyoung questions, surprised.Â
âItâs all good,â Seungkwan quips, âI mean, we donât want him in the dark and then mistakenly stabbing us you know? Oh, actually⌠We may mistakenly stab him.âÂ
âWhat are you suggesting, Seungkwan?â Kangjoon frowns as he shifts his weight from foot to foot.Â
âNow, now.â Junhui intervenes, âIf you want someone charging, we want someone reliable anyways. So, with that said, take care of the outside, Kangjoon.âÂ
âCan you stay away from the Inn?â Youngmin turns as he asks you, âThings are going to get dangerous. That place is full of rebel soldiers. We donât intend to allow them to escape, but⌠better safe than sorry.âÂ
âAlright,â you say as he smiles at you, motioning for the men to join him in rushing the inn.Â
The battle begins in earnest. The yells of men and the clang of swords fills the air soon after the Hwarang make their way inside, the sounds roll out of the doors and windows of the inn.Â
You can hear feet pounding up the stairs, the screams of men dying and the wet thud of bodies dropping to the floor.Â
âDamn it!â You hear Junhui shout out, âThereâs too many of them! We need backup! Is there anyone outside?!âÂ
There had been moments prior, but all of the men whoâd come with the captains had run around back and couldnât hear Junhui call out. Kangjoon, on the other hand, is stationed outside, arresting any man attempting to flee the building.Â
Is the only person left to really help you? Your thoughts interrupted when Youngmin yells outâ
âSeungkwan! Are you alright?!â
 âDamn it Soonyoung! Donât die on me!â Junhui calls out from somewhere else inside the building.
You have no desire to enter a slaughterhouse, with men killing and maiming one another. Even if you do, you have no illusions about your skill with a blade. Youâre sure to be killed before you even draw it.Â
Perhaps though, instead of fighting, you can rescue the wounded and pull them from the inn. This is how you find yourself drawn closer to the fray, only running inside when you hear Junhui yell out once again.Â
Inside, itâs pitch black. The smell of blood hits your stomach like a fist. Black masses lay crumpled on the floor; the bodies of dead or dying men. Where are Seungkwan and Soonyoung?Â
Entering the building had seemed a good idea on the outside, but now that you look around the charnel house, you realize that there is no way you can carry two men outside.Â
With the fighting going on, and in the darkness too, youâd only be an impediment to the Hwarang should you choose to stumble around blindly in the darkâ Looking around the inn, you cannot see a singular face that you recognize. Itâs not until an unfamiliar face shouts out at you and raises their blade, do you fully realize the severity of your situation.Â
Yet, before the blade meets your flesh, another sword juts out and parries it away from you.Â
âHey, hey, hey!â Junhui shouts out to the revivalist, âYouâre fighting me!â The Hwarang swings again and ends up burying his sword deep into the manâs stomach.Â
Eyes trained on the blood pouring from the wound and now the manâs mouth, you canât find it within yourself to look away.
âWould you mind checking upstairs?â Junhui asks quickly, his eyes trained on a few more men stumbling into the main room, âNo oneâll get past me. I promise!â With that, he pushes past you and heads towards the group of men, your eyes focusing on the bright crimson trailing down his hand from a cut heâd received earlier. âGet going!â He calls out as his blade crashes against anotherâs.
And so, you do, quickly slipping by the throng of fighting bodies as you travel quickly up the staircase, your feet thudding along the wood.Â
The scent of blood has traveled upstairs too, stinging your nose with its metallic tang as you look around the hall. Without another thought, you open the nearest door and run into the room. It seems like this darkened corner of the inn hasnât been tainted with bloodshed yet, the interior clean and tidy.Â
âPray tell, why are you here?â A voice calls out from the dark and you realize you arenât alone. At the open window, someone stares off into the darkness, the breeze of the night carrying his voice to you.
He wears no uniform belonging to either the revivalists or the Hwarang, just pale-yellow robes embroidered with a flower you canât make out in the dark.Â
Even as you stand shocked, you have a plethora of questions; Why is he here? What is he doing? Who is he?Â
It seems like he hasnât partaken in the battle, only looking to the streets coated in moonlight as the fighting wages downstairs. He seems calm, almost serene in the way he stands and throws a look back to you.Â
âWho are you?â You find yourself asking as his reddened eyes pierce into yours.Â
âAre you the one asking questions now?â A small smile dances along his lips as he only replies with a question himself. âWorry about where you are more than youâre worried about me.âÂ
His words snap you from the tranquility of the moment. Right, heâs an enemy, isnât he? Instinctively, your hand reaches for the blade at your hip, his brow raising at your movement.Â
âPlanning on joining the fight?â As his gaze lingers on the steel, his eyes widen, âWait, is thatâ?â The man now stands facing you directly, taking a step towards you as his eyes remain fixated on the blade.Â
Just then, the door to the room flies open and a bloodied warrior saunters in, looking frantically to the stranger, âHey, the Hwarang raidedââ His report stops when he lays eyes on you, âWho the hell are you?!â Without hesitation, he reaches for his blade after not recognizing you as one of his own, and begins to swing at you. Although, before his blade can reach your head, a loud shout comes from the first man youâd encountered.Â
âQuiet!â Almost in a blink of an eye, heâd unsheathed his own sword and charged at the already bloodied man, downing him with a singular strike. Once the man falls to the floor, the closer of the two looks to you, âDidnât I tell you? You should be more concerned about yourself.â
âWhy did youâŚâ Your eyes still focused on the man who lays dead or dying at your feet, âIsnât he your ally?âÂ
âIf he were an ally, I wouldnât have cut him loose.â His self-possession quiets you as he sheathes his sword.
Itâs obvious that he isnât a member of the Hwarang. You donât know his purpose here either.Â
Above anything, his gaze captures yours, enamoring your senses as if he were the only thing that matters right now. His eyes draw you into a lucid hypnosis, filling you with doubt about if he is a threat to you at all.
ââŚThank you,â youâre able to say once you regain a bit of composure.Â
A smirk crawls to the corner of his mouth, âLooks like you have some manners despite staying by the Hwarangâs side.â Heâs mocking the men that had taken you in, and yet, you canât bring yourself to argue against what heâs saying.Â
âWhy did you save me?â Questioning as his gaze falls to the blade at your hip.Â
âDoes that belong to you?â Ignoring your question, he imposes his own. His eyes glimmer almost burgundy from the silver light of the moon refracting into the room.Â
âIt doesâŚâ your hand now hovers near the blade as he lets out a soft laugh.Â
âThen you can thank your blade.â Before you can ask him why, he turns but not before giving you a sly wink. âMy business here is done. You can do whatever you want.â He takes his time walking towards the open window, jumping through it without any hesitation or final words.Â
Your feet carry you to the window, but there isnât any sign of the stranger. No footprints, no up kick of dirtânothing. Heâd made it clear that he wasnât aligned with either side here tonight, so then why had he been at the inn?Â
Standing there dumbfounded, you sense a presence entering the room behind you quietly. A prickle on the back of your neck and you slowly wrap your hand around your blade.Â
âAre you alright?â The voice of Lee Chan startles you and you spin on your feet. You look at him with a puzzled expression, hadnât he gone to Jeolin with Jihoon? Itâs then your shoulders let go of their tension for a moment, reinforcements had arrived.Â
đđ˛đ¤đ˛đ°đą 2đŤđĄ, 661 - đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Ever since the raids on both Wonweol and Jeolin Inn, the Hwarang had become stricter on their rounds around Seorabeol, looking for and capturing any of the Baekje revivalists that had escaped that night. Rumors had begun to plague the streets that the loyalists were looking for revenge on those who tried to stop their rebellion. On top of that, the Hwarang were under harsh scrutiny of their opposers in the Crownâs court, despite them having stopped a meeting that was calling for the kidnapping of Sillaâs monarch.Â
Yet as the days creeped more lethargically into the summer, it seems as if the tensions that had arisen earlier in the season were dying down. Life was somewhat steady again. And due to your efforts during the battle, the Hwarang were growing more receptive and encouraging of your involvement with them. A small victory, for sure, but you were now allowed to complete chores in solitude now rather than being watched over by one of the captains. Thatâs where you find yourself now, sweeping away the dust that had accumulated in the overnight winds in front of the complex.Â
Youâre humming to yourself, brushing the boom atop the agate stone of the entrance when you hear gentle footsteps walking up the stairs to the main gate.Â
âExcuse me,â a soft voice calls out to you, âIs this the Hwarang headquarters?âÂ
You look up from your work, your lips parting in mild surprise at seeing a familiar face, âIt is.âÂ
âAh, yes- hello,â the man smiles at you, the sunlight glimmering off of the purple silk of his robes, he then pauses, his eyes widening. âYouâreâŚâÂ
âHuh?âÂ
As if he had telepathic means to tell if youâd strayed away from your task, the front entrance of the hall swings open, Jihoon standing in the doorway. He looks from you to the man and then back to you, pausing as if to let you speak.Â
âCommander,â eyebrows raising in surprise, âThis is-âÂ
Before you can finish speaking, the stranger almost gleefully runs to the commander.Â
âI knew it!â he says, an unhidden delight in his words as he smiles at Jihoon, âItâs me, Seokmin, long time no see!âÂ
âY- Wait, Seokmin?â Jihoon looks surprised as the other announces himself, âWhat are you doing here?!âÂ
A laugh from Seokmin, âAre you surprised? Iâm visiting Seorabeol with the Crownâs orders.â He waves his hand, âBut forget about that. I canât believe it was you connected to the Hwarang! I couldnât believe it until I saw it with my own eyes. Congratulations, you really followed your and Hoseokâs dream.âÂ
The name lingers in the air heavily for a moment between the two, youâve never heard of a Hoseok before. Looking at the two of them, it mustâve been at least an acquaintance of theirs.Â
Jihoon doesnât let the weight last, breaking it with a small smile. âCome on, if I were to fully do that, Iâd be a general by now. The Hwarang arenât treated much better than the city guard at this point.âÂ
âStill,â a somewhat nostalgic look in Seokminâs eye, âIâm sure heâd be happy either way. The Hwarang are famous in Seorabeol, and gaining even more notoriety in other cities. With the raids last month, youâve gained even more popular support.âÂ
Jihoon looks humble for a second, breaking his gaze with Seokmin to look at the ground. âWeâre still working on that,â he mumbles out as the other laughs at him.Â
It was an odd thing to see Jihoon flustered, youâd really only seen a mild variant of his embarrassment when Seungkwan would really get under his skin. But youâve never seen his cheeks go flush before. With Seokminâs teasing and knowledge of something that seemed to have happened years ago, it would suggest that theyâve known each other for a while. Are they good friends?Â
Once you sense their conversation coming to a lull, you speak up, âCommander, can I ask who this is?âÂ
âOh, yeah. You two havenât met, I take it?â Jihoon muses and turns to look at you.Â
âOh, I havenât introduced myself yet.â Seokmin nods, âMy name is Lee Seokmin. Iâm a Naegeumwi.âÂ
You introduce yourself quickly.Â
âItâs nice to meet you,â he smiles and gives you a short bow.Â
Jihoon then gazes at the cloudless, sunny sky for a moment, âWe donât need to talk outside like this, why donât you come in?âÂ
As the two make their way inside, you set the broom that is still in your hands next to the doorway and scurry off to the kitchen. You return to them some while later holding a tray of tea and assorted goods. After you set down the tray, Jihoon tells you to stay, so you take a seat a little way away from where the two are conversing.Â
âYou said youâre here on Crown orders? What are you here for?â Jihoon asks, his hand hovering over his steaming cup of tea.Â
âIâm currently working in one of the Sodang units.â Seokmin explains. He goes on to say a few more things about his duties, but youâre unfamiliar with a majority of the lingo they use, so you try to follow along to the best of your ability.Â
Jihoon, glancing at you and seeing your viable confusion, speaks up, âHeâs in the Naegeumwi, entrusted with protecting King Munmu and his family.âÂ
âOh wow,â you look at Seokmin, âIâm honored to meet someone with such a high ranking.âÂ
âPlease,â he says, bowing his head humbly, âI only acquired this position because of the connections my father has.âÂ
âWhy would someone with his rank need to visit the Hwarang?â You question Jihoon. While the Hwarang work under the Crown, there was no direct connection, whereas it seems as if Seokmin works quite literally with the king.Â
âAre you asking why heâd know a bunch of washed-up nobles and commoners like us?â Jihoon asks, almost teasingly. You nod gently, so as to not offend him. âYou see, not only is Seokmin a Naegeumwi, but his fatherâs father was Lee Alcheon.â Once again noting your confusion he clarifies, âA Sangdaedeung under Queen Jindeok some years ago. He opened a fairly prestigious school after his time in office, and now Seokmin here is the heir to it. The school I attended socialized often with the Lee school and thatâs how I came to meet him.âÂ
âThatâs right,â Seokmin nods, âWhen I heard that I was heading to Seorabeol I knew that I had to find you.â His eyes shine with admiration towards Jihoon, but the commander just scoffs and rolls his eyes at him.Â
âFlattery wonât get you anywhere, Lee,â Jihoon sighs, âAnd remember: Seorabeol isnât exactly a relaxing getaway.âÂ
âIâll keep that in mind⌠However, even if it is dangerous, it seems even a woman can join the Hwarang?â Seokmin looks at you coyly before returning his gaze to the commander. He judges both the surprised look and glare from Jihoon for a moment before raising his hand to his mouth in surprise, âWas that supposed to be a secret?â He waits a moment, seeing as thereâs no answer, he continues, âItâs not difficult to tell. I mean itâs not her fault.âÂ
âI know,â Jihoonâs probably recalling the first heâd met you; heâd been one of the first to figure it out, âOnly a fool couldnât see.â He resigns himself into a sigh, âHer reasons for being here are somewhat complicated, so weâre having her dress as a man for now. Only a handful of men in the Hwarang know of her circumstance, so Iâd prefer if you didnât speak about it in front of anyone.âÂ
âI understand,â the guard agrees.Â
The three of you talking mustâve drawn the attention of the captains, because as Seokmin was about to begin teasing the commander some more, they slowly began to filter in.Â
âSeokmin!â Junhui says as he sees the guard, running over to him and throwing an arm around his shoulder, âI thought youâd said youâd visit sooner!âÂ
âWe thought we heard your voice somewhere, Wen thought he was hallucinating,â Mingyu notes as he greets Seokmin.Â
âJunhui, Mingyu,â a smile curling onto Seokminâs lips as Junhui relinquishes him from his grasp, âAnd everyone else! Long time no see.âÂ
âCanât believe youâre in Seorabeol too now, are you here to train?â Junhui asks.Â
âDonât be stupid, Wen. I bet heâs here to protect something or someone important, right?â Soonyoung questions as he looks to the guard.Â
A breathy chuckle from Seokmin, âItâs⌠something like that.âÂ
âIf youâre in Seorabeol, then it mustâve been a good job offer.â Hansol notes, as he looks at Seokmin.Â
Seokmin nods silently to affirm him while Seungkwan speaks up, âIf thatâs the case: be careful. Donât be stupid and go off dying on us.âÂ
âThank you for the warning,â Seokmin looks to the elder, âIâll keep that in mind.âÂ
âWe should go drinking to celebrate someday, hell, we could go now if you want!â Junhui shouts out, eager to get out of the headquarters for a bit.Â
The rest of the captains surround Seokmin for a while, immersing themselves in conversation and banter with the guard as he, too, seems to get lost in it all. So, he really did know all of them.Â
âDespite him being in the Naegeumwi, and heir of his grandfatherâs schoolâŚâ Jihoonâs eyes hold a fond warmth as he looks onto the commotion happening in the room. âHe doesnât hold that over the heads of the ranks lower than him. No one can escape his amiable nature.â The commander then turns to you, âWhenever he visits, be sure to let him in.âÂ
âAlright,â you nod, not bothered by that order at all. Seokmin seemed to bring a warmth to the Hwarang men that you hadnât seen too often, it was probably good for them.Â
The men spent an exorbitant amount of time regaling about memories and incidents that had happened with their friend, and before they or you knew it, evening descended upon the compound with the orange glow of the setting sun. Seokmin notes this at one point and says he has to depart back to his duties.Â
âIâll try to drop by again soon,â Seokmin smiles, a twinkle in his eyes, before he turns on his heels and heads towards the city. You watch him as he leaves, his tall figure becoming smaller and smaller with every step before he eventually disappears down the pathway.Â
Even if he was an important person and a friend of the Hwarang, he was an enigma to you. Seokmin was assuredly high amongst the bone-ranks, maybe even higher than the Hwarangâs commander, yet upheld himself with integrity and mindfulness to everyone he came across. Youâd never been made aware of a noble that was like that before, most adhering to the rigid structure of the realm.Â
đđ˛đ¤đ˛đ°đą 15đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Itâs hot. Blazingly so. The city is blanketed by a heat so unknown to you that you found yourself perspiring as you awoke that morning. Youâd thought youâd been sick until you walked into the main hall and saw the other captains in a similar state to yourself. There was nothing to be done about it except for staying in the shade or perhaps cooling off by a river.Â
Yet, thatâs not what was in store for you. Ever since your actions on the nights of the inn raids, Jihoon has been much more forgiving in his attitude, allowing you to resume your patrols with the captains. And seeing as Kim Mingyu was about to head out, you decided to tag along.Â
You regret that decision almost immediately when you step onto the cityâs streets, the crowds not doing anything to damper the rays of sun beaming down onto you.Â
âMingyu?â You ask as the two of you walk down the street, âThe Hwarang patrol both night and day, right?âÂ
âThey do,â he nods, wiping the sweat that had accumulated around the headband on his forehead, âWhy?âÂ
âWhy is it that you do? Wouldnât that be more of the city guardâs job?â You question as you pass by an armory, the heat of its fires only causing you to perspire more.Â
âBecause most of the city guardâs been called to the front,â his shoulders shrug, âEmperor Gaozong called them to help his forces root out Goguryeo last month so theyâve had a decline in their numbers⌠Iâm not sure when theyâll be back, I heard the King was leading generals to Siigok Garrison so I can only assume itâll be a while.âÂ
âSo, youâve become the city guard then?â
âI mean, in a way,â he thinks, âWe arrest thieves, people whoâre looking for fights and who donât pay for their meals. And then there are those who think theyâll just mooch off of merchants...â
It wasnât fully the answer youâd been expecting, maybe along the lines of it. The adoption of the guardâs role was something new, but you couldnât fault them for it if the city needed their swords. Before youâre able to continue to question him, a few men in Hwarang blues down the road seem to be trying to wave Mingyu down. Getting closer to the scene, you can make out Junhuiâs figure and a few more Hwarang men.
âHey!â He smiles as the two of you stand before him, he looks to you before asking, âFind anything about your dad?âÂ
âNo,â a small shake of your head, âNothing yet.âÂ
âAh, cheer up,â he says, gently hitting you on the arm as he sees your downtrodden frown, âThereâs always tomorrow.âÂ
âYouâre right,â pepping up slightly at his words. Junhui seems to be able to energize and lighten the mood whenever someone was feeling low, it was something youâd noticed over the course of getting to know him. It was almost as if his optimism was contagious.Â
âDid you find anything fun, Junhui?â Mingyu questions, probably wondering if there was any more reason for Junhui flagging you down other than wanting to say hello.Â
âNothing in particularâŚâ Junhui admits, âBut, all of the people on this street are acting really busy.âÂ
You think heâs being a little over dramatic, but a closer observation of the pedestrians and shopkeepers has you thinking a little more critically. There was almost a nervousness, an anxiety, threading itself through the air and in their movements.Â
âIt looks like theyâre⌠packing up?â You observe, eyeing one merchant in particular boxing away his things.
âYou think theyâre worried about the war with Goguryeo or the Baekje guys?â Mingyu asks Junhui, crossing his arms.Â
âI thought that the Baekje threat was resolved...?â You say, looking from Mingyu to Junhui, confusion seeped into your voice.Â
The taller rests his hand atop the hilt of his sword, âWe didnât tell you, did we? Those Baekje bastards have been showing up again, thatâs why weâve been having extra rounds.âÂ
âEven if we did weaken them at Wonweol,â Mingyu frowns, âI canât really imagine them standing idly around when weâve put some of their men in the ground. And now that the kingâs absent⌠itâs a little trickier for us.âÂ
âWere the loyalists planning on doing something?â You ask, the way Mingyu had spoken leads you to believe something had been in the works.Â
âNot sure,â Junhui says with a shake of his head, âOther than what we found out after the raids we havenât gotten wind of anything else.âÂ
âIt doesnât matter, though,â Mingyu notes, âAll weâve got to do is do our jobs. The loyalists attack Seorabeol, we drive them out. Itâs as simple as that.â The Hwarang just accept the cards theyâre dealt and never seem to complain.Â
âIf the loyalists continue their stunts, then weâre probably going to get orders from the king to do something whenever he gets back,â Junhui sighs, not knowing how long the sovereign would be out of the capital.Â
âWhat do you think heâd decree?â A tilt of your head as you ask, unknowing what more he could make the Hwarang do.Â
âIn the past the Hwarang have fought almost as their own regiment, he might do that.â Junhui shrugs, his hand moving from his sword and down to his side.Â
âThat doesnât happen too often,â Mingyu nods almost approvingly and then turns to you with a joking smile, âYou should join us.âÂ
You laugh at the sudden invitation, knowing full well the offer wasnât real. Seeing as the female version of the Hwarang, the Wonhwa, had been thrown away since before the Hwarang themselves were even conceptualized, it was a long shot to think that you could march along their ranks. As much as you want to help these men, youâre not sure that theyâd fully accept you into their ranks. But if you could aid them like you had on the night of the raids on the two inns, you wouldnât mind doing something like that again.Â
âIf you want me to go with you, I wouldnât be opposed,â you shoot back at Mingyu, cracking a small smile at him. âIf you need me to help, Iâll do whatever I can.âÂ
His smile deepens, the dimples on his cheeks beginning to show, âIâll be sure to keep that in mind if the time comes.âÂ
đđ˛đ¤đ˛đ°đą 18đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ âExcuse me,â you say quietly as you make your way into the main hall, the wooden handle of the teapot in your grasp course on your palm. The heat of its contents rises up to try and weaken your grip on the vessel. âI brought you all some more tea.âÂ
The Hwarang captains and men sit in various spots around the hall, youâre not sure why theyâre convening, but theyâd been in there for at least an hour discussing some matter at hand.Â
âThanks!â Junhui calls out and beckons you over, he takes the pot from your hands and begins to pour tea into his already halfway filled cup, âItâs almost like youâre our servant or something.âÂ
More so a page, but you werenât going to correct him quite yet. You take back the pot and look around for anyone who might need a refill. Spotting Eunseok trying to catch your eye, you make your way over and fill his cup.Â
âThank you,â he says once youâre finished, quickly bringing the cup to his lips and blowing on the warm contents.Â
âItâs no problem,â you smile, voice barely above a whisper as you try not to disrupt the main conversation flowing throughout the hall. As youâre about to move away, Seungkwan swipes the pot from your grasp, pouring his own cup of tea and taking a drink of it. His face contorts for a moment and you question, âDoes it not taste good?âÂ
âIt tastes fine, I guess,â his shoulders shrug as he leans back in his seat, âIt could stand to be a little warmer though, maybe youâre just taking too long to pour it.â
 âOh,â you frown, taking the pot back from him, holding your free hand to the side of the vessel for a moment to test the warmth, âIâll go and brew some more.âÂ
âDonât worry about it,â Soonyoung butts in, motioning for you to hand him the pot, âI like it lukewarm because itâs easier to drink, right, Hansol?âÂ
âRight,â the aforementioned captain nods, âItâs easier to drink on a hot day like this.âÂ
It looks as if Soonyoungâs about to speak again before Youngmin barges into the hall, a stoic expression drawn onto his face.Â
âThe Hwarang have received an official request from the Crown to head to Sabi. All available men must get ready to set out at once,â Youngmin says, a sternness in his voice hinting at a notion of pride somewhere hidden away in its depths. Thereâs general excitement beginning to buzz among the Hwarang before he continues, âIt seems as if theyâve noticed all of our hard work as of late.â Itâs then he lets himself break out into a prideful smile; it was clear he was proud of the work the Hwarang had achieved in the past few weeks.Â
As you scan the faces of the room, there is one in particular that has a sour expression forming as Youngmin finishes.Â
âWe donât have time to celebrate,â Jihoon says, rising to his feet, âWe need to get moving now, so get off of your asses and go!â The captains and other men then begin to follow his lead and stand, âThose loyalists are already in Seorabeol, we need to cut the head off of this snake before it lays any more eggs.â
Once the men filter out and itâs only you and the captains, Jihoon speaks up, âOnly when thereâs somewhere else to go, they tell us to haul ass?â He shakes his head, âWe may not be the Guard or the Watch, but it doesnât mean weâre any less expendable.âÂ
âSoonyoung and Seungkwan,â Seungcheol says after Jihoonâs done mumbling to himself, âYouâll remain here. I know itâs not what you want, but your injuries from Wonweol are still preventing you from active duty.â You glance to his hand, knowing full well that the colonel would be staying behind as well. Â
âSpeak for yourself,â Seungkwan frowns, clearly perturbed by the orders, âItâs not like my injuries didnât recover. But Iâm not at peak performance, even I can realize that. So, if you want me to hang back, I guess I canâŚâÂ
âThatâs bullshit!â Adversely, Soonyoung points to his forehead, the cut heâd received during the raids still an angry pink where the skin had been slashed. âThis is just a scratch, Kwakâs just being too careful.âÂ
âAre you being serious?â Mingyu scoffs at the younger, âI heard you in your room crying about how much it still hurt last night.âÂ
âYou bastard,â Soonyoung pouts, âDonât you want me out there with you guys?â
âOh, believe me, I do, Kwon.â Mingyu shakes his head, chuckling, âI just want you at your best. Not crying into your pillow because of a scratch. Even you heard him, right?â He looks to you for affirmation.Â
âHEY!â Soonyoung whines, you think heâs going to clamp his hand over Mingyuâs mouth but the other moves away before he can. âDonât ask her! And can you try to keep your mouth shut for a little while?â Soonyoung then gives you a sideways glance as if to ask if you really had heard him complaining yesterday.Â
â...Your injury still hasnât healed, Soonyoung.â You donât explicitly admit that you heard his grumblings, even though you had. The band he normally wears with the Hwarang insignia hides the scar well, but without it, like he is now, itâs a stark reminder that he isnât quite ready for the front lines again.Â
âHm, you said you wanted to go with us if we ever got the orders, didnât you?â Junhui interrupts the lull in the room as he asks you a question. âAre you still up for that?âÂ
Even if you said that youâd join Junhui and Mingyu when you were out with them the other day, you thought youâd been joking, or half-joking at least. It would be risky if you did join them.Â
âI donât see any reason why you canât tag along,â Youngmin says with a nod of his head, âOpportunities for the Hwarang to move under Crown command alone are rare.â While heâs supposed to be the leader of the Hwarang, Kwak Youngmin was very easily swayed by his menâs words. Â
âWhat?â Soonyoung says, almost confused as he looks from Junhui to Mingyu. âIf sheâs going with you, then maybe it isnât such a bad idea for me to tag along too, right?âÂ
âYouâre still not where you need to be,â Junhui says, nudging the other with his elbow gently, âJust stay here and heal up.â
âAre you sure itâs okay that I go with you?â You ask, still not fully convinced they want you tagging along with them.Â
The captain and colonel sigh at your reservations. Â
âWe canât promise that you wonât get injured, or worse.â Jihoon says, a distressed glint in his eyes as he speaks to you, âI think you should stay here.â Â
âStaying here would be an undue burden on the rest of us that stay,â Seungcheol argues back, âWeâre not here to be a source of entertainment for you.âÂ
âSeungcheolâŚâ Hansol speaks up, âSo, as long as sheâs not being burdensome, sheâs free to go with us?âÂ
Is he standing up for you? It seems to be the case as Seungcheol looks at him in surprise, his eyes widening at the captain. Â
âYouâre really in favor of taking her along with you?â The colonel asks, his brow furrowing as he tries to understand the rationale. Â
âShe was an asset to us as Wonweol,â Hansolâs shoulders shrug, âTaking that into consideration, I hardly believe that she can be considered a âburdenâ, when recalling that.âÂ
âGreat!â Youngmin exclaims, relinquishing the two from their conversation as his hands clap together. âIâll take full responsibility for your inclusion, that is, if you want to go with us.âÂ
âDo whatever you want to do,â almost as if he can sense your hesitation, Seungkwan speaks up. The two of you make eye contact, and a smaller version of the smirk he almost always has plastered on his face curls to his lips. âJust as long as you know that this is a battle youâre going to, not a party.âÂ
Maybe youâd be able to help them out as you had on the night of the raids. It was a strong maybe, but you couldnât let that hinder your decision making, could you? Â
âIâd like to participate,â you find the words falling from your lips before you have the thought of saying them in the first place. Perhaps it was your subconscious speaking for what you truly want. Â
đđ˛đ¤đ˛đ°đą 24, 661 - đđ˛đąđ°đŚđĄđ˘ đŹđŁ đđŤđ¤đ°đđŤ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ (đŁđŹđŻđŞđ˘đŻ đ đđ˘đ¨đ§đ˘ đ°đąđŻđŹđŤđ¤đĽđŹđŠđĄ) Entering the territory of the former kingdom is more eye opening to you than you had ever thought it would be. Rather than the calmness that had been exemplified by the Kingâs announcements back in Silla, there is an anxious tension wrought in the villages and towns as the Hwarang sweep through. Even though they were only passing by, the inhabitants would warily gaze upon you, the captains, and the rest of the men as if to gauge how hostile their new countrymen would be.Â
The main goal is to reach Ongsan, a former Baekje fortress that stands on the once border between the two Kingdoms. It seems as if the same group of loyalists from Seorabeol had taken over the now-emptied armament and claimed it as their headquarters. The Crown assigned the Hwarang the mission of expelling them, in a way of their gratitude for their performance on the night of the Wonweol and Jeolin Inn raids.Â
Judging from what the captains were saying this morning, it seems as if youâre not too far from your destination. You donât know the layout of this land, the towns are unfamiliar and the faces just as so. Â
For the most part, the men have been silent, only the odd gripe from one of the Hwarang. The absence of both Seungkwan and Soonyoung are notable, their voices seeming to fill in large gaps of silence when in attendance. Itâs not until your troupe stops in front of a walled gate, presumably leading into a city, that Youngmin speaks up. Before the group stands a few other soldiers, from Silla by the looks of their armor. Â
âMy name is Kwak Youngmin, leader of the Seorabeol Hwarang. I am here on orders from Kim Seokmin, an army general under His Majesty King Munmu.â He stands before an officer of the troupe that was already there.Â
Kim Seokmin is one of the most influential members of the Crownâs court. The father of Kim Mingyu and former Hwarang himself, he acquired favor from the kingship due to his efforts in a handful of Baekje rebellions in the decades prior.Â
The officer looks confused, his brow furrowing, âYou were told to report here? Did you not meet with the men from Unghyeon?âÂ
âUnghyeon?â You mouth the word in the same confusion the officer was expressing. Itâs a Silla fortress some distance away from where you all stand now; it hadnât been brought up in any conversation the Hwarang had had on their trek.Â
âSeveral generals and their troops were sent there to convene before the attack,â Hansol leans over to you and whispers, âIf we were meant to meet with them, itâs most likely the message to tell us to do so was intercepted.â Â
âDoes that mean they know weâre coming?â You ask quietly, looking around to the other captains to try and gauge what theyâre thinking. Â
âItâs likely theyâve put the pieces together,â Hansol nods solemnly, âBut I canât imagine they have the numbers to rival both us and the other group.âÂ
âThis could still get messy, though,â you sigh, hoping the break in communication wouldnât be but so impactful to the mission.Â
âRegardless of that, our aid has been formally requested,â Youngmin stands firm as he speaks to the officer, âIf you could relay this to your commandi-âÂ
 âIf thatâs the case then I suggest you try and convene with the Kingâs garrison,â the officer states as he cuts off Youngmin, âWe canât let you in here because we have no idea whatâs waiting on the other side.â
âOur orders say to stay stationed here,â Youngmin frowns, clearly frustrated with the lack of cooperation.Â
âThereâs nothing we can do about this, Chief,â Hansol speaks up, stepping over to Youngmin. âIf they wonât allow us access here, maybe it would be in our best interest to try and find the others.â It looks as if Hansol was going to suggest something else before Kangjoon interrupts.Â
âFind the others?â He shakes his head almost angrily, âKimâs orders were to stay stationed here until we were signaled to enter the city. Why would we ignore a military command when we havenât received anything to tell us to do otherwise? I think we should remain here on standby.âÂ
âIf this was a camp that we were stationed at, that might make sense, Suh.â Hansol states with a frown, âBut this is, or very soon will be, the front lines of a battle.âÂ
âAre you really trying to go against me?â Kangjoon nearly snarls back, the mere thought of someone going against his wishes enraging him, âDonât forget that Iâm the Hwarangâs War Counselor.âÂ
âAnd Iâm the leader,â Youngmin interjects, âHansolâs made a good point. Weâll look for the other groupâs camp and hopefully get a better understanding of the strategy at play.âÂ
And with his words, the Hwarang begin to walk along the narrow pathway surrounding the fortress in search of the other group of generals and soldiers that are on their way from Unghyeon. Your group eventually finds the ally camp to the eastern front of the fortress, wooden spikes that had been hastily made surrounding it. A few soldiers come out to greet a few members of the Hwarang as you enter, they might be friends or family members who haven't seen each other in quite some time. Â
Almost as soon as youâd entered the camp, Youngmin is ushered into one of the tents to speak with a few generals. Youâre not sure whoâs in there, but with the pallid complexion of the Hwarangâs leader upon his exit, you can assume it had been higher ranks than heâd been expecting. Â
The orders are now to travel to the Southern Gate, the opposite end of where your original orders had been to go with a general and his troops. Â
âIf these guys say anything, and I donât think they will, just let me know, okay?â Junhui says as everyone begins to leave the encampment. âPark Kimsuâs not a friendly face around here.âÂ
âWhat do you mean?â You ask, not noticing Mingyu saddling up beside you.Â
âWhat he means is, his fatherâs an enemy of my father,â Mingyu says, a gruffness to his voice as if heâs recalling something. âHis fatherâs probably the one that sent the Watch out the night of the raids to try and take credit for what we did.â Â
âThat and heâs a major prick,â Junhui adds, âI canât imagine his men are much better.âÂ
âCome on you guys,â Youngmin says as he slows his pace in front of you three, falling in line to your steps. âWe canât talk about them like that,â he contradicts his words by letting slip a sly smile for a few seconds before straightening his face and resuming his position at the front of the line. Â
By the time you all arrived and set up your small camp, night had fallen quickly, plunging the surrounding area into an inky black, save for the lights several fires dotted around the site provided. Youngmin, Jihoon and the captains had gone off to speak with Park Kimsu and his officers, leaving you and the rest of the Hwarang to sit around camp with little else to do. Â
They return what feels like hours later, their shoulders sagging and eyes looking tired as if they'd just run for that time instead of sitting in on a meeting. Eunseok, who had accompanied them, walks over to you with a small and lethargic smile. Â
âFor the most part theyâre being cooperative,â he sighs, âThe only reason Kimsu was paired with us is because his father asked for it, though.âÂ
âWhy would he do that?â You ask with a tilt of your head. Earlier, Mingyu has said that his and Kimsuâs families were something along the lines of enemies.Â
âI donât know,â Eunseok shakes his head, âMaybe to rile us up? Regardless of that though, weâre here to watch over the gate and make sure no one escapes.â
âRegardless of that, theyâre treating us like reserve troops,â Junhuiâs voice is strained as he walks over, his arms high over his head as he stretches. Once he drops his arms down, he speaks up, âTheyâve left smaller reserves around the South entrance because the biggest fight is going to happen at the North Gate.â He sounds a little disappointed, as if he were anticipating a big battle. Â
âWe donât know what theyâll do exactly,â Hansol says as he trails after him, âWe may very well see battle.âÂ
But that means waiting and seeing as the sun isnât to rise for a long time, that means waiting overnight. As the crowds disperse and settle into their tents, you find that the Hwarang, at least, are sleeping in shifts so that if the call to arms were to come at night, there would be someone to rouse everyone else. Â
âYou can rest your head on my shoulder if you need to,â Mingyu says as the two of you sit down to keep watch, the flames in front of you seem like theyâre trying to lull you to sleep.Â
âIâm alright,â trying to stifle a yawn behind your hand as you shake your head. Youâd feel wrong trying to sleep when you know these men could get called to face death at any moment. Â
A nervous anxiousness coils around your stomach until you find yourself falling asleep later in the night, not awaking until the sunâs barely peeking over the horizon. When you sit up from the laid down position youâd slept in, you notice that the men had kept a silent vigil all through the night. Even as you were drifting in and out of consciousness, you noted that there were men posted around the camp, looking for anything or anyone suspicious. Â
A little while later a large boom reverberates through the surrounding forest. You first think itâs a crack of lightning, or maybe the subsequent boom of thunder that succeeds it, but the sky is clear today, not a cloud in sight. It had echoed like thunder, startling the birds in the nearby trees, and causing more people than just you to jump in shock.Â
âWhat was that?â You question Hansol as he walks past you, seeming to look for someone coming in from outside of the camp.Â
âIt looks like the main army is beginning to siege the fortress,â he says, his eyes narrowing as scans the tree-line. The soldiers and Hwarang within the camp are moving by now, Â
âLetâs get a move on!â Jihoon shouts out from somewhere deeper in the camp, his voice nearing as he continues to speak, âTheyâre not going to pause the fight until we get there, so get moving!âÂ
âWe were told to stay here,â Park Kimsu says as he emerges from his tent, probably stirred from the commotion outside. The general watches the scramble of men in the camp race for their weapons and armor for a moment before he turns to Jihoon, âYou donât command my men.âÂ
âOur job is to siege the fortress, not sit on our asses and wait for this to pass by,â The commander bites back, he was almost yelling at the general. âWeâre here to root out these loyalists, that wonât happen if we just stay here!â Â
âWe havenât even received orders to push!â Kimsu quips, his brow furrowing at the Hwarang. Â
âIf you have any pride in your position, forget the damn orders and move your men,â Jihoon huffs, straightening the band around his forehead, âThey arenât going to willingly surrender.â The commander and general stare harshly at one another for a moment, almost as if theyâre testing each other in a battle of wills. Jihoon, seeing as it was useless to try to neg the other any further, spins on his heels and begins to stalk off. Â
âWhere are we going?â You whisper to Hansol as Jihoon passes by, muttering something to himself.
 âTo face the enemy head on,â He says quietly, âWhich, in our case, means the Southern Gate. The main fight is meant to happen at the Northern Gate so I wouldnât be surprised if they try to divide our numbers to get more support up there.âÂ
âI see,â You nod, the same nervousness invading your veins once again, it was now riddled with an adrenaline that was probably the only thing making you think clearly.Â
Jihoonâs rage at the general seems to have roused the reserve troops, who now, instead of loitering around the camp, seem to be mostly readied up. Led by both Park Kimsu and Lee Jihoon, the army and the Hwarang march their way to the Southern Gate. Â
It was only a short trek to the destination, but the remains of skirmishes that seemed to have happened moments prior litter the ground. Soldiers, dead and dying, lay on the ground, chunks of wood from the gate lay in reddened splinters as arrows, both broken and intact, lay riddled where fragments of the gateâs doors once stood. The group that had come before you seem to have successfully made it into the city, but not without losses of their own. You can see both Baekje and Silla armor on the bodies of the fallen soldiers. Â
Even if you tried to mentally prepare yourself for what you might see, the reality of it all still shatters your heart. Â
Though the Baekje and Silla forces were nowhere to be seen, had your allies driven them further into the fortress? After a quick moment of assessment, Jihoon orders a few captains to investigate what happened, Youngmin sighing as he does so.Â
âHad we known a group of Silla warriors were coming in beforehand we wouldâve joined them and lost fewer lives.â He frowns as he looks over the scene, looking up once he sees Hansol returning from his survey of the area. Â
âIt looks like our forces attacked the gate earlier this morning, were repelled briefly before the flank on the Northern Gate began,â the captain recounts, looking to Jihoon, âAfter their forces were divided the army at the Southern Gate was able to advance into the fortress.âÂ
âDo you have any word on whatâs happening at the Northern Gate?â Jihoon questions, obviously beginning to silently plan a course of action. Â
âTheyâre still fighting,â Hansol nods, his hand resting on the hilt of his sword as if he can tell what Jihoonâs thinking, âThe Kingâs garrison has yet to advance into Ongsan.âÂ
âLee!â Mingyu shouts out as he returns from his own survey of the area, running from the direction of the pass to reach the stronghold. âThereâs supposedly Baekje reinforcements coming from the west as well, not many, but enough to make a dent in our numbers if we let them.âÂ
Jihoonâs expression of confidence wavers momentarily as he listens to Kim as he approaches, but before he can comment on it, Chan also races over to the group of captains from surveying inside of the fortress. Â
âCommander,â he starts off, a thin sheen of sweat coating his brow, glinting in the daylight now hanging overhead, âItâs believed that the men who led this are heading for the heart of the fortress to try and kill the loyalists trying to run for it.âÂ
The commander thinks after listening to the cumulative reports, contemplating as to what the next move should be. Although Youngmin is the recognized formal leader of the Hwarang, youâd come to learn the most major decisions were given to Jihoon to make. This was no exception, the crowd of captains anticipating his orders while Kimsu was speaking with his own men of what to do next. Â
âIt looks like weâve got our work cut out for us,â Jihoonâs lips curve into a small smile after a moment of silence. âKim, take your men to the pass to deal with any incoming loyalists. Lee, Choi,â he turns to Chan and Hansol, âfollow the men into the fortress, but make sure to keep an ear out if Kim needs any reinforcements at the pass.âÂ
Thereâs nods and affirmations from the captains and officers before the commander turns to Youngmin, âIâm sorry for giving you the hardest one, Chief. Can you speak with the higher ups back at the main camp about a punitive measure for the group that got here before us? As far as both Kimsu and I were aware they werenât supposed to do that, and Iâll bet theyâre doing more in there than just routing out the loyalists. If weâre to do anything about that then weâll need the higher ups permission.âÂ
While an independently run body from the Crownâs army or guard, the Hwarang still need permission to act under that guise of pseudo-Crown rule and dole out their justice.Â
âIâm sure I can do something about it, and if not me, my father,â Youngmin nods, a smile forming as he thinks it over. Youâre not sure who Youngminâs father is, but if his son is the leader of the Hwarang, his position in the Crownâs council must be higher than anyone elseâs father in the organization. It would still be tricky to gain that permission with all of the Hwarang naysayers and adversaries within the council. Â
âEunseok, can you go with him?â Jihoon asks and turns to their youngest member, âSomeone has to keep an eye on him.âÂ
âOf course,â He nods, âIâll do my best.â Â
Jihoon smiles wryly at him before turning to the remaining Hwarang. âThe rest of you are following me into the fortress and to the Northern Gate. As for you,â he looks directly at you, âYou canât go with Youngmin, but other than that itâs up to you.âÂ
You know he doesnât know where to place you. Itâs not as if youâre one of the Hwarang he could command to a role and set you there. Maybe having you decide your own fate was a way to take the burden off his shoulders. Â
âIâll go with you, then,â you say after a moment of contemplation. Along with Jihoon, a group of Hwarang, and a group of regular soldiers, youâll race into Ongsan and try to open the Northern Gate for the Kingâs garrison to make way into the fortress by suppressing the loyalists inside. Â
The groups disperse shortly after, Mingyu and his men heading to the pass, Youngmin and Eunseok leaving for the main camp, Chan and Hansol leaving for the heart of the fortress, and then Jihoon and you making way to the Northern Gate from inside the fortress itself. Â
Jihoon, you and the group of soldiers accompanying you race through the fortress. Seeing it from the outside had hidden how expansive it is on the inside, large courtyards and twisting hallways have your mind running in circles as you slowly run out of breath. You come upon another seemingly empty courtyard before stopping in your tracks. Thereâs someone standing in the middle of it, someone wearing neither Silla nor Baekje armor. In fact, they are dressed more like a noble than a fighter.Â
The sun is shining so harshly onto the courtyard as you approach that itâs hard to get a good look at his face. Itâs obscured in the sunlight and the light yellow of his robes and the glinting silver of a blade in his hand is doing little to help that. Thereâs a strange aura surrounding him, almost as if he's waiting for something to happen.Â
Jihoon, perceptive to that, motions for everyone to stop before encroaching on the character. The Hwarang stop in their tracks, save for one man too eager or arrogant to follow the commanderâs orders and charges towards the figure with his sword out. The stranger seems to have only waved his arm once before the Hwarang falls to the ground, the dull sound of his body hitting the stone below echoing around the courtyard, the clangor of battle raging in the distance.Â
âWhat the hell?!â Junhui shouts out, shoving his way through the throng of Hwarang and over to the fallen man. The manâs unresponsive, a thick pool of blood beginning to stain the ground under him. The rest of the men, first taken aback by the stranger, now glare at him for the loss of their comrade.
âCommander⌠He was at Wonweol!â You say, finally realizing where youâd seen this man before.
âYouâre Hwarang, arenât you?â The stranger speaks up, his blade tapping against the agate stone of the walkway, âI can tell because of those blue robes of yours.â He sighs out, âA bunch of pretty nobles playing soldier, arenât you all old enough to know to stop playing pretend?â
The manâs words are enough to make the already on-edge men agitated. Egged on by the harsh ridicule of someone theyâd only just come upon. Each Hwarang, either noble or not, had their reason for joining. Taking their choice into question was cruel and that was clearly painted on their faces now.Â
âFirst, you ruin my plans at Wonweol and now youâre trying to play hero,â They snicker, âYouâre not even real soldiers, are you?â His gaze travels down to the fallen Hwarang momentarily before lazily and almost arrogantly meeting Jihoonâs eyes, âIâd turn back if I were you, unless you want to end up like your friend here.â
âYouâre the swordsman who beat Seungkwan at Wonweol?â Jihoon asks, the tension in the air thick and palpable as he speaks. âI heard you were quite good, but these are pretty big words coming from such a small man.â The smile on the commanderâs face is anything but amicable.Â
âAnd I heard that you all were talented, for what you are, but this sorry display is telling me otherwise.â The now adversary snickers, once again glancing at the dying, or maybe he was already dead, Hwarang. âThe man I fought at the inn; his name is Seungkwan? Itâs a bit of a stretch to call him a real swordsman.â
You know from watching the men train that Seungkwan is skilled with a sword, but he had been injured by this man. Is his prowess with a blade more prolific than the Hwarang captainâs?
âInsult Boo all you want,â Junhui stands from the body of the crumpled soldier to face the stranger, his hand reaching for the sword at his hip. âBut why did you kill this man?â The hiss of the steel leaving the sheath cries out as he tears it from the scabbard, the captainâs teeth baring. âIf I donât like your answer then I wonât hesitate to tear you down right here.âÂ
âHow prideful,â you can almost hear him roll his eyes, âThe king says for you to âJumpâ and you say, âHow high?â. Why are you chasing after men whoâve deserted their own movement? Or are you trying to let your own men in at the Northern Gate? Either way, your combatants are going to kill themselves before theyâll let you take this place by full force.âÂ
You glance at Jihoon and the men around him, not even one looking as if the otherâs words were outlandish. It seems as if the man in front of you had stopped your assault on the fortress to spare the pride of the Baekje loyalists. From the strangerâs point of view, you can understand what he was doing and why he feels right about it. But that gave him no right to slay one of the Hwarang. Â
âIs taking someoneâs life for the sake of anotherâs pride just?â You speak up, distraught from this situation entirely, âThe only one who can save your pride is you, not letting that responsibility fall into someone elseâs hands.â Â
A grin splits onto the otherâs face, âThereâs some truth in that, I suppose. Are you saying that I should let the Hwarang demolish any pride these men have just to simply gain favor with the Crown?â Despite the curvature of his lips, his voice is not amused. Â
âThatâs not what IâŚâ The reddish-brown tint of his eyes scrutinizes you as you try to justify yourself, quickly falling away with the harshness of his demeanor. Â
âHere I was, thinking you were trying to say something intelligent,â Jihoon steps in once your voice trails off, âbut youâre just acting like a child. This is war, not a council meeting debating ethics!âÂ
âWhat did you just say?â Knuckles turning white with the newfound grip on his blade, the stranger questions accusingly at Jihoon. Â
âThe loyalists started a fight knowing their kingdom had been defeated already, and now theyâre running away in shame because theyâre too cowardly to face the consequence of their actions,â Jihoon argues, a heated tone to his words, âThey donât deserve honor! Theyâre traitors to their new kingdom by trying to incite a rebellion, you think that deserves an honorable death?âÂ
âYou donât seem like a coward,â Jihoon states, âSo are you ready to accept the consequences of what happens when you kill one of my men?âÂ
âThose are some big words,â The stranger says as he raises his sword from his lax position, the gore from the fallen Hwarang still clinging to the blade, âDo you really think you can defeat me?âÂ
The answer isnât verbal, but a ringing sound as their blades meet. They step back from one another, Jihoonâs grip tightening on his sword as he glares at the other. Now, the commanderâs skill seems unrivaled but the thought that this stranger had beaten Seungkwan, the Hwarangâs best swordsman, lingers in the back of your mind as you watch. Â
Next to you, you can see Junhui reaching for his own sword. If he were to leap into the fight, it would most certainly help Jihoon gain the upper hand.Â
âYou canât,â you say and reach out, your hand falling onto his forearm before he turns to look at you. Meeting and fighting with this stranger arenât why you and the Hwarang are here. The mission is to aid the forces at the Northern Gate. It isnât any question whether this man was an enemy, a dangerous one, at that. Â
Even if Jihoon canât defeat him, he would never let the Hwarang abandon their mission, especially after his speech.Â
Junhui turns away from you and watches the two men clash for a moment more, gritting his teeth and finally pulling his hand away from his sword. âLee, Iâm going to take your men for a second if thatâs okay with you!â Â
âJust go already, loudmouth!â Jihoon says as he once again falls away from the stranger, âTheyâre all yours!âÂ
âAlright!â Junhui calls out and turns to the men, âWeâre heading for the Northern Gate, run straight there and donât stop until those Baekje bastards have been put in their place!âÂ
The soldiers roar with a renewed vigor and begin to follow the captain.Â
The stranger huffs something out as he watches the men run off, his hand clenching his sword as if heâs about to follow them.Â
âYouâre not fighting them, so pay attention,â Jihoon calls out to pull the strangerâs focus back to him. âIf you donât, Iâll cut you down from behind instead.â
 âDonât get in my way!â The stranger shouts, bringing his sword down to meet Jihoonâs, the swing causing Jihoon to reel back once receiving it.Â
Now that there is more of a distance between the two, the strangerâs gaze once again travels to Junhui and the running Hwarang. You think for a moment to stop running with the men and try to stand your ground with Jihoon, but relent after a bit, continuing to go further on with the rest of the troops. Â
âKeep running!â Jihoon calls out, closing the distance between himself and the stranger, positioning his sword upwards once more. Â
âYou donât even know your limit,â The stranger scoffs.Â
You stop for a moment, finding yourself unable to keep up with the men and draw your blade instinctively. Knees locking together, your swordsmanship wouldnât be useful in battle but maybe, just maybe, you can buy the other men some time.Â
The next thing you know, a high pitch screech of metal rings out and youâre on the ground. The strangerâs hit had blindsided you, and when your eyes refocus, you see his blade pointing down at you as a trickle of blood runs down your face.Â
âThat bladeâŚâ The stranger murmurs, looking to the steel that had fallen out of your grasp and lay only a foot or two away, âA familiar sight indeed.â Their eyes lock onto yours, âHey, do you even realize whatâs happening? The wound on your face is already starting to heal.âÂ
Your hand flies to your cheek, fingers brushing over where the cut should have been, but it has already healed. The pain had stopped and the blood had staunched itself. The strangerâs crimson eyes widen.
âWho wouldâve thought Iâd meet you here. And a female Demon, no lessâŚâ His gaze is scrutinizing, âWhat is your name? And how did you come across this?âÂ
Before you can answer, a dull clang of metal cries out above you as Jihoon swings his sword from behind while the stranger parries it in front.Â
âGet away!â Jihoon shouts out angrily, holding his sword, ready to strike again.Â
âBastard, stay out of my way!âÂ
âIâm the one youâre fighting!â Jihoon reiterates, âOr do you only prey on the weak? I didnât take you for a bully.âÂ
âHow dare you, you monarchist dog,â The stranger near growls out as Jihoon looks at you.Â
âGo on ahead!â He says and suddenly, energy jolts through you.
You scramble off of the ground reaching for your sword, urgency picking up your feet as you begin to dash away. Even if Jihoon had been there, you donât think heâd seen your cut heal, at least you hope he hadnât.
Demon. One of us.
The words of the stranger reverberate around your head as you run, but you canât dwell on it now as you run to catch up with Junhui and the other men.Â
By the time you and the rest of the Hwarang make it to the Northern Gates, it seems as if the Kingâs garrison had broken through already. Thereâre skirmishes happening all around the entrance but are soon quelled by the introduction of the Hwarang into the fight. Jihoon hadnât arrived as the battles waned to a close and the sun began to sink down into the sky. Several higher ups order a few of the captains to look for any remaining loyalists in the compound, leaving you to stand and wait for a sign of the commander or a returning captain.Â
âIâm sure theyâll be back soon,â a voice says to your right. Youâre met with the face of Officer Jeon, or Wonwoo as youâve come to learn. Like Chan, he acts as a spy for the Hwarang but typically deals with Yamato forces, but he had accompanied the men to Ongsan this time, only showing how much more this mission meant to the Hwarang. âI know they will.â
You can only nod your head in response and scan the area, looking for one of the faces you hope to see return. Every passing moment feels like an eternity, slowly inching by as the sun sinks lower and lower into the sky.Â
 Itâs dusk when you see a figure emerge from the depths of the fortress, the darkening sky obscuring most of their features, but as they near the now lit courtyard you stand in, you can see that itâs a familiar face.Â
âCommander!â You shout out and race over to him, relief flooding your system.Â
âIâm glad to see youâre alright,â Wonwoo says, following closely behind you as you stop in front of Jihoon. âIt doesn't even look like youâve been hurt.âÂ
In the light of the fires, you can see that the Hwarang hadnât been injured, but he wears a dark expression over his face.Â
âI hoped we would have a real fight, but it looks like it was over almost as soon as you all arrived,â he frowns, âheld up by a Hwarang opposer, no less.â
âWho was he?â Wonwoo asks, tilting his head slightly.Â
âHis name is Hong Jisoo. I donât know if his fatherâs a part of the council or if heâs just a lackey under one of them, but heâs clearly very anti-us.âÂ
âBut if heâs still working under Silla rule, why did he try to stop us from going after Baekje?â You question, confused by the swordsmanâs actions, werenât both sides there to stop the loyalists? Something about this isnât settling right with you. âDoes that mean he was betraying Silla?âÂ
âI donât know about that, but I do think he was trying to stop us from getting here,â Jihoon sighs out, closing his eyes as if to recall the situation, âThe soldiers who broke us up were also confused by whatever game he was trying to play. But they didnât try to command him to do anything after weâd stopped fighting, so he must have meant something to them.âÂ
âHe must have some notoriety in their ranks, then,â Wonwoo muses.Â
âHeâs a lazy piece of shit who uses his rank or his money to do whatever he wants, more like,â Jihoon says with a bitter edge to his voice. âIf he flaunts that around he has no right to try and teach me what his definition of pride is.âÂ
Before Jihoon can ramble and rant about Jisoo, Junhui and the detachment of men heâd left with returns to the battle site. Junhui stops for a moment upon seeing the commander before breaking out into a large grin. The smile doesnât last long though as he approaches, the curvature of his grin turning downwards.
 âWe found a few runaways, but they were already dying or dead by the time we got there.â At Junhuiâs words you feel your heart drop. Itâs not that you were sad that the loyalists were dead or that the Hwarang hadnât been able to capture any one of them, only that more lives had been lost in the conflict. Â
âHonorable suicide, then?â Jihoon nods, not sounding angry at the result. âGood for them.â
 âGood?â You ask without thinking, how is that âgoodâ? Only hours prior the commander was trying to stop the loyalists from succeeding in that mission, but now that itâs been done heâs lauding them.Â
âYou donât understand,â the commander says and looks towards you. âAs Hwarang, this isnât good for us. We failed and let them kill themselves. Theyâre dead, what good would it be for me to ignore what theyâve done? It doesnât matter if theyâre an enemy or my friend, a man who dies with his honor intact deserves at least some respect.âÂ
âI guess that makes some senseâŚâ You mutter, not fully understanding the reasoning or what he was trying to convey. Â
His expression softens slightly, âThe longer you stay with us, the more youâre likely to understand our mindset.âÂ
Now that this group has come back together, you make your way to the campsite to meet with the rest of the Hwarang youâd parted ways with that morning. Â
The event of the loyalist takeover of Ongsan and their eventual expulsion from the fortress comes to be known as the Ongsan Rebellion to the citizens of Silla. And while the Hwarang had been called to action, their efforts were stymied with unforeseen circumstances and were able to find little in the way of gaining major approval with the Crown. Communication with the Kingâs garrison and the army alongside him had been poor and much of the Hwarangâs time had been spent waiting for battle with the rest of the reserve troops.Â
And even when they were called to arms, the Hwarang found a strange opponent at every turn:Â Â
Hong Jisoo, who had defeated Seungkwan at Wonweol, had claimed to be a member of the pro-Watch camp of the council during his encounter with Jihoon. It still isnât determined who his family is and why his stance is so firmly against the Hwarang.Â
Hwan Minhyun, the man who had injured Soonyoung at Wonweol was also in attendance at the battle. While little more is known about him, he had claimed to be in allegiance with Hong Jisoo.Â
And then there was Xu Minghao, who also fought along with the prior two men with little mention of his full allegiance. Â
Whoever these men are, itâs clear to see that theyâre no allies of the Hwarang. In fact, it seems as if theyâre set to become one of their greatest enemies. Â
The battle claimed the lives of thousands of men, the king ordering his garrison to behead any survivors they found. Even then, some Baekje loyalists were able to escape westward, further into the territory that used to be their homeland. With the end of the Ongsan Rebellion, the king passes an edict labeling any man that fought alongside the Baekje loyalists to be branded a traitor in the eyes of the Crown and an enemy of the court. Â
đđ˘đđąđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 8đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ With the events of the raid on Wonweol Inn and the Ongsan Rebellion taking place within only a few short weeks of one another, it was causing a certain unrest to take hold within citizens of Silla. The Hwarang are doing their best to double up on their work to make citizens feel protected, but with the return of most of the Guard and Watch, itâs difficult for them to receive missions as big as the raids and rebellion had been. And even if they are assigned a task, the Crown overworks them, seemingly wanting to bleed them dry. Â
The Crownâs approval of any of their missions spreads them thin, even with the newer recruits theyâd received from Podang and Gochang, it isnât enough to keep an appropriate amount of people to instill peace. After many long and arduous meetings, itâs decided that Soonyoung, to slowly introduce him back into his role after his injury, will travel to Hanseong, one of Sillaâs northernmost cities, to do preliminary scouting for future recruits. Â
The burning sun hits your face as Youngmin and you see Soonyoung off, a bag slung around his shoulder having been packed the night prior. Â
âIâll be on my way now,â The Hwarang nods at the two of you, âMake sure no one gets in trouble while Iâm away!âÂ
âIâll try my best,â you smile at him. His presence would be missed at the headquarters, even if the other men didnât want to acknowledge it.Â
 âFind us a solid list of men, it doesnât matter if theyâre nobles or not,â Youngmin notes, putting his hand under his chin for a moment. âBut seeing as itâs Gochang, you might encounter more nobles there than usual. Iâll join you there next month to see who youâve recruited.âÂ
âIsnât there someone who youâre looking for?â You turn to Youngmin, âI remember you mentioning someone once.âÂ
âOh, did we not tell you?â Youngmin sounds a tad miffed, âHis name is Kim Gongmyung. Classically trained and the rumor is that heâs very well versed in strategy.â Â
âTo be honest, I havenât met him but only once or twice,â Soonyoung relents, âBut at the least Iâm sure heâll let me speak to him.âÂ
âThatâs all we need,â Youngmin nods with a small smile, âHis fatherâs on our side in the kingâs council, and if we approach him kindly, Iâm sure itâll be within his interest to help us.â The leader seems confident just by his facial expression, but thereâs an air of unsureness coming from the younger Hwarang. Â
âAlright, Iâm going!â He lets that discontentment fall from his features seconds later, nodding his head before speaking. Soonyoung then turns to you, âIâll do my best to find any information on Heo while Iâm there, so just hang on until I get back!â
âBe careful!â You call out to him as he turns on his heels, bounding out from the main hall and towards the exit. As you watch him leave, and the smaller he seems to get the further he is from you and Youngmin, the more melancholy you feel. Youngmin looks different though, a small smile residing on his face as he watches the Hwarang set out. âYou look excited, are you thinking of all the new members youâre getting?âÂ
âOf course, seeing our numbers increase is great. Even more so if theyâre strong and able,â he says as Soonyoung finally disappears outside of the main entrance. Â
đđ˘đđąđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 27đąđĽ, 661 - đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Time passes quickly after Soonyoungâs departure. So fast that the date of Youngminâs departure for Hanseong arrives with little resistance. The morning before heâs meant to depart, you find him standing in one of the compoundâs courtyards, quietly watching the wind pass through the leaves overhead.Â
âIs everything alright?â You ask as you approach him quietly, not wanting to startle him.
 âHm, oh, hello,â he looks at you with a small smile, âIâm alright, are you doing okay?âÂ
âI am,â you nod, âIâm just thinking about how youâre leaving tomorrow.âÂ
âI see,â he says with a short chuckle, âI canât leave Soonyoung alone for too long, can I? Who knows what sort of trouble heâs already found himself in?âÂ
âIâm sure your absence here is going to affect the men like Soonyoungâs is,â you sigh out, already knowing the feeling of having such a pivotal character of the captains gone for nearly a month now. Youngmin is the Hwarangâs leader. If anything, this will be a larger blow than Soonyoungâs departure.
 âItâs only a month,â he tries to reassure you, âIâve been gone for longer before. And besides, Jihoon will make sure everything runs smoothly while Iâm away.â Youngmin probably isnât aware that his kindness and Soonyoungâs strange but bright personality were things that kept you mentally intact day after day here. With both absent from the headquarters, youâre not sure what kind of emotional blow itâll have on you.Â
Your discontentment with the situation must have placated itself on your face because Youngmin looks at you now with a sad, small smile. Â
âIs there anything you want me to bring back for you?â He questions in hopes that it might make you feel better, âIâm going to stop in Toehwa-hyeon on my way back, did you want a memento from your hometown?âÂ
âOh no,â you shake your head, grateful for his offer, âYou donât have to worry about me.â
 âAre you sure?â Youngmin pushes a little more, âIf thereâs anything I can do for you, and as long as itâs within my power, I will.â You donât want to ask any more of him, heâs so accommodating already that youâd just feel wrong in asking him to bring you something.Â
âThere is one thingâŚâ You pause for a moment, âCould you train me?âÂ
âAre you-?â Youngminâs brow furrows as he thinks of your statement, âAre you talking about fighting?â
 âI am,â you nod quickly.
 âOh no⌠I think that would be a bad idea,â he sounds cautious, tentative, âI get really aggressive when I teach, if I ended up injuring you, I donât think Iâd be able to forgive myself.âÂ
âI seeâŚâ You probably sound defeated, your shoulders shrugging downwards at his words. Â
âBut that statement came out of nowhere⌠Did you have a reason for asking?âÂ
âIf Iâm going to help watch over Shoshin while youâre gone, I want to be able to instead of hiding while everyone else puts in the effort.âÂ
Youngmin chuckles nervously at that sentiment, âBut youâre not one of the warriors, so I doubt youâd ever have to raise your sword to an enemy.âÂ
âYouâre right, but I still want to be able to protect myself if something were to happen,â you insist gently, trying to sound as reasonable as possible.Â
Youngmin mulls it over for a moment before perking up into a smile, âWell, if thatâs the case, Iâd love to teach you a few things.âÂ
The leader runs around for a moment, returning to you with a pair of practice swords and two cords so you can tie up your sleeves without getting hindered by them. Rather than use the traditional wooden practice swords of the Hwarang, Youngminâs opted for the lighter bamboo variant as to not accidentally injure you with the splintery cousin. Â
âLetâs start,â he says as he stands beside you, his own bamboo sword raised outwards. âIâll warn you though, the style we teach at the Kwak school and the Hwarang are a little⌠arduous.â Â
âIâm ready,â you state firmly and raise your own bamboo sword out to the open space in front of you.Â
âThen letâs begin with your stance,â he says, looking towards your feet with a scrutinizing gaze, âYou mentioned youâd trained before, right?âÂ
âIt was mostly for self-defense, but I was taught how to use the blade I have with me,â you say as you look down to your feet, trying to position them correctly. Â
âThen I wonât have to worry about teaching you a new form,â he notes, âJust get into the stance youâre most comfortable with.âÂ
With the smooth grip of the practice sword in hand, you fall back into the stance you have memorized from all your practice sessions. Your hold on the hilt of the weapon tightens as you await instruction. Â
âToo weak!â Youngmin shouts out, different from the calm tone his voice typically carries. âIf someoneâs coming from your front to attack you, the first thing theyâll reach is your sword and your arm. Tighten your grip more or theyâll knock the sword right out of your hand, be wary of that.âÂ
âOkay!â You nod and try to hold onto the sword even tighter, the knuckles on your hand beginning to ache with the strain. It was somewhat endearing to know that he isnât treating you any differently because youâre a girl.Â
âNow youâre holding on too tight,â he notices the tremble from the overworked muscles of your hand, watching the fake blade quiver in the air. âBecause youâll be a bit weaker than most youâll ever fight against, you should try your best to avoid someone attacking you from the front. To do that youâll need to dodge or redirect the blow from their sword, but since youâre holding onto it so tightlyâŚâÂ
Youâre not sure how much time has passed since Youngmin had begun his instruction, but the sun is hanging low in the sky now as you try and retain everything, heâs been teaching you.Â
âItâs getting late.â He muses after you finish swinging the sword for what feels like the thousandth time. Itâs cause enough for you to look up at the reds, oranges and purples that are beginning to saturate the sky. And almost as if youâre pulled from your training, fatigue sets into your bones and causes you to collapse to your knees. Your limbs shake with exhaustion, clothes dampened with sweat, your breath hollow as you try to suck in more air than your lungs allow you.Â
Youngmin looks over to you as you collapse, his stern expression from training you softening to one of concern. âIâm sorry!â He says, a panicked tone overtaking him, âI got so into it that I pushed you way too hard!â
 âIâm fine,â you breathe out, offering him a weak smile, âYou ended up teaching me like that even though Iâm not your student, thank you.â Â
âI see,â he doesnât sound fully convinced, but the worried edge to his voice subsides a bit, âIf thatâs how you feel then Iâm glad I could help.â His face holds a mixture of guilt and hesitation, though, âI am sorry, I havenât fully trained someone in years, and I suppose I went a little overboard.âÂ
âYou mean before you became the Hwarangâs leader?â You ask as you shakily rise to your feet.Â
âRight,â he nods with a nostalgic smile, âJihoon, Seungkwan, and Eunseok all attended my familyâs school. Seungcheol, Soonyoung, Junhui and Mingyu joined us afterwards, Hansol never fully joined but would stop by often. We donât have time for it now, but we used to test our skills out against each other nearly every day.âÂ
The topic of the âold daysâ often came up when the captains were tipsy or drunk on their alcohol. Youngminâs father had been high up in the Crownâs council when he was alive, but later left to start up his own fighting school, much like Lee Alcheon had done.Â
âAll of that training mustâve been tough,â you wonder aloud.Â
âIt was,â Youngmin nods in agreement, âBut it was fulfilling, in a different way than what our work is now.â He gazes off into nothing as he reminisces, causing a pang of envy to invade you for a moment. Â
âEarlier you said you werenât my student,â Youngmin says, looking at you, âSince I am technically a master of my familyâs school, and I spent today training you⌠I think that more or less makes you a disciple of the style as well. That would make you a student like a few of the captains.âÂ
His words cause a smile to break out on your face, âThank you.â Obviously, it isnât an official method, and it was hardly a full dayâs worth of instruction, but it made an unbridled happiness bubble within you. âIâm so grateful for what youâve taught me today.â

enjoy what you read? leave a comment! it helps with motivating us writers to keep producing content for our lovely readers â¤
Heartbreak Hotel | svt series

âEvery single day is dreadfully boring when working at a hotel in the middle of nowhere. That is until an enigmatic guest arrives, seeking not a room nor directions, but to hear stories about your past relationships.â
Genre: anthology, romance, smut Status: on-going Pairing: SEVENTEEN Hip-hop Unit x Reader Warnings: mature themes Notes: 4 parts. Listening to Heartbreak Hotel by Tiffany Young. This is a work of fiction. I do not know them personally and do not claim they would ever behave like they were portrayed in this story.
1. Prologue 2k words.
2. Backburner (Kim Mingyu)

There is a rule of thumb for casual relationships: do not fall in love with the other. Yet with Mingyu, it felt easier to watch the world burn than to stop yourself from falling for him.
3. Take a Chance with Me (Jeon Wonwoo)

You could not believe that no one ever told you how frustrating (and beautiful) it was to be hopelessly captivated by a boy who thinks love is overrated.
Did You Like Her in the Morning? (Chwe Vernon)

How do you move on from the man you thought you'd marry? You can't. As you navigate the bittersweet memories of your shared dreams, you are forced to grapple with the harsh reality that Vernon has found someone new.
Plot Twist (Choi Seungcheol)

A chance encounter blossoms into a whirlwind connection when you become enchanted by the enigmatic strangerâChoi Seungcheol. As the evening unfolds, one question lingers: could he be the unexpected plot twist that changes your story forever?
đĽđ´đđŻđđŤđ¤ - đŠđ§đĽ ||đđđŻđą đŚđł


pairing: lee jihoon x female!reader genre: historical au, fluff, angst, smut (later routes), supernatural members: choi seungcheol, wen junhui, kwon soonyoung, jeon wonwoo, lee seokmin, kim mingyu, boo seungkwan, lee chan warnings: crass humor and language, blood, violence, mentions of suicide, alcohol, minor character death, 660's sexism, crossdressing, medical procedures, political upset, historical innacuarcies for the sake of plot progression word count: 27.7k taglist: @hipsdofangirl, @reiofsuns2001

đđđŻđą đŚđŚđŚ || đđđŻđą đł

đđđŻđ đĽ 22đąđĽ, 664 â đ đ˛đŠđ¤đ˛đ¨đ°đ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ A thin line of perspiration coats your brow as you juggle carrying a tray stacked with dishes and teacups towards the main hall. The captains were having their weekly meeting now that everyone had a moment to gather, and you had been tasked with plying the food and tea. Excusing yourself softly, you step inside, gently setting the tray down onto the nearest tabletop and begin distributing the plates and cups.
Once done, you go about pouring tea for the captains, quickly moving from one to another so as to not disrupt the flow of the meeting. Glancing at the floor, you notice a few wayward petals that must have been swept in here as the captains congregated. With spring finally beginning to spur into motion you mentally note that youâll have to be more vigilant in your sweeping and dusting away of the blooms and pollen to come.
âThank you,â Youngmin says quietly after youâve begun pouring his cup.Â
You give him a small nod and then move to Gongmyung, âHere you are.â
âThanks,â he says quickly, turning his attention back to Jihoon.
The air of the room is somewhat electric, perhaps because Gongmyung had brought along his followers to the meeting.Â
âThatâs all there is to report,â Jihoon states once heâs finished his spiel. âAnyone have anything else to add?â
âNot worried or anything, but have you noticed how lively the cityâs been recently?â Mingyu notes. âItâs got me excited.â
âI noticed that too,â Hansol adds with a curt nod.Â
âDonât tease him, Hansol.â Seungkwan laughs, âFestival or not, Jun finds the city entertaining all year round.â
âI didnât mean Junhui was livelyâ I was talking about the city.â Hansol frowns.
âOne in the same, really,â Seungkwan huffs.
âAw, you guys are going to make me blush,â Junhui says playfully.Â
A snort from Mingyu, âNo one hereâs complimenting you. Weâre just talking about the atmosphere.â
âPoor Junhui,â Seungkwan laments with a shake of his head. He then perks up, âIs there a festival coming up soon? Do you know, Gyu? Iâm sure they talk about it at your drinking halls.â
âNo idea,â Mingyu shakes his head.
âItâs probably for the spring festival at Bomun Lake,â Youngmin interjects himself into the conversation. âWe may have people staying in the capital from Samjinnal as well. The King reinstated it to boost morale this year.â
âThat would make sense,â Hansol says, looking at Junhui who looks ready to burst.
âDoes that mean we can have permission to go?â He buzzes, âItâs been forever since Iâve been to a festival!â
âFestivals have nothing to do with our jobs,â Jihoon barks out with a frown. âWe need to be more alert than usual. Our enemies might take advantage and use the commotion to cause more issues.â
âI agree with the commander,â Kangjoon adds.Â
âAh,â Soonyoung sighs out with disappointment, âWay to be a buzzkill.â
âAre you sure?â Gongmyung asks Jihoon, âItâs a special festival, the King himself reimplemented it. Should we not celebrate too?â
The moment the words leave him, tension makes the air thicker in the room.
âYouâre suggesting that we slack off and goâ?â Kangjoon prods.
âRight.â Gongmyung smirks, âWe arenât just warriors. Itâs a good opportunity for the men to reflect and celebrate, and get out of their Hwarang robes for a while.â
Dongyoung laughs, âI donât think they can do that, especially those three idiots over there.â His eyes flash to Mingyu, Soonyoung and Junhui.
âWhat the fuck did you call us?â Mingyu raises his voice.
âI didnât say any names,â a smirk dances on his lips, âOr maybe youâre aware that youâre an idiot?â
âDongyoung,â Gongmyungâs stern voice rips at him, âThatâs enough.âÂ
âMy bad,â Dongyoung chuckles, âIâm so honest my mouth sometimes says what I think before I can stop it.âÂ
Mingyu grumbles something while Kangjoon begins to talk once more, âIt would be a good opportunity to better our relationship with your men, Gongmyung. Since weâve been more and more noticed by the Crown, wouldnât it be best to show off how cultured and mannered we are?â
âI donât think thatâs our current priority.â Jihoon states sharply.Â
âIââ Kangjoon clears his throat, âI suppose maybe we donât need to participate in our current⌠situation.â
âItâs precisely because of our situation that we should participate.â Gongmyung insists. âWith the increased vigilance, the men deserve some sort of distraction, right Gukseon Kwak?â
âAh? Oh, um⌠YesâŚâ It seems difficult for Youngmin to choose a side. âIt is well deservedâŚâ
A small âtchâ from Gongmyung before he laves compliments, âThatâs right. I expected that answer from someone as qualified as you.â
Mingyu lets out a long sigh of relief, âI can already smell the gokaju and hwajeon.â
âIs that all that has your interest?â Seungkwan rolls his eyes.Â
âIf itâs drinking sanctioned by the Hwarang, Iâm all in,â Mingyu nods.Â
Thereâs some more chatter about the festival before the sound of several pairs feet treading down the hallway draws everyone to look at the doorway as Lee Chan peers in. âAre Gukseon Kwan and Commander Lee here?â
âWhat is it, Chan?â Jihoon beckons him inside, peering behind him to see a few other faces, âDohoon, Junghwan, Wonwoo⌠What happened?â The tension that had been building in the room prior heightens as you see the stern faces Chan and the others are making.Â
âThe warriors sent to receive our monthly stipend from the palace were attacked and robbed of their money on the way back,â Chan reports, straightening himself.Â
âWhat?!â Jihoon rises to his feet, a look of incredulity on his face.
âThey tried to apprehend the culprits but they lost sight of them in the crowd,â Dohoon frowns.Â
âAttacking a Hwarang warrior in the streets of Seorabeol and stealing our moneyâŚâ Youngmin also rises to his feet. With how angry he looks, itâs almost as if heâs another person.Â
âThis is personal. If we let it pass, weâre going to lose face.â Jihoon looks at Youngmin. He then glances around at the captains, âYou all, catch that criminal at all cost!â The captains agree with varying degrees of yeses before the commander continues, âBut do not let the other men and the wang-do know itâs stolen. Only the ones in this room can handle the situation, is that clear?â
âUnderstood,â Hansol nods as he stands.Â
âThen letâs devise a plan immediately.â Youngmin states calmly, the angered look still playing on his face as they discuss their roles and area of search.
âWith that much money, the culprit wonât stay in Seorabeol for long.â Chan notes. âHe may be on the move as we speak.
âHe could already be out of the city,â Hansol adds.
âMaybe we should focus on swordsmen trying to leave Seorabeol,â Jihoon muses.
âWhat use could a swordsman have with that much money?â Junhui huffs.
âAlcohol, women,â Mingyu lists, âNothing too erudite.âÂ
âThen we should monitor Noseo-dong, there would be a chance heâs there, right?â Soonyoung questions.
âIf heâs walking around with a lot of money, heâs going to stand out.â Hansol states. âIsnât it better to assume he bought something with it that he could easily turn back into money later?â
âA sword or something made of gold, maybe,â Jihoon mutters.
âI wonder why the swordsman picked today specifically,â Gongmyung ponders, his hand resting under his chin, âPerhaps they knew we were getting paid.â
âSo you think it was one of our men?â Kangjoon looks over to him.Â
âItâs possible. With the new shortages, weâve gained more green warriors without checking their backgrounds as strictly,â Dongyoung smirks, aiming to poke.
âCriticizing us isnât going to solve the problem,â Soonyoung retorts.Â
You look to Jihoon, who seems to be taking all of it in quietly. His brow furrows before he begins speaking once more, âOkay. We donât have much time. Iâm going to decide whoâs doing whatâŚâ
He goes on to explain the role of each captain in great detail, once received, they all begin preparing to leave. It just leaves you and Jihoon alone, you hadnât been a part of the discussion in the first place, only stopping in to deliver tea and snacks. Yet now that you've heard everything, perhaps you can help.
âCommander LeeâŚâ You speak out, your voice cracking after not having used it the entirety of the last half-hour or so.
âAh,â he seems almost surprised as he turns to you. âYouâre still here. Can you clean up the dishes?â
âOf course,â you nod quickly, âIs there anything else I can do? About the stolen money⌠Can I help?â
âYou?â His eyebrow quirks upward, âWhat can you do about it?â
âIâd like to help speak with the swordsmen that are leaving the capital,â you answer and immediately his shoulders slump downward.
âNot so fastâ You canât go out by yourself. Do you really think you can pry into roaming swordsmenâs affairs?â
It does sound a bit bold coming from you. But you canât resist the urge to help, âI canât be as efficient as the rest of you, Iâm very aware of that⌠But that doesnât make me any less than you. I want to know who did it too. Thatâs why I want to help.â
Jihoon looks at you intently, almost as if heâs testing your resolve and you stare right back at him. After a moment of silence, he relents, âYouâve got the wit of a Hwarang, thatâs for sure.â A small smile plays on his lips as he continues, âWe are shorthanded, so youâre going to have to work with us for the time being.â
You try hard to hide the smile threatening to break free, â... Thank you so much.â
A moment later he calls out for Eunseok, asking if he could take you to where the negotiations with the officials are happening. It isnât what you had in mind, but if youâre helping youâll gratefully follow the Hwarang.
As the two of you near the edge of the city, Eunseok sighs, âI didnât think it would be this difficult.â
âMe either,â you frown as a bead of sweat trails down your neck. Your job is to look for any suspicious swordsmen trying to quickly leave the city from the southern gate. The two of you had gone to the magistrateâs office and the Watch to ask for information but neither of the two entities were of any help.
âIf we were honest, perhaps they would have cooperated more,â Eunseok wonders aloud.
âThatâs true,â you nod in agreement, âbut we need to be careful about who knowsâŚâ
âYouâre right,â he taps his foot on the ground. âMany of the men from the Guard have been incensed since Jihoon stopped them from directly interfering with Wonweol.â
Being more successful meant more opportunities to be envied and hated. The jealousy seems to always be pitted in the Watch and Guardâs stomachs. âWhat should we do next?â
âI think our best course of action is to return to Jihoon, at least for now,â Eunseok says and begins walking back in the direction of the compound. âPerhaps another captain was more successful than we were.â
As you begin to join him, you see several swordsmen chatting together on the other side of the street.Â
ââexpected it to go smoothly!â One of them laughs.
âIt was so easy,â the one next to him chortles. âEver since Ongsan theyâve been lacking men, itâs laughable.â
âEunseok are you hearingââ you begin but notice that heâs already listening intently to the men.
âShit, youâre talking too loudly,â the first man says, âWe need to get out of this city as fast as possible, not let everyone know weâre here.â
The two men begin to walk away, bantering with one another.
âThey must be who weâre looking for,â Eunseok frowns, watching the men. His hand flexes over the hilt of his sword as you begin to turn on your heels.
âIâll let Commander Lee know!â Youâre already beginning to run off when he calls out after you.
âItâs a ways back to Bulguksaâ! Be careful!â
âI will!â You shout back, âPlease donât lose sight of them!â
With as much strength as you can muster, you race back to the compounds. By the time you reach them, the sun is sinking, dyeing the sky a vibrant red.
âAâ Are you alright?!â You hear Junghwan clamor as you approach, your breaths running ragged and your chest heaving trying to collect enough air. âWhatâs wrong?!â
âI need to speak with the Commander⌠ImmediatelyâŚâ Your voice comes out in strained pants.
âHeâs in his studyâ Iâll go and get him.â Jungwan says, letting you recuperate while he runs off to find Jihoon. A few moments later Junghwan returns with the commander in tow and you relay what you had seen and heard.Â
âWe ought to have made you a messenger rather than my page,â Jihoon lauds you with a small smirk. His face begins to harden as he thinks of a plan to retrieve the stipend safely from the thieves, âIâll let the others know and send them to support Eunseok.â
âThen Iâll go back to Eunseok first,â you say, knowing that leaving him alone while trying to track those men could get him in trouble.
âDonât be an idiotâ Are you planning on retrieving the money yourself?â Jihoon questions you with a frown. âEven if you get there first, what help are you going to offer him?â
You mirror his frown, knowing that heâs speaking the truth: what could you do? You wield no authority in the city and certainly arenât as adept in swordsmanship or negotiating to get through to the thieves.
âIâll get to Eunseok,â Jihoon states, âYou find the others and join us when youâre done⌠And good job, by the way. If we can resolve this thanks to you, youâll get the credit.â Without another word he leaves, heading towards the front gate hurriedly.Â
All of the creditâŚ? You hadnât found the culprits by yourself, youâd only told Jihoon that you had come upon them with Eunseok. It still warms you that Jihoon had praised you, but it wasnât just your doing.Â
With Jihoon now on the way to the city proper, you go to find the other Hwarang. It takes you some time, with night falling as you lead them to where youâd last seen Eunseok.Â
âYou say that you saw the men here earlier today?â Youngmin asks, his face illuminated by lanterns adorning one of the nearby shopâs entrances.
âYes,â you nod, âThey were here.â Glancing around, you donât see Eunseok or the swordsmen anywhere nearby.
âAh, I thought I heard you two,â a voice calls out as they round the corner, âThere you are.â Wonwoo walks in tandem with Junghwan as they approach.
âThe captains are hiding out in the forest a little ways away from Bomun, weâre to tell anyone showing up to go and join them,â Junghwan nods.
âThen letâs get to it,â Youngmin says quickly and begins to walk.
After a short distance along a heavily forested road on the outskirts of Seorabeol you finally find them. Wonwoo glances at you, raising a finger to his lips to tell you not to make a sound. All of you continue to walk a bit more.
âCommander,â Wonwoo whispers into the quiet night, âEveryone should be here now.â
âThanks for showing them the way,â Jihoon says quietly.Â
âAre the culprits nearby?â Youngmin asks and Jihoon motions his chin to a path parallel to the one that youâre on. Even squinting, you canât see anything in the density of the trees and the opaqueness of night. Yet you can hear voices rising over the crickets and cicadas crying out.
âA third!?â A voice, one you recognize as a man from earlier, shouts out angrily. âIâm the one who risked my neck for the damned operation!â
âWhat?! Iâm the one who went undercover!â The second man from earlier shouts. âInvestigated the Hwarang while you sat on your ass!â
Another voice that wasnât with them prior now shouts, âCalm down you idiots! Youâve got a ton of money, whyâre you fighting over nothing?!â
Jihoonâs expression grows more disgusted the longer he listens, a snarl of anger ripping across his face, âCanât agree on their share, huh? Well it isnât as if theyâll need it in their next life.â
âIâve been scouting around and I believe it to be just those three,â Dohoon reports. You nearly jump at how quiet heâd been on his approach.Â
âLetâs get this over with then,â Jihoon huffs and then motions forward, addressing his men, âSurround them!â
As soon as he gives the command, the Hwarang start running, surrounding the swordsmen.Â
âW-What!â One of the men shouts as he eyes the blue robes, âThereâs no way you could have gotten here so fast!â
âYou shouldnât have tried to swindle the Hwarang!â Jihoon barks back at him, unsheathing his sword and pointing it towards the three men. âDid you truly think you wouldnât face any repercussions?!â
âBastard,â one of the men clenches his teeth and draws his own blade, âI guess weâll just have to fight our way out!â
âYouâre stupid if you think you can win while outnumbered,â Dohoon snickers, a glint of moonlight reflecting off of his blade.
âDo not cut them down,â Jihoon orders, âCapture them and weâll let the Kingâs justice sentence them.â
And with that, the Hwarang rush the thieves.
The men, who put up a small fight, are eventually captured and taken to a prison somewhere near the palace. After that, the Hwarang filter back to the compound after retrieving the stipend and not much is said about the excitement of the evening until the next morning. Kwak Youngmin calls all of those who aided in rounding up the thieves into the main hall, beaming at them as they enter, you included.
âThanks to everyoneâs cooperation, we were able to get our money back!â He grins, clapping his hands together. âTo celebrate, we decided to allow an evening to celebrate the spring festival!â
âYesss!â Junhui pumps his fist into the air, âI knew I could count on you, Kwak!â
Soonyoung joins in on Junhuiâs excitement, excitedly hopping from foot to foot, âHell yes! Thatâs what makes it worth it for me to work my ass off every day!â
âDonât get too carried away, Soonyoung,â Jihoon says warily, âDonât forget your position as a captain. Besides, you still have a few more days until it happens.â
âWe know, we knowâŚâ Mingyu waves his hand at him, âBut itâll be the first nice evening that weâve had in a while.â
When the meeting disbands, each captain goes their separate ways from the main hall. If the Chief wanted this to be a spring celebration, youâre going to need alcohol, food and flowers.
âIf you have some time,â you call out to Jihoon as he begins to leave, âCan we talk about the arrangements for food, drink and decorations?â
âDonât worry about it,â Jihoon turns to you, âWeâll be celebrating at a place by Lake Bomun. If weâd done it here youâd work yourself to the bone⌠You still need to be rewarded as well.â
âOh, Commander, I donât thinkââ Your ears warm with embarrassment.
âItâs a secret,â he says with a coy smile, âIf I reveal it now, itâll spoil the surprise.â After vaguely speaking, leaving you in a confused state, he spins and leaves the hall.
A few nights later you find yourself being led along a stone path to a temple near the lakeside of Bomun.Â
âCommander LeeâŚâ You murmur, trying not to trip on the agate stone of the walkway, your nerves somersaulting at the sight of the flowing fabric around you. âIsnât there an issue with,â you let out a small cough, âwhat Iâm wearing?â
âWhatâs wrong?â He asks, âItâs been a while since youâve worn womenâs clothes⌠Are you uncomfortable?â
âI think thatâs exactly my point,â You stop as he turns to look at you, âIâve only worn menâs clothes since Iâve come to live with the Hwarang.â Youâd neither tied your hair or worn a hairpin for a while so it feels quite out of your comfort zone.
âYou look great,â he nods, âIf I hadnât known it was you, Iâd assume you were a noblewoman.â
âYouâre too nice,â you murmur as you feel heat creep up your neck, he surely has an odd sense of humor. Itâs then you take a look at him, the blue of his Hwarang robes shed for a brilliant purple. Gold embellishments line the fabric and a portion of his long dark hair is held in a cuff, cascading a ponytail along his already freed hair. Jihoon doesnât wear his hair like this often, nor the clothes of his noble rank. Heâs handsome, you cannot deny that.
âI took some time off tonight so that I could walk the temple grounds with you,â he motions you to follow him, âItâs a rare opportunity for both of us. Want to look around?â
âYeâ Sure!â You nod, still momentarily distracted by him.Â
The two of you wander the small pathways of the temple for a time. Other festival goers litter the paths as well, couples, parents and their childrenâ an air of calm in a seemingly torrid world After a few more minutes of walking, you and Jihoon find yourselves on a more secluded area of walkway when he pauses, looking at you with a question hanging on his lips,
âAre your feet sore? I know youâre probably not used to those kinds of shoes.â
âNo,â you answer with a shake of your head, âIâm alright.â
âYouâve got a stronger resolve than most,â he chuckles, âMakes sense, how else would you have traveled from Toehwa-hyeon to Seorabeol alone?â
âI only left home because I was looking for my father,â you smile at him, sadness riding in your tone and surely reflecting in the small smile you offer.Â
âI know,â he sighs frustratedly, âTrust me, we are trying our best to figure out where he disappeared off to.âÂ
The once light atmosphere becomes heavy with the mention of your father. Walking further a bit, you see several temple patrons tying small pieces of parchment to a tower in the center square of the templeâs entrance.Â
âDo you think thatâs for prayers?â You ask and look at Jihoon, âShould we write something?â
His eyes stare coldly at the display before you, before relaxing at your request, âIâm not one to leave it all in the godsâ hands⌠But if weâre already here, why not.â
âIâll go and find a brush,â you grin and begin to dash off.
âDonât forget the paper!â He calls out after you.
It takes you a while to find the items, but you return to Jihoon and hand him a brush and piece of paper. You take your time carefully penning your wish down onto the paper, blowing the ink softly so it dries faster.
âI can tie it for you,â he says as he notices you trying to figure out where to place yours. You hadnât noticed him tie his own to the tower. Â
âAhâ Okay,â you nod, caught up in his words as you try to hand him your wish clumsily.Â
âWhat kind of wish did you write?â he asks, gently holding it in his hands but not unfurling the carefully folded paper. Eyes widening, you reach out, aiming to grab the paper but instead grip your hands around his, blocking his free hand from taking the paper. He laughs, âI canât put it up for you if you hide it from me⌠Donât tell me you want to keep it a secret for me that badly?â
âItâs nothing like that at all!â You nearly shout, flustered as heat creeps along your cheeks.Â
âIs it something too shameful to mention, then?â He teases, leaning in closer.Â
ââŚWhy would you think that?â
Jihoon looks at you suspiciously for a moment too long but eventually sighs and pulls back, âNow, thanks to you, Iâm wondering if youâre really making a wish for yourself or for the sake of someone else. IF itâs really something you want for yourself, then good.â
Thinking for a moment, you drop your hands away from his. He sighs in the gentle night breeze wafting through the temple and ties your wish to the tower without looking at the inscription on it.Â
âMy bad,â he relents, âI was being tactless. Your wish is only between you and the spirits.â
âNo,â you shake your head, âIt isnât that⌠What did you write, Jihoon?â Your teeth catch your lower lip at the slip of his first name. You donât use it often, only in the moments where you forget that he wields absolute authority over your role within the Hwarang.Â
His eyes widen at your name falling from his lips, and then soften, his lower lip turning into a pout as you raise your hands, âSorry! I shouldnât be asking you.â
He laughs, waving his hand, âNo, I donât mind. My wish is obvious: for the Hwarang to become even greater than they already are.â
âThat makes sense,â you note. âThen my wish isââ you begin before he cuts you off.
âHush, I didnât ask,â
âYou just told me yours, though. It wouldnât be fair⌠I wished for you to be safe and healthy.â
When you tell him, he laughs a bit mockingly, âReally? Isnât that exactly what I was worried about? Plus, thereâs no reason to hide something like that, right?â
âI know, but itâs justââ you flush, looking at the ground.
âThank you.â He says simply and you look at him. âIâm the one keeping you under house arrest, and yet youâre so good natured.â
âI donât think of it that way anymore,â you retort. âAt first, our only common goal was to find my father. But now that I know all of you better Iâm happy that I can live with you all and be useful in some ways.â Ever since the raids on Wonweol and Jeolin you saw what force the Hwarang could muster, you then could understand and believe that they are fighting for what is right.
Jihoon gives you a small nod in thanks, âThis was a nice evening but unfortunately I have some work to do, so I guess weâd better head back.â
âThank you for taking the time to take me out today.â
âThereâs no need for thanks, it was a nice breather for me as well.â
đđđŻđŚđŠ 13đąđĽ, 664 â đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ âLook Seungkwan!â You call out to the captain some feet in front of you, âThe trees are still in bloom.â
Boo Seungkwan stops in his tracks, the blues of his robes shifting as he turns to face you and then looks across the street at the tree you'd pointed out.
The gentle introduction of spring is most certainly needed in Seorabeol now. After last autumnâs attempt at quashing the Baekje forces, Silla thought themselves to be rid of the threat, but now more rumors have been arising from the north that Buyeo Pung and his men are on the move once again.
âYouâre right,â he nods and looks back at you, a smirk on his lips as he does so, âEven then, Iâd try to act sedate about it.â
Eyes widening as you look at a few townsmen who pass, their gazes dubious over your excitement towards the changing season. Maybe too forgetful of your attire with the dawn of a new spring, you find yourself quieting down as you catch up to Seungkwan.
âSeungkwan?â You question after a moment more of walking, your eyes watching a few petals float atop the river, âWhy didnât we go after those men who ran off after seeing you?â
âThem?â Seungkwan scoffs as you look back to him, âTheyâre not revivalists, thatâs for sure. If they were, they wouldnât have run off like a dog with its tail between its legs. More than anything theyâre probably common thieves.â A nod of his head as his shoes kick up a small cloud of dust, âTo be honest, I doubt there are any revivalists in Seorabeol willing to start anything and oust themselves at this point.â
âThe Hwarang have really made a name for themselves, havenât they?â You muse, watching the street ahead of you. âIt seems like everyone knows your blues.â
In recent memory, the question of changing the Hwarang uniform has been placed on the table more than once, stemming from the fact that it both catches peopleâs attention as well as wards troublemakers off. As well as a lack of fashionable sense, Gongmyung had so graciously advised.Â
âHas the Deputy Commander returned from Ungjin yet?â You question, knowing that Gongmyung had left some time ago to oversee some things at a newer installment of Hwarang in the area.
âThink so,â Seungkwan frowns, âCanât say I wanted him back so soon, if ever, though.â
âHe said he was going to recruit people too, right?âÂ
âMhm, but I have to wonder if Ungjin is the only place he went.â The Hwarang mutters.
âIsnât that a good sign though? That heâs trying to get more numbers?âÂ
âIs that what you think thatâs about?â An eyebrow piqued at you.
âAm I wrong to assume that?â You furrow your brow, brushing your hand on the front of your robes to try and get rid of some lingering dust.
âNot at all,â with the way Seungkwan says it, you know heâs being sarcastic. âKwakâs too nice to him, he shouldâve been kicked out a long time ago.â
Ever since the Kim brothers had arrived to join the Hwarang, there had been a strong dislike for Gongmyung. You certainly can see why but hearing the absolute vocalized protest against him is jarring to hear.Â
You break away from looking at the road ahead and catch a glimpse of a figure quickly turning and racing down a side alley. At first you think it to be more men afraid of getting caught from the Hwarang on patrol, but the bright pink of their skits catch you off guard as they slip around the corner.Â
âWait a minuteâŚâ Catching their eye, youâre stricken with a familiarity almost as if you were looking at your own face. You arenât given much time to look at her, though, because once youâve realized who she is, sheâs gone. âAhro!â You call out, only to be pulled back by Seungkwan.
âWhere do you think youâre going?â He asks, only for you to shrug him off and barrel down the road towards where youâd last spotted your doppelgänger.Â
âJust hold on!â You call out behind you, knowing that a stunt like this is going to get you into trouble. The backstreets are more dense than you originally thought, a thicket of people causing you to weave your way through the crowds as you race after the girl. It isnât until you trail her to a back alley deep in the depths of Seorabeol does she stop.
âIs something wrong?â Ahro asks as she spins on her heels as she turns to face you, âYou seem to have exerted yourself quite a bit.â
âIt looks like I surprised you earlier,â you huff, trying your best not to double over as your lungs take in more oxygen than they can process. âDo you remember who I am?â
âOf course,â she nods, âYou were with the Hwarang that day.â
âCan I ask you something?â Thoughts flooding to what Mingyu had said that night at Noseo-dong, of the girl he mentioned who looked exactly like you. âOne of the men said they saw a girl who looked like me at the bulletin board by the bridge some time ago⌠Was that you by any chance?â
âIâm not sure,â a frown holds her lips as her pink skirts flutter in the wind with a gentle breeze, âI donât find myself traveling there very often. But if he had seen me, would that be an issue?â Embarrassment takes hold over you, youâre almost accusing a stranger for something that you donât even know the full story of. âPerhaps what you wanted to ask me was if Iâve been there at night?â
Eyes widening at her statement, maybe she is more perceptive than you thought.
âIt happened in late spring, someone who looked like me disrupted what the Hwarang were guarding,â you pick your words carefully, trying not to be but so accusatory at the moment.
âIf it was you,â a voice, more accusatory, calls out from behind you and directed towards Ahro, âThen we need to talk, it may or may not end with your imprisonment depending on the answers you give me.â
âSeungkwan,â you mutter, surprise overtaking you as he walks to stand by your side. Youâre not sure when heâd caught up with you.Â
âCaptain Boo,â she notes with a small smile, âThank you for helping me back then.â
Her gratitude falls on deaf ears, Seungkwanâs frown not budging with her words. âAre you going to answer her?â He asks, gaze narrowing, the taught smirk reappearing as his body tenses, anticipating something, âWere you at the board that night?â
âMany people walk by that board during the day,â Ahroâs brow furrows, âBut I donât go near it at night because of the attacks. Are you accusing me simply because I look like someone else?â She looks almost downcast at her own words, her gaze dropping to the ground as she hangs her head.
âOf course not,â you step in, âItâs rude of us to assume without any proper evidence.â
âYouâre still gullible,â Seungkwan scoffs, shaking his head, âAfter a few sorry words youâre just going to believe her? Even if she is the culprit, do you think sheâd just tell you that?â
Seungkwan and you lock eyes, an immense feeling of guilt washing over you. Youâre not one to place the blame with little to no evidence, but she was the closest thing to a lead you and he had seen since Mingyu had divulged what heâd seen that night.
âIf thereâs no reason for you to keep me here⌠I should be getting on my way, I have errands to run,â Ahro sighs out and turns on her heels, beginning to walk towards the main street.
You think to pursue her once more, but a fit of coughing coming from the captain interrupts that thought.Â
âAre you alright?â A worried look to Seungkwan, whoâs nearly doubled over, coughing into his hand. You find yourself stepping forward, wanting to offer assistance but not sure on how to do so.
His head shoots up to look at you as he hears you approach, his free hand raising to stop you, âStay back.â Another bout of coughing before he speaks again, âIâm fine just⌠just give me a second.â It is the intensity of his demeanor that halts you, not only his words. The captain coughs for a few moments more, only standing straight when the bouts reside. His face looks pallid, sweat crawling down the sides of his face as he looks back at you.Â
âAre you still sick?â You question him carefully as he wipes his hand on his sleeve. âYou look tired.â
âIâm fine,â he answers shortly, a small smile finding its way to his lips as if to assure you. It doesnât. âYou did make me run after you, you know.â
âButâŚâ you begin before he stops you.
âBut nothing, weâre in the middle of our rounds, we canât get sidetracked anymore.â With that, he begins to walk, pace a little more slower than usual. You catch up to him and he starts to scold you, âI agree that asking Ahro about the incident was important, but you canât just run off like that alone. If she had been an enemy or had accomplices waiting for you, what would you have done?â He watches your brow furrow and shakes his head, âYou didnât even think about that, did you?â
Even if Ahro hadnât done anything nefarious, Seungkwanâs right. Youâd chased after your doppelganger without a second thought, which could have been bad if it had been someone else.Â
âJust,â he sighs, âtry to be more careful, okay? I canât be around you all of the time to make sure you donât run off and get yourself kidnapped or killed.â
With Seungkwanâs words still lingering in your head, you finish your rounds and head back to the temple grounds. They still continue to float around even after you've eaten dinner and resigned yourself back to your room, the bright light of the moon creeping in through the sole window of your quarters.Â
You like to think yourself useful, on more than one occasion you have helped the Hwarang with their ventures and around the headquarters. Yet, today has shown you that there is much more to learn, and maybe that your perception isnât where it should be.Â
The more you think about it, the stronger your resolve to change it becomes, youâll work on becoming more aware and less dependent on this. Itâs high time you do something about it.Â
Just when you think that to yourself, a loud boom reverberates around your room, up against your door as if someoneâs thrown themselves against it. It causes you to startle, quickly bolting up from your bedding as your heart begins to pound in your chest. It happens once more and the door bursts open, splinters of wood falling to the ground from where the hinges once attached to frame, revealing a wang-do standing in the dimly lit hall.
âIs⌠everything alright?â You question after they make no move to speak, continuing to stand there ominously. âDo you need something?â Every muscle in your body feels taught, anticipating the culminating worry building in your gut.
The wang-do mutters something, nearly inaudible as you strain your ears to listen to him.
âWhat did you say?âÂ
â⌠Blood,â the word chills you as he takes a step across the threshold of your room, now as he comes into focus you can see that his hair is stark white. âI need⌠blood.â In his hand is a sword, dragging along the ground as he takes another step, the sound of the metal carving into the wood of the floor echoing around the space. It hits you then, your stomach dropping as you realize that heâs one of the Furies.Â
You part your lips, wanting to call out for one of the captains, but find yourself unable to muster a singular syllable before the Fury lunges at you with a cackle. The blade hisses as he raises it and brings it down toward you, you roll from your bed and onto the floor but not before you feel the cool metal of the blade burn and sink into the flesh of your arm.Â
A cry escapes you as you hit the floor, trying to scramble away from the intruder, but as the Fury catches sight of the crimson of your blood, he seems to only become more enthralled. Hand finding the wound on your arm, you try to apply pressure to it, your back hitting the wall behind you as the Fury looms in front of you.Â
âSomeone help!â The words finally escape you as the Fury reaches up to smear the droplets of blood that had hit his cheek, he laughs again before raising his sword once more, probably intending to end your life. His eyes show no remorse, no semblance of humanity as he laughs and laughs. Feet kicking off of the floor, he begins to barrel towards you, your limbs frozen in place as you can only watch.
The sound of a pair of footsteps racing into your room nearly pulls your attention away from the man running at you, yet it doesnât, but when the new figure tells you to duck and look away, you comply almost immediately, tucking into yourself and trying to move away.
The Fury that had been chasing you stops at the intrusion, looking surprised to see the commander standing in the front of your room, his sword raised. Angered at the arrival, the Fury turns from you and takes a sloppy swing at Jihoon, the commanderâs blade meeting the wang-do as he turns.Â
A cry resounds around the room as the Fury is struck, writhing for a moment before his wound begins to heal before your very eyes. Jihoon realizes this and looks over to you, âGet over here, now,â his voice stern before he looks back to the wang-do. Wordlessly, you do, still holding onto your arm as you make your way to him, the Furyâs attention still rapt upon Jihoon. As you fall behind the captain, more footsteps race towards your room, several of the captains arrive at your doorway seconds later, their brows furrowed.
âYou all right?â Junhui asks as he looks to survey the situation.Â
âThatâs,â Mingyu frowns before you can respond, his eyes settled on the wang-do, âthe kid who had to drink the pimul after that shop raid⌠Heâs too far gone now to bring him back.â The sadness in his tone is palpable, knowing that theyâd have to kill the turned wang-do in the very near future. As if the words were an unspoken signal, the trio release their blades from their scabbards. They fan out, circling the wang-do carefully, watching for any signs of erratic movement. In an instant, the captains attack and fell the soldier, who crumples to the ground with a shriek of pain.Â
For a few seconds, the room is quiet, only then to be interrupted by more footsteps approaching. Perhaps the captains hadnât been the only ones to hear your plea for help.
âI thought weâd talked about sparring after the sunâs setâŚâ Gongmyungâs voice sounds from around the corner, rubbing his eyes as he turns into the room, freezing when he sees the scene before him. âWhatâs happened?â
Brow furrowing as he looks to the fallen Hwarang, âWasnât he sentenced to death a few days ago for breaking our code?â Looking from the bloodied corpse to the bloodied blades held by the captains, âAre you all responsible for this?â
Jihoon mutters some profanity under his breath as Soonyoung begins to ramble, âYou donât understand, weâve just-â
âA captain cutting down his own man?â Gongmyung continues, an amalgamation of confusion and anger culminating in his expression, âThis is unheard of.â
âThis is my fault, I suppose,â another voice rings out from behind Gongmyung and your hair stands on end immediately. Seungcheol looks forlornly at the wang-doâs corpse, âMy lack of leadership caused this to happen.â
At the sound of his voice, Gongmyung jumps and at the sight of him, Gongmyung pales. âW- What are you doing here, Colonel? Youâre supposed to be deadâŚ?âÂ
The room falls silent once more, until Jihoon breaks it.
âI suppose we canât keep it a secret for any longer.â Arms crossing over his chest, he looks to you as you push yourself from the floor, âYou should leave, you can use my room for the night.âÂ
You want to stay, want to make sure that they can explain everything properly so that Gongmyung doesnât get any more frantic. Yet, Jihoonâs expression tells you enough that heâll handle it.Â
đđđŻđŚđŠ 14đąđĽ, 664 â đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ The sound of birds chirping stirs you from slumber, and as soon as your eyes open you bolt up, looking at the unfamiliar space around you. This is the commanderâs private quarters, you remember this as you recall the events of the night prior. Your arm, now wrapped in bandages, has healed quickly, yet you keep the guise of injury for the time being. The last youâd checked it had faded into a light scar, in a few days there would be no trace of it at all.Â
Your feet eventually find the floor, standing and stretching before you open the door and quickly make your way to the main hall to see what the events of last night had wrought upon the Hwarang. Before you get into the hall, you come across the Kim brothers, Gongmyung calling out to you.
âYouâŚâ The Deputy Commander says before two more figures come into view.
âSoonyoung⌠Hansol⌠Where are you all going this early?â You ask, tilting your head in confusion.
âDue to last nightâs⌠disturbance, Iâm sure no one got a good nightâs sleep,â Gongmyung answers for them, âYou were injured, right? Howâs your arm doing?âÂ
âIt isnât as bad as I first thought,â you nod, hand moving to ghost over the injury.
âIâm glad to hear that,â he says with an uncharacteristic smile. Rather than the manic state he was in last night, he seems to be chipper.Â
âDid something happen?â You ask, wondering about the mood shift.
âI suppose you could say that, right, Choi, Kwon?â Gongmyung looks at them, as do you. When you catch Soonyoungâs eye he quickly breaks away, diverting his gaze away from you.Â
âI guess so,â the younger mumbles out.
âIt isnât information we can give out right now,â Hansol frowns, his attention rapt on you, unlike Soonyoungâs.Â
âEven for you, Choi, thatâs a cold goodbye,â Dongyoung says, âOr did you want to get out of here as fast as you can?â
âAre you⌠leaving?â You question, looking back to the brothers before Gongmyung hushes his sibling.
âWeâll be on our way,â he nods at you, âI hope your injury heals well.â
âGoodbye,â Hansol says as he passes you, a small nod in your direction before Soonyoung brushes past with a âSee youâ.Â
And then just like that, theyâre gone, leaving you standing at the entrance of the main hall to try and understand what had just happened. Before long, you pull yourself from your thoughts and make your way into the hall, meeting with a few other captains.
âAre you sure you should be up already?â Eunseok calls out to you as you enter, a worried expression on his face as he notices your bandaged arm. Heâs standing next to Wonwoo, presumably having been in a conversation with him before your arrival.
âIâm alright,â you try to assure him with a small smile, âIt wasnât as bad as it looked.â
âThatâs good news,â Wonwoo smiles, âIâm sorry to hear that it happened though.â
âItâll be alrightâŚâ Trying to sate their worry, you bring up another thought plaguing you. âI saw the Deputy Commander on my way here, he was acting strange.â
The two look at each other before Eunseok lets out a sigh, âYou saw them?â
âSoonyoung and Hansol were acting strange as well,â feeling concerned for the captains, you look to the two in front of you for answers.Â
After a moment of silence, Wonwoo speaks up hesitantly, âWell⌠Theyâre leaving.â
Eyes widening as Eunseok adds on, âTheyâre going to form a new group different from the Hwarang. We had a meeting with the Chief and Commander Lee about it this morning.â
âSo Soonyoung and HansolâŚâ A frown begins to curve your lips as you realize why they had been so downcast.Â
âThey are leaving with him, yes,â Eunseok sighs out, âI think Iâm as shocked as you are. I understand that coming from Soonyoung, since heâs known him for longer⌠But Hansolâs surprised me the most.â
âDonât worry,â Youngminâs voice calls out, probably having witnessed your conversation from the head of the room. âWe promised to keep things calm between our two organizations.â
Even if his words are meant to calm, with Gongmyung leaving with several pivotal members of the Hwarang, you only think heâs meaning to split and factionalize the rifts forming in the Hwarangâs ranks.Â
âHe still wonât be able to associate with the Guard though, right?â Wonwoo questions.
âLike hell Iâd let him,â Jihoon speaks up now, a bitter bite to his voice, âHe can leave, but Iâm not letting him walk all over us so he can get what he wants.â
From there, the Hwarang begin to speak amongst themselves of names and other organizations that you arenât too familiar with, slowly leading you to drift away from the conversation. Despite your feelings towards the captains leaving, you know nothing you say now could change anything, theyâve already left. So, you quietly excuse yourself and leave the main hall. As you walk towards your room, you look to the sky, wondering what the impact of leaving would have on the remaining Hwarang. Surely a blow like this hurt not only their pride but the relationships they have with those who left.
The door to the main hall opens and you turn to see Jihoon leaving, he catches you looking at him and strides over.
âShouldnât you be resting?â He questions, eyes lingering on your bandaged arm, âI remember the cut being deep.â
âI feel better,â you say quickly, trying to brush off his concern.
âJust because your fatherâs a doctor and you know a few things doesnât make you invulnerable,â an almost concerned tone wavering in his voice, âGo and get some rest before you hurt yourself more.âÂ
âI will,â you nod, mentally berating yourself. Itâs hard to recall the severity of oneâs injury when it heals so quickly. âBefore I go, though⌠Can I ask you something?â
âWhat is it?â
âItâs about the new group⌠How do you feel about all of them leaving?âÂ
âWhat do you mean?â He questions, crossing his arms.Â
âYouâre losing some of your men,â you arenât sure how careful you should be with your wording, âDoesnât that make you upset?â
âIf they were my allies yesterday and things change that makes them my enemies tomorrow, so be it.â He shakes his head, âThatâs just life.â
âEven Soonyoung and Hansol?â The two captains had been by his side since heâd started commanding the Hwarang, surely, he couldnât turn on them so easily. Â
âTheyâll be missed,â Jihoon frowns, âBut if theyâre leaving it means they had an issue with the Hwarang, itâs better they leave now than when their discontent grows even more.âÂ
The commanderâs harsh and analytical take towards his men leaving has you somewhat stupefied. On one hand, you can see how indifferent heâd be towards Gongmyung and his lackeys leaving, but the two captains should have him more in a state. But if they all found themselves incompatible with the Hwarang, maybe it was for the best.
In the days following the departure of Gongmyung, Dongyoung, Hansol, Soonyoung and the rest of Kim's followers, you notice the compound feeling much emptier and lonelier. Around that time, Suh Kangjoon departed the Hwarang and his role as War Counselor. Even if itâs the inevitable change of things, you canât help but see several different paths beginning to veer off the main one, unsure of where each one leads.Â
đđ˛đŠđś 11đąđĽ, 664 â đ đ˛đŠđ¤đ˛đ¨đ°đ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Three months have passed since the departure of Kim Gongmyung and his men to form the Guardians of the Royal Tomb. More so, it has been three months since Hansol and Soonyoung left. Their presence, or absence of, remains blazingly obvious at times during the days that have since passed. These thoughts of them, and their reasoning for abandoning the Hwarang plague you still, as they do tonight as you toss and turn in your bed as you search for slumber.
It isnât coming any time soon, your muscles ache from your work earlier in the day, and youâd woken up early this morning to aid with an upcoming captainâs meeting⌠Why arenât you tired? You should be, right?Â
Eyes shutting for the umpteenth time, trying to force yourself to sleep, you hear a voice call out to you from behind your door, a gentle knock accompanying it. âAre you awake?â The voice of the Hwarangâs commander causes you to scramble to your feet, inching closer to the door.
âIs something wrong?â You ask as you approach the door.
âYou have a visitor,â voice muffled behind the wood, you can hear him shift on his feet, âOnce youâre dressed, come to the main hall.â
âA visitor?â You muse as Jihoonâs footsteps lead away from your room to give you some privacy. The visitor in question confuses you, who could possibly be calling for you late at night? Regardless of their identity, you quickly dress yourself and head to the main hall.Â
The figure standing there as you enter surprises you, before youâre able to question their appearance, Youngmin speaks.
âIâm sorry for disturbing your sleep,â A small smile of apology as he glances towards the newcomer.
âYou look like you just rolled out of bed,â Seungkwan says snidely, a grin on his lips, âDidnât even brush your hair?â
You begin to move your hand towards your scalp as you frown at him, but before you can touch your hair, Jihoon cuts him off. Glancing at the commander, you can see Seungcheol, Junhui, and Mingyu in the room as well.
âThis isnât the time, Boo,â Jihoon huffs and looks at you, âYou look fine.â
You nod quickly at the commander before turning back to look at your guest in full, once she lays her eyes on you, she breaks out into a small smile.
âItâs good to see you again.â With all of the elegance that you had upon your first meeting, Sooyoung commandeers the room with her charisma, âI hope youâve been well? Iâm sorry for visiting so late.â
âSooyoung?â The name falls from your lips as you stare at her, confused. Itâs then you realize that another woman stands beside her, her face seems familiar as well.
Sooyoung seems to catch this, turning to her and telling you, âSheâs my bodyguard, of sorts.â
âYour bodyguard?â The woman in question is almost as striking as an actress, not what youâd expect a guard to look like.Â
Even more confused, you look at Jihoon, who sighs out, ââŚShe said that it was imperative to talk to you.â
Itâs obvious that he isnât stepping into your own matters unless you allow him to, so you hum to yourself and look back to your visitor. âWhy are you here, Sooyoung?â A tilt of your head as you ask, âIs something wrong?âÂ
âIâll get straight to the point then,â her smile fades away and her expression becomes stern, turning to face you fully, âIâm here to take you away.âÂ
âTake me awayâŚ?â Brow furrowing, your foot moves instinctively to take a step back, âWhy?â Â
A hum as she thinks, âItâs a long story that Iâm not sure how to begin.â
âThere isnât any time to discuss this,â the woman beside her says hurriedly, âWe need to leave immediately if weâre to get her out of here safely.âÂ
âHold on,â you interrupt the pair, âWhy should I go with you two?â
âThatâs a good question!â You hear Junhui speak up from behind you, âYou barge in here, ask to talk to her, and demand that she leaves with you?â
âYouâre not related to her, are you?â Mingyu adds questioningly, âShe looks about as confused as we do.âÂ
âSooyoung could you explain whatâs happening a little more?â You pose, not trying to get the captains upset if thereâs an actual reason for you to be worried.Â
âOur intrusion would perplex anyone, I suppose,â she nods in understanding and then motions to one of the tables in the room, âThis might take a while, so itâs best to be comfortable in the meantime.â
âWould you like us to stay outside?â Youngmin asks, glancing towards the open doorway into one of the templeâs courtyards.
âNo,â Sooyoung says as you move to take a seat at the table sheâd motioned to. âIâd like you to stay, this involves the Hwarang as well.â She takes her own seat, followed by the captains, Youngmin and Jihoon, who she observes quietly before beginning to speak.Â
âIâm aware that you all have met Hong Jisoo before, right?â As she states the question a few of the Hwarang look taken aback. âYouâve fought him once or twice.â
âHow do you know that?â Jihoonâs gaze hardens on the woman.
âI know most things that go on in Seorabeol,â her gaze returns the hardness of his, âEventually.â
âYouâre like him and his cronies, arenât you?â Arms crossing over his chest as he comes to the realization.Â
âIâd prefer not to be associated with him, Minghao or Minhyun, but yes, in a sense I am.â A nod of affirmation as Jihoonâs expression softens slightly.
â⌠You were talking about Jisoo, then.âÂ
âWe fought him at Wonweol, Ongsan and Banwolseong,â Mingyu interjects, brow furrowed, âWhat are his ties with the loyalists?âÂ
âIt seemed like he was there for his own reasons, though,â Seungkwan points out, countering the other. âNot any sort of politics.âÂ
âRegardless, heâs an enemy of us,â Jihoon frowns, adjusting the way heâs seated.
âThen youâre also aware that heâs pursuing her?â Sooyoungâs eyes flicker to you, the captainâs stares following suit.Â
The unraveling of this truth is a story you donât want to hear the end of. Your stomach churns uneasily as each captain looks at you, some confused, some unsure of what to do or say. Youngmin eventually breaks the silence,
âWeâre well aware of that.â He coughs to clear his throat before continuing, âWe also know he has comrades he calls Demons; not that we believe that, of course.â
âIâm not sure that that claim is unfounded, Chief,â Seungcheol speaks up from the swarm of captains looking at you, âThey all possessed strength incomparable to any of our men. Any of our... living men, at least. Despite that, it seems as if no one really knows they exist.â
The captains shift, murmuring things too quietly for you to hear before you look back to Sooyoung, anxious for her to continue.Â
âSo, then you do know that theyâre Demons,â a nod as she hums somewhat contently, âThat will make things a little easier to explain.â Her hands fold atop one another as she places them on the table, âIâm not human either, Iâm a Demon too.â
Your eyes widen, lips parting in surprise, âYou are?â
âIâm actually rather high ranking,â eyes locked with yours, âsomething akin to a princess.âÂ
âMy family has been guarding hers for generations,â the other woman adds, moving a bit to stand closer to Sooyoungâs chair, not having sat when everyone else did.Â
âI suppose that makes more sense,â Jihoon muses, despite you still looking confusedly between the three. âI was wondering why you were so friendly that night, you were getting intel on the Hwarang, werenât you?âÂ
A sly smile as the guard brushes a few strands of hair from her face, tucking them behind her ear, âIâm not quite sure what you mean.â
âYou know her?â Junhui sounds shocked as he looks at Jihoon.
âMove your eyes up six inches, Junhui,â Mingyu snorts, âThatâs Seulgi.â Then, it clicks, she isnât as dressed up as she was that night, but it looks to be the kisaeng from the night the Hwarang had been in Noseo-dong. âDressed a little differently, but thatâs definitely her.âÂ
âHoly shi-â Junhui nearly chokes, baffled at his inability to have recognized her from before.
âUs Demons have lived on this land since before the kingdoms were even mere conceptions,â Sooyoung captures the conversation once more, âThe top officials in Silla, Goguryeo, and what was once Baekje, already know of our existence. Most Demons have no interest in human affairs, preferring to be left alone. However, humans in positions of power sought to use us to benefit their own means.â
âDid the Demons comply, then?â You question softly, seeing the look of disgruntlement on Sooyoungâs face.Â
âMost didnât. Human ambition has never been strong enough to pull a Demon to get involved,â an almost angered sigh leaves her, âYet, when the Demons refused to help, the humans were furious and sent out armies to destroy our homes and our villages. We scattered across the land and are now divided by the different kingdoms. We seldom leave our domains and remain in hiding.â
âThatâs awful,â a somberness coating your words as she speaks, the lorness in her expression unsettling.Â
âMany Demons went on to have children with humans, there are few of us now who can claim a pure bloodline.â
âI assume Jisoo is one of them?â Youngmin questions softly, trying to not upset Sooyoung further.
âThe largest pureblood family are the Hongs, youâve already met the head, Jisoo.â A small nod as she looks to you, âIn the north, the largest clan is the Heo family. That would be yours. I heard the Demons of your family were destroyed by humans, but it seems like youâre the lone survivor.â Â
âMe?â You resist the urge to point at yourself, utterly taken aback by what Sooyoung had just divulged. âThatâs impossible⌠I-â
âI had Seulgi look into your family history to the best of her ability,â she insists with a firm shake of her head.
âIt seems hard to believe,â Seulgi offers you a sympathetic smile, âbut you are very much a Demon.â
At a loss for words, you stare at the two women. Itâs borderline insane that this is what theyâre telling you, but at the same time it would explain a few things. Why Jisoo is after you, why you heal so quicklyâŚ
âIf you really are the descendent of a pureblood Demon, itâs quite clear why Jisoo is after you,â Sooyoung doesnât finish the rest of her statement, the answer being quite clear.
âHe intends to marry her,â Youngmin huffs, glancing at you and your wide-eyed expression.
âIt seems so,â the woman agrees, biting her cheek, âSo far it seems as if heâs only been testing the water, Iâm unsure of when heâll become more confident in his approach. If he were to use his full strength, I donât know how you would fare in protecting her. Even the Hwarang canât stand against the true power of a Demon.â
âWait a minute- arenât you going a bit too far?â Junhui asks, sounding hurt by the latter statement.Â
âI donât think youâre giving us enough credit,â Mingyu frowns, âWeâre not just some foot soldiers.â
âThe only reason youâre alive is because Jisoo wants you to be,â Sooyoung points out, âIf he and his accomplices were to use their full strength Iâm not sure what would happen.â
âThen let them,â Seungcheolâs voice rises through the unsettled quiet, âI would like to see the power of a real Demon.â
Jisoo, Minhyun and Minghao had all shown incredible strength in the prior meetings you had with them; even the Hwarang captains had trouble keeping up. If that hadnât been the full extent of their power, youâre unsure that you want to see it.Â
âJunhui and Mingyu are right,â Jihoon says, âEven if theyâre stronger than the average warrior, youâre still discrediting us. The power difference wasnât so great that they bested us easily.â
âThatâs right,â Seungkwan nods and smirks at the Jihoon, âBesides, weâve got the Demon commander himself in charge.â
âThis isnât the time for jokes, Boo,â Jihoon sighs and shakes his head.
âYou must realize that these men are unlike any youâve faced before,â thereâs an almost pleading edge to Sooyoungâs voice. âYour job is to protect Seorabeol, not her. Thatâs why Iâm asking you to leave her in our care, with us her chances of surviving one of Jisooâs attacks will be much higher.â
âGive us a break,â Junhui says, rising to his feet and planting his palms on the table, âYouâre making it sound like we canât protect her.âÂ
âIâm not trying to sound rude but,â Seungkwanâs head tilts at the two women, âyou think that the two of you could protect her better than us? Neither of you are a part of the Hwarang, Iâm not sure why youâre going around and sticking your nose in our business.â
Sooyoung and Seulgi seem to be taken aback by the captainâs reaction.Â
âWhat do you think, Commander Lee?â Seulgi looks towards Jihoon, her gaze narrowing, âYouâve acknowledged Jisooâs strength, are you not at least considering Sooyoungâs offer? I think itâs in your best interest to leave her in our care.âÂ
âThatâs different,â Jihoon looks at Seulgi, leaning back in his chair slightly, âWe made a promise to her, to protect her, weâre not going to back out just because theyâre Demons. And I understand that you call yourselves Demons tooâbut that gives us no ground to trust you.â
âDo you realize who youâre speaking to? Sooyoung is a descendant ofââÂ
âSeulgi,â Sooyoung stops the other with a raise of her hand, her tone calm but stern, leaving no room for more argument, âThatâs not necessary.â
âI agree with Lee,â Seungcheol affirms, yet doesnât look your way, âif she possesses blood of a different species⌠Iâm sure her aid will come to use for our internal purposes in the very near future.â
Seulgi glares at the colonel, not speaking as to not anger Sooyoung.Â
âThis is a problem, then,â Sooyoung notes solemnly, âIs there no way to convince you to allow her to go with us?â
âHold on,â Youngmin interjects, âWe didnât even confirm what she has to say about all of this.â His gaze travels to you, sympathetic in nature and looking in your eyes as if you already have an answer.
But you donât know what to say. Itâs not that you doubt the concerns of Sooyoung and Seulgi, yet thereâs just more and more to take in.Â
Youngmin sees your furrowed brow, eyes teeming with indecisiveness, and nods with a small smile, âIt must be difficult to discuss in front of so many people. You should speak to Sooyoung privately.â
âWhat the hellâ!â Jihoon begins to protest, but Youngmin is unwavering in his stance.Â
âWeâve been ignoring her feelings for this entire conversation,â Youngmin states, âif she wishes to leave of her own accord, for her own safety, we ought to let her, no?â
âYouâre too soft on people,â Jihoon scoffs, but makes no move to stop him.Â
âYou wonât steal her away the moment we leave you alone, will you?â Seungcheol asks as the captains rise to their feet.  Â
âOf course not,â Sooyoung says as she remains seated, âOnce Demons make a promise, weâre bound to keep it.â
A few moments later, once the captains, commander, chief and colonel had filed out of the main hall, you lead Sooyoung to your room nestled in the compound. Seulgi had opted to stay outside, just far enough away so she wouldnât encroach on your private conversation.Â
âI apologize for giving you a terribly large number of things to think about,â Sooyoung starts off, âNormally, I would never do something like this.â
âItâs alright,â you try to reassure her with a small smile, âIâm sorry for them as well, I know they can be a little⌠brusque at times.â
âThatâs to be expected,â she waves it off, âI know I was asking a lot of them. Not many humans would accept the existence of us so easily. But enough of that, what do you say to my offer? Do you have any thoughts on it?â
Of course you do. If it had been Sooyoung to come across you on your first night in Seorabeol, you very well may have taken her up on her hospitality. Yet nowâŚ
As if she can see the wavering of your options, Sooyoung speaks, âThe Hwarang seem to believe they can protect you from everything out to get you. I donât doubt their dedication, I do, however, doubt their ability.â
You stay silent, aware that what she just said may be true. The Hwarang are powerful, skilled in both the sword and bow. Youâd seen them overcome overwhelming odds, but those odds had always been nothing but human-made. From what Sooyoung had said, the strength of a single Demon would be enough to wipe them out should they so choose. A few of you have been able to see that firsthand, and the losses associated with it. To think that that same fate could arise to a captain of the Hwarang fills you with undeniable dread.Â
âWith Buyeo Pung seeking aid in Goguryeo, things will only get more hectic here in the capital,â Sooyoung says to fill the silence, âIf Jisoo were to strike in the hysteria, what do you think would happen? You should leave the Hwarang, let them fight without worry.â
âSooyoungâŚâ The concern for you seems real, frantic, almost.Â
âIs there,â her expression softening as she searches yours, coming to a subtle conclusion, âa reason you want to stay?â
ââŚThere is.â You answer without thinking it through, the words falling from you so quickly you can barely catch them.Â
âOne of those men, perhaps?â Innocent in nature, her question still catches you off-guard.Â
âYes,â you nod, lower lip catching between your teeth as you canât find it within yourself to lie to her.Â
For a moment she looks tense, before her posture softens and a relieved expression overcomes her, âI see⌠I wonât ask who, but I can understand your hesitance now. I canât force you to leave, but should you need us, you need only ask.âÂ
Sooyoung and you make your way back to the main hall, the captains loiter around the space, some look anxious upon your arrival.
âHave you come to a decision?â Youngmin asks once youâve fully stepped into the room, giving you little time to compose yourself.Â
âFor the time being weâve decided to leave things as they are,â Sooyoung states, Seulgi looking at her worriedly.
âAre you sure?â
âQuite.â Sooyoung nods to her, âI believe prioritizing what she wishes is whatâs most important for now.âÂ
âVery well,â Youngmin finds it hard to mask the smile growing on his lips, âThe Hwarang accept responsibility for her well-being.âÂ
âJust relax and leave it all to me!â Junhui bursts out, eager to show his worth.
âIâm sure Wenâll give you much more to worry about,â Mingyu laughs and looks at you, âItâll be nice to still have you around.â
âWhat kind of girl wants to stay here?â Seungkwan chuckles, âI canât tell if youâre brave or if youâve had a strong lapse in judgment.â
âThis doesnât change anything,â Jihoon points out, âYouâll still be treated like you always were.âÂ
âOf course,â you nod, âThank you all for letting me stay.âÂ
Sooyoung then moves to you, her hand finding yours as she looks into your eyes, âPlease be careful, and remember, Iâm on your side.â
âThank you, Sooyoung,â you smile at her gratefully as she relinquishes the hold on your hand. She gives you one last beaming smile before her and Seulgi are off into the dark of night.Â
đđ˛đŠđś 19đąđĽ, 664 â đ đ˛đŠđ¤đ˛đ¨đ°đ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ In the days since Sooyoungâs visit, you find it much more difficult to drift off into a dreamless slumber. When you do dream, you find that your mind often travels to your heritage and what it means for you now and in the future, something of which you donât want to think about.Â
You had decided to stay with the Hwarang, but was that really the best choice for you, for them? Of course, you wanted to stay but would you being here cause them unneeded harm?
A sudden clang from outside causes you to jump, to leave your thoughts for a moment as your heart begins to pound. Eyes cautiously looking towards your bedroom door, your hands clench your blankets in taught anticipation.Â
Several short bangs from your door cause you to rise to your feet, the voice of Jeon Wonwoo calling out to you, âIâm sorry for bothering you, but thereâs an emergency!âÂ
âWhatâs wrong?â You ask, voice wrought with anxiousness as you walk towards the door, opening it to allow him inside.Â
His body tense as he enters, continuously looking over his shoulder to make sure the hallway is clear, âThe Demons have attacked us.âÂ
âWhat?!â Icy dread seeps through your veins at his words.
âTheyâre after you, which means you need to stay here.âÂ
âButââ You begin to protest his assertion, wanting to help in some way as the only reason the Demons are here is because of you. âWonwoo, I have to find the others.â
âI canât let you,â he shakes his head, a worried look in his eye as if he knows he canât reason with you, âThe Commander asked that I make sure you donât leave.âÂ
âTheyâre here for me, though. If anyone gets hurtâŚâ You wave away the thought, âMaybe I can try and reason with them? What if I can get them to leave peacefully?âÂ
Wonwooâs lips purse, and after a moment, he shakes his head in defeat, âIf youâre going to be that insistent, I donât think I can stop you. I was told to protect you though, so if youâre going, Iâm going.â
The two of you leave your room, barreling down the hallway until youâve reached one of the inner courtyards. You stand there momentarily, unsure of where to go, until Wonwoo speaks up.
âItâs this way,â he says before something darts in front of you, pushing the officer to the ground. His body seems to fly for a few yards, hitting the ground with a thud as Wonwoo groans out in pain. As you try to run up to him, the same blur passes in front of you and you feel an arm wrap around yours.
âWhere do you think youâre going?â The voice of Hong Jisoo asks you simply as you struggle to get out of his grip. His grip is like steel, unmoving and snakelike, âI heard the Park Clan visited a few days ago, Iâm sure you know why Iâm here, then.âÂ
He sighs, looking at the surrounding buildings, âYouâre a Demon, a noble Demon⌠There isnât any reason for you to hole yourself up with fakes.â Jisooâs grip tightens on your arm slightly, âCome with me.âÂ
Itâs obvious who heâs talking about when he mentioned the fakes. With the way your body tenses, Jisoo can sense your anger.
âDo you really think staying here and helping their own self-interest and agenda to create those⌠things is really what you should be doing?â
You find it hard to respond. For obvious reasons, you arenât a fan of the existence of the Furies, but there were times when it was needed for a Hwarang to survive. Could you fault a man for wanting to live? Besides, your father was one of the people who created the serum, you canât help but feel partially responsible.
âYou donât know anything about whatâs going on here,â you thrash in his grip, trying to lessen his hold on you.
âSo? Even if I did, are you asking me to play ignorant to what theyâre actually doing?â He scoffs, looking up from you as the sound of racing footsteps approaches.Â
You break your gaze away from him to see Mingyu and Jihoon running towards you, sour expressions on both of their faces.
âBreaking in again?â Jihoon frowns as he locks eyes with Jisoo, âI donât know if youâre brave or stupid. This isnât a gathering place for Demons, you know.â
âBarging in here to find yourself a wife,â Mingyu snickers at the Demon, âYouâd think youâd have gotten the message by now.â
The sight of the two Hwarang puts you at ease a bit, even more so when you can see Chan and a handful of other wang-do behind them. There are a few missing faces among them, you wonder if theyâd gotten injured in the earlier skirmishes.Â
âYou have no idea how important she is,â Jisoo frowns, his grip on you unrelenting still.
âSo, taking her against her will just because youâre too scared of rejection is the way youâre going around this?â Mingyu nearly shouts at him, âThatâs just pathetic.âÂ
âEven if you take her as a hostage, weâll kill you without hesitation,â Jihoon affirms, his hand resting on the hilt of his sword.Â
âI wouldnât need to use her as leverage with the likes of you,â thereâs an arrogance in his words as the Hwarang begin to encircle him. The tension pulls like a taut rope, beginning to fray as it reaches its breaking point.Â
Eyes glancing down to your arm, you realize that Jisoo had left your other one free, you reach for your blade at your hip. Itâs an awkward angle, but you jerk the blade from its scabbard and swing it up towards Jisoo.
He dodges it easily, his hand reaching out to grab your wrist, his grip tightens and causes you to cry out. With the force he is exerting, you feel as if your bones will break, the blade in your hand clattering to the ground.Â
âYou really donât understand how powerful I am, do you?â His gaze sharpens at you, lips parting to say something else before a voice calls out.
âIâm your opponent,â Jihoon shouts, âI said before that I wouldnât hesitate to strike you from behind!â
Your failed attack had abated Jisooâs attention towards the commander long enough to allow him a chance to strike. Jihoonâs sword drawn from his scabbard, he arcs his blade towards Jisooâs head. The Demon moves quickly, but with a nonchalant nature in his movements as the blade passes centimeters from his throat.
The attack was enough time for you to rid yourself from Jisooâs grasp and run towards the commander. Jihoonâs free hand outstretches to grab your arm and pull you into him, his arm then moving to wrap around you, both catching and sheltering you.Â
âI thought I told Jeon to keep you in your room,â He mutters under his breath, âYou never listen, do you?âÂ
âIâm sorry,â you murmur, the pulsating feeling from where Jisoo had grabbed your wrist beginning to fade.
âYou did good though,â Jihoon praises you, âWithout your distraction I wouldnât have gotten an opening.â His approval is somewhat shocking, not something youâre accustomed to so it takes you by surprise.
âLee Jihoon,â Jisooâs voice pulls you and Jihoonâs attention away from one another and towards the adversary, âGet your hands off her. Sheâs mine.â Thereâs a possessiveness in his tone that chills you to your core, a fury in his eyes that seems to have ignited after he made his recovery from Jihoonâs attack.
âThe Hwarang are responsible for her,â The commander shifts, bringing you just a little closer to him, âWe gave our word.â
âCome with me,â Jisooâs attention turns to you, âYouâre a member of an honorable Demon family. You shouldnât be associated with the likes of these humans.â Â
âIâm staying here,â it only takes you recalling the blatant disregard Jisoo has had for human lives on your handful of encounters with him to confirm your distaste for him.Â
âYou choose the humans, then?â His voice low, threatening like a cornered animal.Â
âThatâs too bad, Jisoo,â a laugh from outside of the circle of Hwarang, you look to see Xu Minghao pushing his way through the members. âNever thought Iâd see you get rejected by a girl.â
Your eyes widen, Jihoon had had issues dealing with Jisoo alone, now that another Demon is here, youâre not sure what heâd do.Â
âCommander,â another voice from outside the circle as the Hwarang break their lines to allow Seungcheol to walk through, âI apologize for being late.â He looks at Jisoo and Minghao with a small smile, âIâm afraid the Fury Corps will be your opponent this evening.âÂ
A wash of relief overcomes you at the sight of several members walking behind Seungcheol, although the Furies have caused issues in the past, it seems these men were on a set goal.
âYou were saying some interesting things earlier,â Seungcheol muses, still looking at the two Demons. âSomething along the lines of calling us fake? This would be a great opportunity to prove you otherwise.â The colonelâs eyes then turn red, his hair turning stark white as he reaches for the blade at his hip.Â
âThese men are ready to fight,â Minhyun, who you hadnât seen snake his way through the men, tells Jisoo.Â
âSo?â Minghao scoffs, the quiver of arrows on his back rattling as he moves, âThey could have a whole army of these new bloods and they still wouldnât be a match for us.â
âThereâs no need to dirty my blade with fake Demon blood,â Jisooâs eyes flicker from Seungcheol to Jihoon, âIâll do you a favor and not kill you all today, but that doesnât mean Iâm done here. I will be back for her.â With that, the trio break past the lines of Hwarang faster than any of the men, human or Fury, could keep up with, disappearing into the darkness outside of the compound.
âYou bastardsâ!â Jihoon calls out after them after theyâve already disappeared.
âShould we go after them?â Seungcheol asks the commander, glancing back at his group of men.Â
âNo,â Jihoon shakes his head, âWe canât risk the citizens of Seorabeol seeing your unit.â
âUnderstood,â Seungcheol nods, âWeâll call it a night, then.âÂ
âThank you, Commander,â once you were sure that the threat was gone, your body sags in relief. Â
Jihoonâs grip on you relaxes and allows you to step away from him, âThereâs no need to thank me. We had our reasons for wanting to protect you. Just try and get some sleep now.â He then turns to his men and orders them to find any dead or injured men around the compound. His demeanor takes on that of astute seriousness, wanting to end this as quickly as he can.
đđ˛đŠđś 20đąđĽ, 664 â đ đ˛đŠđ¤đ˛đ¨đ°đ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Mid-morning, after a tumultuous night and subsequent sleep, you trudge your way to the main hall to find the captains in some kind of meeting. Upon your entry, Eunseok turns to you and offers a small wave.
âGood morning,â he smiles and beckons you over to sit down next to him, you take him up on his offer and he speaks again, âDid you sleep well?â
âAs best I could,â you respond sheepishly.
âYou donât need to lie,â Eunseok notes, âWe can tell you barely slept at all.â
âDo I really look that bad?â You mutter, your fingers moving to trace the circles under your eye. A shake of your head as you turn to Chan, who sits on your other side, âHowâs Wonwoo doing?âÂ
âThe fall knocked him out cold, but aside from some minor bruises he looks like heâll be fine,â the officer reassures you. âHe wants to apologize for not doing a better job of protecting you.â
âI should be the one apologizing to him!â You claim almost exasperatedly as the door to the main hall opens and a figure strides in.
âIs something wrong, Chief?â Eunseok questions Youngmin, who looks far from the chipper mood he typically has. âI think youâre scaring her.â
âIâm sorry if I am,â he apologizes to you, âForgive me.â The smile he gives you is fleeting, returning to the grimace that seems deep rooted into him now.Â
âWhat happened?â You question, and he lets out a sigh.
âThe monks here donât want us staying at Bulguksa any longer.â He says as calmly as he can, a look of defeat in his eyes.
âYou mean to say theyâre telling us to leave?â Chan asks, a troubled expression overcoming him.Â
âMore or less, yes,â The leader frowns.
âI had a feeling this would happenâŚâ Eunseok sighs out and looks at Youngmin, âWhat should we do?âÂ
The monks at Bulguksa seemed to have shifted to a pro-Guard stance since the outburst of attacks in the recent months against the Hwarang. Itâs no surprise they want the Hwarang gone, but this place was just beginning to feel like home.
âDo you think last nightâs incident was the last straw?â Chan poses to Youngmin, who nods in agreement.
âI donât think, I know.â He huffs out a large amount of air, âThey donât want actual fighting on their grounds, Iâm sure some councilman also had his hand in this as well.âÂ
âThis is all my fault,â you realize as he says that, the Demonâs wouldnât have shown up if you werenât here.
âThat isnât true,â Youngmin tries to reassure you, âWe forced ourselves in here with unreasonable demands.â
âIf we need to move, we should start looking at new locations,â Chan says quickly to change the topic.Â
âThe monks here have already provided another temple for us to stay in,â Youngmin says, his brow furrowing.Â
âThatâs very⌠nice of them,â Eunseok states, trepidation in his voice. âThey must really want us gone.â
âYes to both,â Youngmin nods, âwhich is why I accepted their offer. Weâre going to get busy around here soon.â
The donors to Bulguksa Temple bought a piece of land some ways away from the original site to build a new compound for the Hwarang. It lay outside of the city, further than Bulguksa or Shoshin had been, called Shoji. The new grounds has ample enough space for a bathhouse, new training buildings, and even more rooms for the Hwarang members. The members are clearly excited about it. By the time the end of the summer came around, the Hwarang had fully moved from their residence at Bulguksa to their new home in Shoji.Â
đđ˘đđąđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 27đąđĽ, 664 â đđĽđŹđ§đŚ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Autumn breaks quickly after the long summer months. In August, the Crown had ordered its army to lay siege to Tolsa Fortress in the southern part of the Goguryeo Kingdom, asking for the aid of several Hwarang captains to join their ranks. The siege lasted for weeks with no eventual winner, save for Goguryeo as its stronghold hadnât been weakened. No major events had occurred during the siege, the captains that had left, Junhui and Mingyu, returning with little to tell of their ventures to the northern kingdom.
Itâs a quiet morning today, youâre cleaning up dishes from breakfast when you realize that the commander is nowhere to be found. Come to think of it, he hadnât been present for breakfast this morning, either. Maybe heâs too busy to come out, but that doesnât mean he shouldnât eat something.
A few moments later you find yourself with a tray in hand, walking carefully to his room. Youâve adorned the tray with an assortment of food and a small pot of tea as well, not knowing if he was hungry or not.
âCommander,â you say as you stand in front of his door, âIâve brought you some tea.â
âCome in,â Jihoon says after a moment, and you move to open his door.Â
âOh,â your eyes widen as you step inside, a bit taken aback by what you see.
âYou can put it down anywhere,â he says, and you move to set it down, trying not to stare at him too much. He sits at the head of the room, writing something down on a piece of parchment, but thatâs not what is grabbing your attention. His hair, which he usually ties up in a not atop his head, cascades down his shoulders loosely as he writes.Â
âDo you need something else?â He asks, probably noticing your elongated stare.
âNo,â you shake your head quickly, averting your gaze from him.Â
âThen why are you here?â Jihoon questions, setting down his brush, careful not to draw his sleeve through the inkwell. âIâm a little busy.â
âWellâŚâ You mumble, âIsnât your hair in the way?â
âI donât have time to tie it up, thereâs too much I need to do,â he says nonchalantly, âIâve got mountains of this shit to go through.â Itâs then you notice the stacks of papers around him, all baring what looks like important seals.Â
Even then, every time he moves to brush a strand of hair from his vision, he becomes even more frustrated.Â
âWould you like me to tie it up for you?âÂ
Jihoon stays silent for a moment before turning back to his work, picking up his brush and beginning to hurriedly write, âI donât like it when people touch my hair.âÂ
âI seeâŚâ you say, watching him write for a moment, not knowing what to say next.
âI appreciate the gesture,â he sighs, once again setting the brush down and moving to tie his hair up. âNow I can focus a bit more.â
âCommander? Have you eaten anything today?â You ask, looking towards the tray youâd brought in, âI brought you some snacks but if you needed a full meal, I could make you something.âÂ
He pauses from his work, and for a moment you think heâs forgotten about your presence entirely. âNo,â Jihoon says and shakes his head, âI should be done by lunchtime. Iâll eat a lot then.âÂ
âIs there anything in particular youâd like?âÂ
âI told you that I donât have time to eat right now,â he frowns, a small hunger pang reverberating through him.
âI meant that Iâm the one cooking lunch todayâŚâ You scramble to fix your words, âSo if thereâs anything you want, let me know and Iâll see what I can do.âÂ
Jihoon now turns to fully look at you, chuckling to himself as he does so, âIf you make what I want, the captains are going to be pissed.âÂ
âLet them be,â you shoot him a smile, âThey can be as mad as they want. Youâre working hard, and since I canât help you out here, I can at least do something else for you.âÂ
âFood on the mind, huh?â A smile curling onto the edge of his lips, âI guess it canât be helped then⌠If you back out on what I say, Iâll have it out for you, okay?â Thereâs a playful edge to his voice, joking, obviously, but it still catches you a bit off guard.Â
âIâm ready to do what I can,â You nod eagerly.
âHow about namul then?â He states simply. âAny kind will do.â
âOf course,â the words fall as you begin to think of what youâd need to make the dish. Itâs not that itâs difficult to make, just time consuming as you would have to cook the variety of sides that you could find.Â
âIâm looking forward to it, your cookingâs gotten a lot better recently.â
âReally?â You ask, somewhat surprised. No oneâs really mentioned your cooking prowess before, you think it's okay at best.Â
âThe food we normally have is quick and easy to make, we donât get much that takes time and effort. Iâm sure youâll be able to handle it though.âÂ
A smile creeps onto your face and you try your best to hide it, still taken aback by the continuous praise, âIâll try my best. We get a lot of fresh vegetables this time of year.âÂ
âIngredients arenât important,â he shakes his head, âIf you could try and get the northern flavor, thatâd be great.â A peaceful demeanor, almost as if heâs reminiscing, overcomes him. It ignites something of a fire in you, making you want to make this the best namul heâd ever had.Â
âIâll be going then,â you say and turn on your heels, only for the commander to call out your name a second later.Â
âDo I really look that tired?â Jihoon asks as your eyes meet his.
âI never meant anything like that⌠Itâs just that I donât get to do much for you and Iâd like to do anything I can.âÂ
The commander frowns, staying silent for a moment. âIâm not sure what it looks like, but I only allow myself to take on jobs that I can do. If I canât do it, then I give it to someone who can. Thatâs also a part of my job.â He watches your eyes for your reaction, âBeing determined is always good, but if thereâs something you canât do, you canât do it, right?âÂ
ââŚRight?â Jihoon is being serious, but for the life of you, you canât understand what he is trying to say.Â
âHow do IâŚâ He hums, tapping his foot impatiently, âWhat Iâm saying is that you donât need to give yourself more work. Just do what jobs you can.âÂ
If you did that, then youâd barely be doing anything.Â
âWith you here, it gives the Hwarang something to stake its pride on. Do you understand?â He breaks his gaze with you to shrug slightly, âWeâll keep you safe, you donât need to worry.â Your silence seems to miff him, âDonât trust me?âÂ
âNo, of course not!â You exclaim shortly, trying to keep your outburst to a minimum.Â
âThen put on a brave face and donât worry over what you canât control,â he sighs, âthatâs what everyone else here does.âÂ
âCommanderâŚâ you feel warm at his words of assurance.Â
âIâll stop lecturing you now,â Jihoon looks back to you, âIâm sorry for holding you.â He reaches for the cup of tea youâd brought him before looking back to his paperwork.Â
âThank youâŚâ You know heâs driven by a ravenous determination to never look at Hong Jisoo or any other Demon out there, and that asking for help from others isnât who he is, yet⌠To hear him say that in front of you, in and of itself, is some part of that resolve. Even though he canât see you now, you give him a bow before you leave the room.Â
đđŹđłđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 1đ°đą, 664 â đđ˘đŹđŻđđđ˘đŹđŠ, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Itâs windy today, you noticed it first when you awoke, the hiss of air swarming in through unsealed cracks and pockets of air where the doors donât meet their frames. You notice it still when the last of the leaves are stripped from their branches as you and Mingyu walk to the city center. And youâre noticing it now, the slice of the cold cutting through your clothes and chilling you to the bone.Â
âIt is almost winter, isnât it?â Mingyu muses as he catches you shivering involuntarily, âThe wind coming in from the coast isnât helping. If this is what itâs like during the day, I kind of feel bad for the guys who patrol at night.âÂ
Your hands clench as he huffs out a laugh that turns into clouded vapors, âAre your hands cold? Want me to hold them for you?âÂ
You know heâs joking by the way you get flustered and tell him no, him laughing again as you continue to walk down the street. Looking up from your embarrassed haze, you spot someone walking towards you.
âIsnât today great?â Junhui asks as he approaches, his arms outstretching as if to embrace the chilled air.
âUnfortunately, not all of us can act like human torches,â Mingyu shakes his head, âI still donât know how youâre not affected by the cold.â
âLook at whoâs talking Mr. Iâll-Break-Code-and-Wear-My-Summer-Clothes,â Junhui scoffs. Now that he mentions it, Mingyu is wearing his Hwarang blues, but the white cloth of his sleeves doesnât look to be the thick linen typically worn during the colder months.
Even if Junhui was meaning to scold him, you know he means it in the friendliest way possible. Their friendship is wrought with things like this: what seems to be an argument but is really them caring for one another. You canât help but chuckle at the two.
âWhyâre you smiling like that?â Junhui asks when he catches your expression.
âShe probably thinks your face is funny, you should really do something about thatâŚâ Mingyu pokes, a teasing cadence to his voice.
âItâs not that,â you shake your head, âI was just remembering the last time we met each other on your rounds, I was with Seungkwan and Soonyoung then.â The latter name brings a bitterness to your tongue, still unsure of how to feel about Soonyoung and Hansol leaving the Hwarang on such short notice. The two menâs faces turn sour at the mention of their friend.
âI just meant that with everything going on⌠it makes me a little nostalgic,â you say, trying to shake off the thought.
âThe Hwarangâs changed,â Mingyu nods with a sigh, âHell, so has everything else. Youngminâs been promoted and all.â
Youngminâs promotion didnât mean he left the Hwarang entirely, but it meant he traveled often to speak with other generals and assess the threat of another Baekje plot. Rumors of Buyeo Pung raising an army in Goguryeo had been circulating recently, putting everyone on edge once again. You thought Youngminâs promotion to be a good thing for the Hwarang, yet with Junhui and Mingyuâs reaction, they seem less than thrilled.
âWe didnât join to be the Crownâs guard dogs,â Junhui shakes his head. While the Hwarang had been surface level related to the Crown, only receiving orders when necessary, they now take orders directly.
âHow is this going to change for everyone going forward?â You ask the pair, trying to focus on them and not the whirlwinds of conversations happening along the busy street.
âWell, if we really do need to fight against another one of Buyeo Pungâs rebellions, we wonât just be killing off the tail end of his followers. Weâll probably be put on the front lines.â Mingyu frowns, not too certain what to think of that idea.
âSupposedly, it was Yoon Jeonghan. Heâs been making efforts to get Baekje back on its feet,â Junhuiâs shoulders shrug, âBecause of that I heard some factions of the revivalists are pissed at him because they were trying to win Pungâs favor.â
âHe already had a target on his back within the Silla government for being a Baekje revivalist, heâs hated by most of the kingdoms now.â Mingyu muses, looking up to the sky for a moment. âUntil something happens though, I suppose things are going to stay as they are.â
âAnd they will, itâs not like they can do anything about what the kings want to do,â Junhui nods. âTheyâll only get involved once the king starts asking them to ration their food again to send it off to war.â
As you look around the street, you want to think that heâs right. The city kept thriving even under the threat of another invasion or war⌠Life continues regardless of what the higher powers of the kingdoms are plotting. You look up to Junhui, words falling out of you before you can catch them,
âI never realized you were so interested in politics.â
âDidnât realize?â He looks slightly taken aback, his arms crossed over his chest, âWhat exactly did you think of me?â
âUhmâŚâ You cough into your hand, looking away from him, âLetâs continue our rounds. Itâs nearly winter which means the sunâs going to start setting earlier...â
đđŹđłđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 7đąđĽ, 664 â đđĽđŹđ§đŚ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ The name Yoon Jeonghan had only been said once before, that you can recall. He seemed to be an instigator for a few of the Baekje-Silla skirmishes as of late and the kingdoms were desperate to find him. Yet, after a few negotiations with Tang and Silla leadership, it seems as if he had betrayed his loyalty to the Silla powers and had begun to help the two allies. You donât know much about the logistics of it, but when Eunseok brings him up, youâre a bit startled by what he says.
âYoon Jeonghan has been assassinated.â Eunseok states the news in the main hall, among the collection of captains who linger there after their morning practice.
âAre you serious?â Mingyu questions, âDo they know who did it?â
âCould have been someone from Silla or it couldâve been someone from the loyalists,â Junhui shrugs, âHell, it couldâve been personal. If it was, I bet it was that Huang guy.â
âIf he was going to get killed, I wish I couldâve done it myself,â Seungkwan sighs, crossing his arms.
âThatâs not very funny, coming from you,â Junhui frowns as he looks at the other captain. âWerenât we told to leave him alone?â
Youâd never met Jeonghan, in fact, you barely know who he was or what he did. Yet somehow you feel that his death means something important to the kingdom, as if the already rising unease has skyrocketed.
âYou all know the orders to leave him alone came from the Crown,â Eunseok nods gravely, âThe rest of the kingdom isnât going to see it that way. A scabbard belonging to a member of the Hwarang was left at the scene of his death. An official investigation by the Guard has been launched.â
âIs a scabbard really enough evidence?â You ask, feeling worry begin to claw its way down your spine.
âIf itâs not Iâm sure theyâll âfindâ some more when it comes time,â Mingyu huffs as he looks back to Eunseok, âWho are they saying it belongs to?â
âThey actually say itâs yours, Mingyu.â Eunseok frowns as the elderâs eyes widen.
âReally Kim?â Seungkwan sounds somewhat amused, âI wish youâd taken me along.â
âCut it, Boo.â Mingyuâs voice is sharp as he motions to his waist, âMy scabbardâs right here. If theyâre going to make shit up they should at least do it better.â
âI donât suspect you,â Eunseok points out and gestures to the others in the room, âIâm sure no one else here does either. Unfortunately, Iâm not sure that the rest of the kingdom wonât try to pin the blame on you⌠Iâm sure theyâre having trouble finding the real culprit. Those who donât think itâs you are looking at Huang Renjun, they say that he hired us to kill Yoon.â Was that the Huang that Junhui had mentioned earlier? Â
âIâm sure most of the kingâs chamber are eager to pin this on us though,â Junhui shakes his head, âEver since the rumors of Baekje started again, the king only appointed staunchly pro-Royal Guardian and Guard nobles. Unless someone lied though, thereâs no way this murder was done by one of us.â
âUnless Seungcheol decided to go and do it off the record,â Seungkwan notes, a slight smirk on his lips.
âHow⌠is he these days?â Mingyu asks, a worried expression on his face. The last few times youâd come across him, he seemed to be acting stranger and stranger. Even if you didnât want to believe it, something like this wasnât far out of his realm of possibility. Whenever you pass him in the halls, it looks as if heâs hungry, thirsty for blood.
âWeâll have to be careful,â Junhui says, a hand running through his hair, âIf we let people know about the FuriesâŚâ
âAbout that,â Jihoon interjects as he walks into the room, followed by Youngmin. It looks as if heâs going to say something else but the third figure that walks in takes everyone by surprise that whatever the commander is trying to say gets drowned out.
âHansol?â Junhui nearly gasps out, âWhat the hell are you doing here?!â
For a moment, you question whether youâre asleep or not. The man who had just entered the hall was the same man whoâd left months ago with Gongmyung and his men, Choi Hansol.
âHansol,â Eunseok says, a smile overcoming him, âWhat happened with Gongmyungâs organization?â
âWhy are you so nonchalant about this?â You ask him as you look at Hansol. âThereâs no way the commander would allow someone from Gongmyungâs group here, weâre not even supposed to be talking to themââ
âJust,â Jihoon sighs out, trying to get the energy in the room to settle, âLet me talk. Starting today, Choiâs returned to the Hwarang.â
âWhat?â Mingyu sounds surprised, his once crossed arms falling to his sides. âHold on, Lee, weâre glad heâs back but⌠What happened to Gongmyung?â
âYouâre mistaken, but understandably so,â Hansol speaks, and you feel a sense of calm wash over you. Itâs been too long since youâd heard him last. âI was never one of his supporters.â
âIn fact, he joined Gongmyung under Jihoonâs direct orders,â Youngmin says with a coy smile, âAs a spy, of sorts.â With the leaderâs words, everything begins to make sense.
âI canât believe you went off and had fun without me,â Seungkwan faux pouts at Hansol.
âIâm sorry we had to keep this from you,â Youngminâs head bows down in apology. Itâs a surprise for sure, but nonetheless a welcome one.
You give Hansol a small smile but he only sighs and shakes his head, âIâm afraid itâs a bit early to feel relieved.â His gaze turns to Jihoon, âThe last six months have made Gongmyungâs intentions clear. Gongmyung plans to uproot the Hwarang institution in favor of his ideal one.â
âWhat do you mean by uproot?â Eunseok asks with a frown.
âGongmyung is going to expose the Furies to force the kingâs favor,â Jihoon bites the inside of his cheek as he holds in a scathing retort.
âThereâs more,â Hansol adds and glances at Youngmin, âThey plan to assassinate the Leader of the Hwarang.â
Youngminâs face is tense, gaze hardening as he looks at Jihoon and waits for him to speak. You feel your stomach drop, not realizing the extent to which Gongmyung hated the Hwarang.
âThe Guardians are moving to destroy us,â The commander says and looks to Mingyu, âYou heard about Yoon?â
âThat theyâre trying to pin it on me?â A nod, âYeah.â
âTheyâre using it to pin blame on us and to discredit your father,â Jihoon crosses his arms, âTheyâve been spreading the rumor across Seorabeol, even if Huang says that he wasnât the one who âhiredâ us, thereâs still going to be people who believe it was our doing.â His gaze travels to Hansol, âSo, Choiâs going to be guarding Huang for the time being. If it looks like he left and then came back, it wonât be hard for Gongmyung to figure us out.â
A subtle nod from the captain, âOf course.â
The room stays quiet, so quiet that one can hear the wind whistling in from outside. A tension remains taught in the room, anticipatory for whatâs to come and the outcome of what it brings.
âKim GongmyungâŚâ The name leaves Jihoon in a hushed murmur, âItâs not enough for him to expose the Fury Corps, but to try and kill Youngmin too?â Itâs almost as if heâs having a quiet conversation with his former comrade. He shakes his head, drawing his gaze from the floor and looks to the captains, âItâs too bad that it has to end this way, but we have no other choice. Gongmyung dies.â
âIt canât really be helped, can it?â Youngmin exhales, nodding solemnly as if to seal the former Deputy Commanderâs fate.
âWeâll invite Gongmyung to Youngminâs residence in Seorabeol, Iâll be there too,â Jihoon begins, his voice low, commanding, âOnce heâs dead weâll use his corpse to lure the rest of his Guardians there and kill them.â He looks to Mingyu and Junhui, âIâm assigning both of you and your divisions to this, take care of it.
âWho do you want me to kill?â Seungkwan asks, his hand resting atop the hilt of his sword.
âNo one, youâre staying here.â When he sees the other beginning to protest, the commander speaks again, âYouâve still got that cough, right? Youâre sick. Hansol can keep you company for a few days.â
âSo, youâre telling me I canât participate in the assassination of a person whoâs trying to kill our leader?â Seungkwan sounds agitated, a bitterness coating his words as he glares at Jihoon, âYouâre a real asshole.â
You donât realize that youâve been watching the scene unfold in silent shock until you feel a gentle tap on your shoulder. Turning, you see Hansol standing there, he seems to take in a breath before speaking.
âThe Guardians of the Royal Tomb are going to be destroyed after this⌠If we want Soonyoung to return, this is our only chance of getting him back.â
Eyes widening at what he says, heâs right. If the Hwarang mean to kill the Guardians, that includes Kwon Soonyoung.
Sucking in a breath, you look at Jihoon, âCommander? What are we going to do about Soonyoung? Heâs a part of the GuardiansâŚâ
âDonât be silly,â Junhui says easily, âOf course weâll save hiââ
âIf he fights us, he dies.â Jihoon interrupts, cutting off the captain.
âYou canât mean thatââ Heart beginning to pound in your chest, your mind going blank. Is Jihoon serious? âYouâve known Soonyoung for so long, surely you donât mean that?â
Jihoon looks as if he wants to push you away, turning on his heels and exiting the main hall swiftly.
âYouâre actually going to order them to kill Soonyoung?!â You cry out after him, finding yourself following his footsteps, âJust because he left the Hwarang means you donât care if he lives or dies?!â Before youâre actually able to leave the main hall, a hand grabs the back of your robes and pulls you into the room.
âI know that he wants to save him too,â Youngminâs voice says softly as you turn to face him, his hand letting go of your clothes. âThereâs no way he could possibly live with giving the command to kill a friend who was part of our family for years.â His hands clench at his side, so much so his knuckles turn white and you fear his nails have pierced his skin.
In this moment you realize how much each of the Hwarang are suffering with this.
âIâm sorry for saying that,â you bow your head to him after your realization.
âThereâs no need,â Youngmin sighs, âYouâre angry. We all are. It makes me happy though, Iâm glad people care about Soonyoung.â He lets out a heaving sigh before turning toward Mingyu and Junhui, âIâm not asking this as your Leader, but as Kwak Youngmin⌠Let Soonyoung live, if you can. Try to convince him to rejoin the Hwarang.â
â⌠Got it,â Junhui says quickly as Mingyu takes a moment more to think.
âHis life in our hands?â He shakes his head, âThatâs a big responsibility.â
âI trust everythingâs clear, then?â Youngmin asks, scanning the faces of the captains, âIf you have questions, now is the best time to ask.â
ââŚWait,â you speak up, unable to stop yourself. The leader looks to you as you brace yourself, âI havenât been given any orders. I want to help.â
âThis is an⌠unseemly job.â Youngmin looks at you, brow contorted, âNothing like Wonweol or Ongsan. You shouldnât be involved.â
Heâs right. This isnât a mandated order from a higher official, this was the Hwarangâs business alone, a covert and self-righteous one at that. They arenât meant to guard or patrol, theyâre set on murder. Still, you want to do what you can.
âPlease, let me be a part of it,â You implore, âI promise I wonât get in the way.â
âThis isnât like anything else youâve been a part of,â Junhui says gently, âYou understand that, right?â
âWeâre killing someone who used to be a Hwarang.â Mingyu adds soberly, unable to look you in the eye. âAnd even if we donât want to, we may end up killing Soonyoung.â
âI know itâs serious.â The Hwarang, as prim and proper as they like to see themselves a majority of the time, have carried out these sorts of missions before. There wasnât any way you could stay with them if you hadnât known, but this burden was too much to bear alone. âIf itâs too presumptuous, please tell me, but I consider myself a member of the Hwarang at this point. And because weâre going through this, I want to help however possible.â
âTell me then, how do you intend to help?â Youngminâs face has lost its usual warmth. Anger not cruelness takes shape on his expression, but the gravity of the situation at hand seems to age him a handful of years. He seems like a weathered general addressing his troops.
âI want to help with Gongmyung.â
Youngmin seems to stare at you, analyzing your thought process with fierce determination.
âVery well then,â he nods once, âYou may accompany us.â
đđŹđłđ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 9đąđĽ, 664 â đđĽđŹđ§đŚ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Whether out of courtesy or want to humiliate his former leader, Kim Gongmyung accepts Youngminâs invitation to his home several days after the plan to assassinate him came to be. Kwak Youngmin and Lee Jihoon stand at the head of the room, speaking quietly to one another before the sound of approaching footsteps enters the room. You stand in the corner of the dimly lit area as Gongmyung walks in, an air of proudness about him.
âWhy am I honored with the privilege of being summoned here this evening?â Gongmyung asks, looking around the room. âI can surmise you wish to ask me something?â
âI called on you because I was hoping to have a discussion,â Youngmin says with a confident grin, âItâs about the current political climate. You, as well as me, must have seen that we need to come to a consensus on how to move on from here.â
âLetâs save the business talk for later,â Jihoon says, âLetâs try to get warmed up first.â
You move to sit at the small table set up in the center of the room, several bottles of gokaju littering the tabletop. Jihoon reaches out to pour Gongmyung a cup, the latter noting this,
âI never thought Iâd see the day where Lee Jihoon pours me a cup of alcohol.â
âDonât say it like that,â the commander chuckles, âI wasnât faced with as formal an education as you, it just took me a bit to learn the proper etiquette. Weâve come to realize that you were right this whole time."
âWith your politeness, I canât help but feel a little⌠off.â Gongmyung notes as he lifts the glass of gokaju, âYouâre not trying to poison me, are you?â
âDonât trust me?â Jihoon shakes his head, moving to pour himself a cup before downing it quickly. âNot poisoned, am I?â An eyebrow quirked to the Guardian as he set down his glass.
âI never meant to offendââ Gongmyung states and sips from his cup.
The three continue to drink, you pouring most of the glasses, with Gongmyung becoming more and more reddened with the amount of alcohol the two Hwarang and you ply him with.
âAre you familiar with Dong Sichengâs âOn the State of Beingâ?â Gongmyung slurs his words together as he speaks to the two, âOn what it means to find peace in the life you were given? That was written twenty years ago! Do you know how much has changed since the fall of Baekje?â
âYouâre right,â Youngmin nods in agreement, âThe Crown has implemented so many new things that I canât quite keep up with it myself.â
âSo, you agree!â Gongmyung nods vehemently, âAnd to add to that, theyâre looking for help from the Tang to help educate the troops! And dress like them as well!â
âIs that true?â Youngmin asks, looking a bit taken aback.
âOf course, it is, all of my sources are very reliable,â Gongmyung says after downing another cup of gokaju. âIf you ask me, this spells out a rocky relationship once this Baekje mess is over. If we leave ourselves with Tang customs, thereâll only be little left of Sillaâs own design in its own kingdom!â
âI seeâŚâ Jihoon nods. His lips smile as if he agrees but a different, burning fire behind his eyes tells a different tale. âThis means weâll have to rethink a lot of things, right, Chief?â
âYouâre right,â the shock that had once lain on Youngminâs face is gone, replaced with a cheery smile. âGongmyung, it would be such an honor if you would continue to guide us on such matters in the future.â
âConfucius once said: âGentlemen are undignified if they are frivolous, and they arenât stubborn after learning.â So, yes,â Gongmyung nods, âOf course Iâll help you. If you all donât open your minds to proper knowledge, youâll just become hard-headed.â
âWe may be on different paths, but we are headed for the same destination,â Jihoon nods, âYour glass seems empty, would you like another drink?â
âYes, please.â Gongmyung motions towards his empty cup, âThis gokaju is very easy to drink.â
âHere you are,â you say, pouring some of the contents of the bottle in your grasp into his drink. There isnât poison within the alcohol, yet you were making Gongmyung drunk now to murder him later. Although this felt no more different than pouring poison into his glass.
âYour hands are shaking,â Gongmyung notes as you manage to drop a few beads of gokaju onto the table as you pull the bottle away from his glass, âYouâre not feeling ill, are you?â
âAh, donât worry about him, heâs probably just nervous about speaking to you,â Youngmin waves it off with a small laugh.
âAm I that intriguing?â The Guardian chuckles as he looks at you.
âHe does have his moments,â Jihoon says, his eyes flickering to you. âYou need a little self-control sometimes.â His subtle message is clear: hide your emotions. It had been your choice to be here, the least you can do now is to not screw it up.
âIâm sorry,â you say to Gongmyung and move to wipe up the droplets with your sleeve.
âOh, donât be so boring,â Gongmyung laughs, âWeâre having fun!â
âTruly a man worthy of distinction,â Youngmin nods as he looks at the man.
âYou flatter me,â he sighs out with a smile, âIs there anything else you want to ask me? I can answer anything.â
The minutes turn into hours, Gongmyung is drunk, stumbling to the street as you, Youngmin and Jihoon follow him.
âThank you for the meaningful conversation,â he says as he spins on his heels, looking towards Youngmin. âIâll take my leave now.â
âItâs dark out,â Youngmin notes the dimness of the street, âPlease be careful on your way back home.â
âThereâs no one who would dare kill me in Seorabeol,â Gongmyung almost snickers at the thought, drunkenly sauntering away into the darkness of the cityâs streets. You watch his silhouette fade into the blackness, noting that it would be the last time youâd see him alive. A hand on your shoulder has you looking away, turning, and you see Youngmin looking at you.
ââŚItâs a bitter taste, isnât it?â The frown on his lips is telling as you sigh.
âItâs the path we chose,â Jihoon shakes his head, âOur duty. In order for us to do whatâs right, sometimes we need to get our hands dirty.â You feel conflicted, unable to say anything as you stand on the quiet street. âThis isnât on you or Kwak, though,â the commander says, sensing your unease. âI was the one who orchestrated it, I gave the orders.â
What happened later that night is something youâd rather forget. Gongmyung, too inebriated to walk in a straight line, was quickly killed by the Hwarang waiting for him. But that didnât end the night. Junhui was met with a bloody fight outside of the Guardians building, Seungkwan was faced with fate at Shoji. For many of the Hwarang, it is a night after which nothing would be the same.
The assassination of Kim Gongmyung and the dissolvement of the Guardians of the Royal Tomb comes to be known as the Samsil Incident. Both the Guardians and the Hwarang were surprised by the sudden appearance of the Royal Guard and the Demons who accompanied them. Both parties had fallen for the trap and the fight was thrown into a mass disarray.
As the battle of Samsil was taking place, the headquarters of the Hwarang came under attack from Hong Jisoo. Causing the already ill Seungkwan to further injure himself fending off the attacker.
The serum that your father brought to the Hwarang seems to only be a cause for worry. Slowly devouring the organization piece by piece. How long until the serum swallows them whole?
đđ˘đ đ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 2đŤđĄ, 664 â đđĽđŹđ§đŚ đđ˘đŞđđŠđ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Barely a month since Gongmyungâs murder, since the Samsil Incident and the return of Soonyoung and Hansol, but the Hwarang feels nothing like it once was. A looming, dark atmosphere hangs over the headquarters. Many men had lost their lives or had been injured due to Jisooâs attack, even more had been wounded in the fight of Samsil, Soonyoung being one of them. Several of the wang-do had seen him almost succumb to the injuries heâd sustained during the battle, due to this, he was pronounced dead but joined the Fury Corps shortly after. Hansol hadnât been wounded, but many of the Hwarang began to call him a coward.
To them, his betrayal of leaving the Hwarang still runs deep, worsened as they saw him leaving the Guardians to change his fate. You see no reason why he shouldnât correct them: heâd left to help the Hwarang, not deceive them. He claims that heâll keep quiet on the matter, as to not tarnish both Youngmin and Jihoonâs names, who had ordered him to join Gongmyung. Due to this, it has been decided that Hansol will leave Shoji for the time being, until the hot-headed tempers of some of the Hwarang recede. Heâs been sent to protect Huang Renjun, a Tang noble residing in the northern part of the kingdom.
The Samsil Incident was in no small terms a turning point for the Hwarang. For the men who knew only the surface level details, it seems as if it were just a battle between the Hwarang and their former comrades. Those better informed know that it is the causation due to a culminating fear of another Baekje rebellion. Yoon Jeonghanâs death solidified that as truth. And further still: the Hwarang are the only ones who know of the Demons, and Soonyoungâs transformation into a Fury. Theyâre the only ones who know Seungkwanâs illness has gotten worse.
Such an event riled the compound, a moment of silence scarce in the days following the battle. Feeling as you would only be in the way during this time, you keep to your room.
Youâre sitting cross-legged at your desk, wondering if writing your thoughts down may help you try and conceptualize this all, when your door opens without a knock.
âThank goodness youâre here,â Seungcheol says as he steps into your room. âIf youâd left, I wouldnât have been able to search for you.â
âSeungcheol?â You look up to him, confused at his appearance. âItâs daytime, are you okay?â
âYes, yes,â Seungcheol nods his head, his voice sounding a little frantic. âI just had a revelation and had to share it with you immediately.â His eyes glitter with⌠a dangerous curiosity and you feel spindly cold fingers of dread scratch down your back.
âWhy me?â Questioning carefully, âWouldnât you want to tell the Chief or Commander first?â
ââŚWell, it has to be you.â A small frown pulling at his lips, âWonât you listen to me?â Although in the form of a question, the way he asserts himself lets you know you have no choice. âSooyoung claimed you are from a Demon family, right?â He doesnât allow you to respond before he begins to speak. âAnd as a Demon, youâre stronger, faster and more resilient than a human. Their superiority over humans was clearly displayed during their most recent attack.â
âI understand that,â you nod slowly, âBut what are you trying to say?â
âA Demon possesses more power than the average human, it follows that the blood of a Demon possesses that power as well,â His deductions begin to unsettle you, despite that, he continues, âPerhaps even potent enough to counteract the madness of the Furies.â
Youâre unsure how the pimul works, but Seungcheolâs explanation seems logical, even if heâs somewhat frenetic about it.
âSince before I became a Fury, Iâve been researching how the serum works, I know more about it than anyone here.â Seungcheol pauses and shakes his head, âYet, I still have yet to discover the exact composition of it. I hypothesize, however, that a core ingredient is fresh blood⌠And Iâm assuming not from a human. Perhaps there are Demons or Demon-like beings roaming throughout the other kingdoms.â
âSoâŚâ You trail off, still not able to follow him completely.
Seungcheol takes a step closer to you, falling to his knees as you continue to sit at your desk, âYour very existence could save the Fury Corps⌠No,â He shakes his head, âThe entirety of the Hwarang.â His eyes turn sharp, piercing, even, as he looks at you. The barest trace of mania in his voice as he confesses his thoughts. His hand reaches for the sword at his hip, calmly and carefully drawing it from the scabbard.
There seems to be no madness or bloodlust in his movements, but that only serves to terrify you even more.
âIâm not going to kill you,â He tries to reassure you, but your heartâs beating too quickly and your limbs feel too heavy to move away from him, âI just want a sample of your bloodâŚâ Seungcheol begins to rise to his feet, thatâs when you find yourself mirroring him, taking a step or two backwards to distance yourself from him.
The blade glimmers in the sunlight as he raises it, raising it towards you before you hear a shout from the hallway.
âSeungcheol, what the hell are you doing?!â Jihoon bursts into the room, quickly looking from the colonel to you as if to gauge the situation. âWhatâs going on here? Of all people, you should know not to draw your sword on someone in the compound, have you lost it?â
âJihoon,â Seungcheol smiles when he sees him, âPlease, give me a hand here. Convince her to cooperate with us.â
With an assertive quiet, Jihoon steps between you and Seungcheol. âPersonal conflicts are forbidden, the O Gye apply to even us.â
The colonel stares at Jihoon for a moment, and then another before begrudgingly sheathing his sword.
âDid she do something to upset you?â Jihoon asks one it seems as if Seungcheolâs cooled down.
âIâm searching for a way to treat the madness caused by becoming a Fury, for the good of us all,â Seungcheol says simply, his hand still resting on the hilt of his sword.
âAnd that means you have to cut her?â
âItâs not like Iâm going to kill her,â Seungcheol frowns and shakes his head, âI only need a little of her blood. We lost so many Furies during the attacks, many of our human wang-do as well. If we are to effectively use the men we have leftâ We need to find a way to temper their madness. Surely you understand this, Jihoon.â
âThe code says weâre to trust one another,â His gaze hardens at the colonel, âIt doesnât look like sheâs very trusting of you right now. No matter your reasoning, I cannot condone this if either party is unwilling, or coerced into submitting.â
âItâs not as if sheâs one of the Hwarang,â Seungcheol points out.
âMaybe not, but sheâs been here long enough to might as well be one.â The two continue to stare at each other for a while, their stubbornness present at the matter.
Seungcheol eventually sighs, âIt isnât like you to be this soft. Iâll leave for now. But if we donât find a way to suppress the side effects of the pimul⌠Even Soonyoung will suffer like the rest.â He leaves on that note, you donât exhale until you hear his footsteps wane away into nothing.
Jihoon hums, looking at the door and then turning to you, âAre you okay?â
âOh, yes,â You nod, âThank youâŚâ
âNothing to thank me for,â He bows his head, âI was making sure he was adhering to our code.â His gaze returns to the door, âIn the past, he wouldnât have challenged me like that.â
A slow nod as your eyes find the door, lingering there for a moment. Itâs turn, Seungcheol had been acting more and more strange lately. He would never have drawn his sword aggressively, or demanded things from you without consulting the other Hwarang first. â⌠Iâm sorry.â
âIs something wrong with you?â Jihoon questions, his attention turning rapt to you, âThere isnât anything to be apologetic for.â
âThe reason he was acting like thatâŚâ You frown, âBecause Jisoo destroyed the Fury Corps.â
Jihoon seems to reflect on this for a moment before responding, âI think youâre confused.â
âHong Jisoo has allied himself with our enemies, be it in the court or Baekje. If an enemy attacks us, itâs known that weâre going to put our lives on the line to stop them.â Thereâs conviction in his voice yet you cannot help the guilt that invades you.
âIt isnât your sole duty to protect me, though.â
âWhat are you trying to say?â His arms cross as he tilts his head, âWant us to hand you over to the Demons in the hopes theyâll spare our lives? Just because theyâre more powerful than us? That isnât how we work.â Jihoonâs confident in his claim, and you feel no way to object to it. Even if he wonât say it, having you leave the compound would make their live exponentially less dangerous, it would be a violation of the values they pride themselves in upholding.
âIâm sorry if what I said was out of line,â apologizing once more, you bow your head.
âI already told you to stop apologizing, donât make me repeat myself,â He murmurs under his breath, timidly looking in your direction. âThe next time something like this happens, tell me. Donât keep it to yourself.â Â
âI understand,â you look at him and nod. Jihoon then turns to leave, but thereâs one thing left you have to say. âCommanderâŚâ
He stops and looks back to you, âIs there something else?â
âIs there anything I can help you all with?â With Youngmin busy with the Crown, Hansol protecting Huang and Jihoon himself tirelessly working, you feel wrong not aiding in some way.
âHelp?â He sounds almost incredulous. Has he become upset at your question?
âIt could be anythingâŚâ
The silence stretches throughout the room, saturating the space for a moment.
âYou may be more discreet than some of our menâŚâ He seems to muse for a second, âBrush and paper.â
âHuh?â You ask, looking at him with confusion.
âDo you have a brush and paper?â Jihoon asks as he glances around your room.
âOf course,â you reply and quickly rummage around your room for the materials. After a few moments you gather the items and he sits at the desk in your room, staying silent as he quickly begins to draw. It looks to be a rudimentary map of sorts, having you question, âWhat is⌠that?â He ignores you and continues to draw. Â
âHansol is in Noseo-dong guarding Huang, right?â
âRight,â you nod, looking down to the paper.
âI want you to visit him,â Jihoon says before gently blowing air onto the ink, hoping to dry it faster. âDo you think you can? You wonât stand out as much as one of our men.â
âYes, of course,â You say enthusiastically, excited to do something, and even more overjoyed that itâs especially catered to you.
âI drew you a map,â He says, lifting the edges of the paper and handing it to you, âSo you donât get lost.â Without it, you may have, only really knowing the select routes of several of the captainsâ patrol when itâs your turn.
âIâll get going, then.â Taking the parchment into your grasp, you begin to turn on your heels towards the door before the commander stops you.
âItâll be hard to deliver a message you havenât heardâŚâ His voice stops you in your tracks and you whip around to face him, âI know itâs been a while since youâve been out, but youâre getting a little too excited.â
âIâm sorry!â Exclaiming with widened eyes as you look at him.
As you speak, he quickly writes something down on another piece of parchment, he lets it dry for a moment, carefully folding the paper before handing it to you. âThis is a letter for Captain Choi, make sure you donât drop it⌠or lose it.â
âIâll be very careful,â you say as the parchment folds in your grasp, âIs there anything you want me to say to him?â
âEverything I need to say is in that letter,â he nods, glancing at the paper.
âIâll be off then,â you state and hurriedly leave the room, anxious to begin your mission.
The streets of Seorabeol are busy once again, the crowds closely knit together, not allowing you any space to slide past the throng of bodies. Jihoonâs map, unfolded haphazardly in your hands, guides you to Noseo-dong and leads you through several side streets, winding your way around the district until you come upon one of the most unassuming inns you have ever seen. On the map, Jihoon had written that Hansolâs name should be under âSeolaâ.
Making your way inside, you walk to who you presume to be the innkeeper, you ask to speak with your friend and theyâre off, Hansol walking out shortly after.
âA HaâI mean Seola,â you say with a nod, âIâm sorry for bothering you.â
âOh,â he says, almost genuinely surprised, âI didnât realize theyâd send you.â
âIâm sure you werenât expecting someone as inexperienced,â You give out a short laugh.
âNo,â he shakes his head to dismiss your thought, âI was only surprised. I expected to receive new orders soon, but I didnât expect that youâd be the one to deliver them.â
âAh, well, I asked if there was anything to do to help andâŚâ You mutter, reaching for the letter youâd tucked away on your belt.
âI can see the commanderâs thinking,â Hansol muses and reaches out to take the parchment, âItâs a good plan. Any other Hwarang wouldâve drawn unnecessary attention to this place. The new members canât be trusted yet, either. You, on the other hand, can move unnoticed, and your loyalty is beyond question. He really did make the best choice.â
The captainâs explanation makes you realize how much Jihoon had thought the plan through, not merely giving you the task on a whim.
Hansol then unfolds the letter, scanning its contents before lighting it on a nearby lantern and watching the paper disintegrate into ash on the ground.
âUh, Captain Choi?â You begin but he cuts you off.
âSeola.â
âAh, right. Seola,â you retract your words and begin anew, âIs it okay to burn that?â
âIâve read it and know what it says,â his shoulders shrug, âThereâs no reason to leave evidence lying around. Thank you for delivering it.â
By the time you return to Shoji, the sun has already dipped below the horizon, dusk coolly falling onto the compound as the bite of winter sinks its teeth into you. Breath coming out in short puffs only to quell as you enter the main hall, you find the space empty. Youâre surprised, hoping to see at least one of the captains loitering around, but none are present. So, you make your way to Jihoonâs quarters to report that youâd succeeded in handing the letter off to Hansol.
âCommander?â You ask, knocking on his door.
âCome in,â you hear after a moment and open the door, stepping into his room. His room still lay adorned with documents as he sits at his desk, the glow of the lantern in the corner of his room providing a shimmering light onto him. âThank you for taking care of that,â Jihoon says as he looks up to you from his work, âHow was Hansol?â
âHeâs his usual self,â simply said as he nods his head.
âThatâs good,â a sigh and you wonder whatâs come over him. His mood seems more sour than when you left him earlier in the day.
âIâm sorry,â you say, unsure of how to go on with your conversation.
âWhat do you mean?â His brow furrows, âDid you lose the letter? Or did you not even make it to the inn?â
âNothing like thatââ
âThen why did you apologize?â
âI thought youâd be angry since Iâd taken so long to get backâŚâ You lead off, eyes breaking from his gaze and settling on the floor.
He sighs, as if relieved what you said wasnât dire, âIâm not mad at you. It may surprise you that I have other things to worry about than just you.â
âOh of course,â You say quickly, âI never meant to imply thatâ â
Jihoonâs expression softens and he gives a short chuckle, shaking his head as he tries to contain himself. It does warm you a bit, knowing that he isnât as worked up as you thought him to be.
âIf you donât mind me asking, why were you so upset earlier?â
âAs you know,â he sighs, âthere have been some issues in the Hwarang. Things are becoming more strained with the higher-ups as well.
âThe higher-ups?â
âAh, youâre practically one of us so I should tell you,â the happiness from seconds ago fades as his brow furrows, âWord is, Buyeo Pung is on the move again, this time backed by Goguryeo.â Does this mean that there would be a bigger battle than that of Baekgang or Ongsan? Jihoonâs lips purse and he shakes his head, âWeâre not sure of their movements until they strike first. Then again, itâs not like worrying about it will do any of us good.â With each sentence, thereâs another sigh, knowing the decisions made now will impact the whole of the Hwarang in the future.
âIs there anything else I can do to help?â
âWas running off to Noseo-dong not enough for you?â He questions with a piqued eyebrow.
âNo⌠But if the Hwarang need help, I feel more than obliged to lend a hand.â
âYou know what?â His eyes linger on his paperwork, âNo matter how much you work, youâre different from Hansol, Chan, or Wonwoo. And you wouldnât be able to do the dirty work that I give Junhui or Mingyu, either. Assigning duties to my men isnât as easy as Iâd like it to be.â Every one of his words feels like a knife to your gut, even if he has a point.
âI understand that Iâm not a warrior like the rest of you,â you begin with a deep breath, âBut I see how hard everyone is working and it makes me feel bad if I just sit around and donât do anything.â Head bowing and your eyes looking to the floor, âJust let me help out in any way I canâŚâ
Jihoon sits quietly for a moment before sighing out a âDamnâŚâ, you hear him move to stand, his footsteps nearing you and his hand gently placed under your chin. His hand raises your face until your eyes are locked with his, the proximity of him so close to you sets your skin on fire. The commanderâs eyes seem to pierce through you, the intensity churning your stomach.
âYou say that you want to help,â he says as you nod your head, his hand still planted under your chin, âWhy?â You canât find the words immediately, and as you think, he speaks again, âIs it because you want to make a name for yourself? Or do you want us to recognize your efforts and reward you accordingly?â
âThatâs not it,â confidence riddled in those three words as you speak.
âThen why put yourself through all of this?â
âFor everything you all have done for meâŚâ You frown, the pads of his fingertipâs abrasive on the underside of your chin. âThere were times you all put your life on the line, people got hurt⌠The Hwarang have protected me time and time again. I just want to give back. I donât want to regret anything anymore.â
 Jihoonâs hand falls away from you and he sighs, speaking with a low voice, âThen stop bowing so easily. You think youâre right. Why apologize if you believe yourself to be true?â Your eyes widen at his words, slowly realizing what heâs trying to convey. âIf you believe in something then never yield to someone else. Hold your head up high and walk tall, you wonât win if you canât even see the prize because youâre looking down at your feet.â
His words spark something in you, an understanding of his mindset and attitude towards life. So, you look at him, trying to match your gazeâs intensity with the blooming fires behind his eyes.
âI want to help. If thereâs anything I can do, let me know.â
A small smile flickers onto Jihoonâs lips as he takes a step back from you, âIf you want to help so much, how about you make some tea?â
âAlright,â you nod assertively, and the smile lingers on the commanderâs face.
âThe fate of the Hwarang rests on this tea, you know.â
âLeave it to me!â You say loudly, brushing past him and out of the room, racing as fast as you can towards the kitchen. Yet, before you leave, you can hear Jihoon mumble to himself,
âWhatâll happen to us nowâŚâ
đđ˘đ đ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 11đąđĽ, 664 â đđŚđŞ đđ˘đŹđ¨đŞđŚđŤâđ° âđ˘đ°đŚđĄđ˘đŤđ đ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ Baekje is trying to restore itself once more. News from Goguryeo solidifies King Munmuâs fears a few days into December, after a skirmish breaks out on the Silla-Goguryeo front. At first it was thought to be Goguryeo troops, but with Buyeo Pung leading the charge himself, itâs quickly realized that the kingdom is once again trying to establish itself.
More and more soldiers begin to flock to Seorabeol in anticipation of the oncoming onslaught, purges of Baekje loyalists once again resume and a tension lies in the air as if a cord is about to snap and set everything loose. With each passing day, news comes from the north of the collecting armies, as well as from the east, where former Baekje citizens have begun to rebel against the Silla leadership. As the Crown draws in its allies, seeking out aid from Tang once more, they call upon the Hwarang to aid in the upcoming battle.
The Hwarang reside at Kim Seokminâs residence, Mingyuâs fatherâs home a little way outside of the city. While his father remains locked in the capital as plans are drawn, the residence is being used as a base of operations for the Hwarang, and not just those from Seorabeol.
âEveryone!â A voice shouts from the outer courtyard of the home, a wang-do bursting into the main room, sweat dotting their brow and his eyes looking frantic. âThe Chiefâs been shot!â
There were no witnesses, and the culprit escaped unnoticed. The motives unsure.
âWhat the hell?â Junhui frowns, âWhat asshole uses a bow in the city?â The captain leaves the residence shortly after collecting a group of men to survey the scene of where Youngmin had been attacked.
The arrow pierced the leaderâs right shoulder, the head lodging into bone and shattering it. It requires more treatment than you can provide.
The sun had gone down when the door to the main room opened again, Seungcheol striding in the room, looking surprised to see you. âYouâre still awake?â
âColonel ChoiâŚâ You note, âIf you need to use this room Iâll leave.â
âI donât mind,â he shakes his head, âRather, I think itâs best that you stay here.â His words are confusing, anxiousness rising in your stomach as you recall the last time youâd been alone with him.
Just as he finishes speaking, the captains of the Hwarang file into the room, somber expressions dotting their faces. Your anxiousness only continues to heighten.
â⌠Looks like everyoneâs here,â Jihoon muses as the door is closed to allow you all a bit of privacy.
âWhereâs Seungkwan?â Seungcheol asks, scanning the faces for the missing captain.
âHe shouldnât hear this,â Jihoon shakes his head, âIf he learns about Kwak, he wouldnât think twice about his safety and run off to find vengeance.â
âBut if thatâs what he wants, why wouldnât you let him?â Seungcheol points out, âAgain, being too kind, Jihoon.â
âWhat did you want from us?â Mingyuâs voice rises, directed towards the colonel. âWe donât know when the fightingâs going to start, for all of us to be here right now⌠Donât tell meââ
âItâs exactly that.â Seungcheol nods. âI asked you to come with the intention of giving you something.â In his hands, you now see, is a bundle of cloth that he slowly unwraps before you all. What you see makes you take in a sharp breath of air.
âPimul?â Hansol frowns, eyeing the vials of red liquid in the colonelâs hands.
âAs captains of the Hwarang, we took on the risks of researching this,â a slow nod, âIn doing so, itâs necessary for us to take responsibility for this experiment. Especially if any of you become injured and unable to fight. Or in the worst case, thereâs a possibility that you may lose your own life.â Moving the vials to one hand, he picks up one in his other and examines it in the lantern light of the room, âI know for certain that this serum will be of use to you.â
âColonelâŚâ Junhui says slowly, âAre you trying to experiment on us too?â
âI know your hesitation,â Seungcheol snips, dropping the vial back into the pile with an audible clink, âBut under our current circumstances, we cannot afford to lose any more of our captains.â
âFuck that,â Junhui frowns, âI donât want to depend on that shit to survive.â With that, he storms past the group of captains with heavy footfalls, swinging open the door before leaving.
âMaybe this would be something of a good luck charmâŚâ Eunseok suggests, his eyes warily looking over the vials. âI hope it never comes to the point where we use the serum.â Seungcheol extends the pile to the captains.
âI donât think Iâll use it,â Mingyu murmurs as both he and Hansol pick up a vial, âbut Iâll keep it just in caseâŚâ
Until this moment, Jihoon had remained silent, listening to Seungcheolâs speech.
âTake responsibility, huh?â Eyes looking troubled, the commander reaches for a vial and pockets it, almost as if he doesnât want to acknowledge its presence, âMaybe youâre onto something.â
âI believe thatâs all I have to say for tonight.â Seungcheol nods as he folds the now empty cloth, âI hope this courtesy doesnât go to waste.â After he finishes, the captains slowly file out, leaving you alone with Seungcheol once more.
âIâm sure youâre aware of this,â He sighs and looks to you, âBut donât let any word of this reach the other Hwarang, do I make myself clear?â
Nodding your head timidly, the colonel stays for another moment before leaving.
The serum that your father created now lies in the hands of the Hwarang captains. The serum that had entrenched them into the world of Demons and a life they should never have had to think about.
đđ˘đ đ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 16đąđĽ, 664 â đđŚđŞ đđ˘đŹđ¨đŞđŚđŤâđ° âđ˘đ°đŚđĄđ˘đŤđ đ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ âWe still havenât figured out who shot the Chief?â
âI bet you anything it was some of those Guardian bastards!â
âNo way, it was probably the Baekje loyalistsââ
Ever since the attack on Kwak Youngmin, the atmosphere at Kim Seokminâs residence had been wrought with speculation and tension. This tension ever more present as you step into the main room with a tray of tea for the captains.
âThanks,â Mingyu says as you enter, âCan you just leave it here?â
A nod as you set down the tray, it seems as if youâd walked in on an important discussion.
âWhatâs the plan, then?â Junhui questions whomever heâd been speaking to. âGaozong wants power in exchange for helping us, but theyâre also hoping not to get as involved as they were at Baekgang. They know a warâs coming and theyâre trying to extort Munmu for all heâs worth.â
âIâm not saying that youâre wrong,â Jihoon sighs out from the head of the table. âThereâs nothing you or I could do about that though. We follow the Crown and not Gaozong.â
âIn regard to sending our men to the front lineâŚâ Wonwoo speaks up, âColonel Choiâs been pushing to implement the Furies.â
âI disagree with that,â Mingyu frowns, âThis is war, not a massacre. Thereâs going to be both enemies and allies on the field, we wonât be able to control them. Itâs not that theyâre not powerful, itâs just too risky.â
âAgreed,â Junhui nods, crossing his arms as he leans back in his seat, âAnd inhumane too.â
âThen what do you suggest?â Hansol questions, looking at the captain. âIf youâre so vehemently against it, you should offer an alternative.â
âWeâre working on that.â Junhui grumbles, his voice raising, âIf it were so easy do you think weâd be in this mess?â
âCommander,â Wonwoo looks at Jihoon, âWhat do you think?â
â⌠Let me think.â A deep exhale from Jihoon as he straightens himself in his seat, âWe need to know the movements of Baekje before anything else, as well as prioritize what the Crown wants and, inadvertently, what Tang wants as well.â With the war inching closer and Youngminâs injury, everyone in the Hwarang had been and is still on edge.
You leave the meeting sometime after then, never finding out what solution the men had come to. Later in the day, as the sun sinks over the horizon, you find yourself at Seungkwanâs door, anxious to check on his condition.
âCaptain Boo?â You ask, gently opening the door and stepping inside, âHow are youâhuh?â Upon entering, you find that Soonyoung had come along to keep the captain company as well.
 âWhat are you doing up so late?â Soonyoung asks as he looks to you.
âWhat do you mean?â
âWell um⌠people may get the wrong idea if a girl visits a manâs room at nightâŚâ The young captain trails off, obviously flustered.
âYou know that Seungkwan and I arenâtâŚâ
Soonyoung laughs, âYeah, yeah⌠Thatâs not really your kind of thing, is it?â
âWhat do you mean?â
âWhat do you mean âwhat do you mean?â?â Soonyoung snickers, âCome onâŚâ
âWhy are you here?â Seungkwan, not seeming to be in a playful mood, cuts into the conversation, âI assume you have a reason for visiting me?â
âOh, yes, well⌠I came to check up on you.â Returning to the reason youâd come in the first place, you look to the captain, âAre you feeling okay? Is there anything I can get you?â
âOf course not,â his expression bitter, âLook at whatâs going on.â After a moment of silence, he speaks to you, âIs that all? You can go now.â His aggression taking you by surprise, you falter for another moment before coming to your senses to bring up what had been bothering you.
âDo you all know?â Another pause, âThat Colonel Choi wants to⌠use the Furies.â
âOf courseâŚâ The grin that was adorning Soonyoungâs face drops.
âIf you were him,â Seungkwan sighs, âWouldnât you want to do the same? They need numbers or theyâll never make a name for themselves. I mean, itâs a given once they canât function anymore, theyâll need to be cut off.â
âCut offâŚâ
âWeâre not all good-doers,â the captain shakes his head, âwe canât go around giving food to everyone we see who needs it. I mean, yeah, you mooched off of us for years, but that was entirely your good luck. Donât forget that.â
âI guess you have a pointâŚâ
âSeungkwan youâre being a bit of a jackass,â Soonyoung frowns at the other captain. âIt was our fault she was brought to the Hwarang.â
Seungkwan sneers at the statement, clearly unmoved, he continues his grievances. âAnd what the hell is Jihoon doing? He should be kicking himself in the ass for not apprehending the men that hurt Kwak.â A frustrated sigh, âIf I werenâtâIf I werenât like this, Iâd go out and do it myself.â
His bedrest is clearly getting to him. Heâd known Youngmin, long before either of them had joined the Hwarang.
âWhat do you think, Soonyoung?â A glance towards the other as you ask.
âMe? I, uhm, wellâŚâ He hums, âI did drink the serum but⌠I was worried about what would happen to me. Seungcheol wants more men in the Fury Corps, and says weâll never win otherwise. But I donât like the idea of forcing the Hwarang to join us, even if theyâve broken our code.â The demeanor he has is unlike the one you remember from when youâd first met him, itâs cold and stern. Recalling how he used to be, sadness overcomes you.
âNo matter what Seungcheol says, itâs Jihoon that makes the call.â Seungkwan says, crossing his arms.
âYouâre right.â Soonyoung says, a frown pulling at him, âBut the Corps already exists, itâs not like we can pretend it doesnât.â
âThen maybe we should use them, then.â Seungkwan mumbles, âThey can hold a sword, at least.â
The power of the Furies is something that would ultimately be beneficial to the Hwarang, should they need to utilize their power for the war effort. Yet, once the war was over⌠You struggle to think of what would be done with them after. Fearing the answer, you donât press the matter further.
đđ˘đ đ˘đŞđđ˘đŻ 17đąđĽ, 664 â đđŚđŞ đđ˘đŹđ¨đŞđŚđŤâđ° âđ˘đ°đŚđĄđ˘đŤđ đ˘, đđŚđŤđ¤đĄđŹđŞ đŹđŁ đđŚđŠđŠđ It should be no surprise to you by now that an unexpected visitor, be it friend or foe, should stop in on you at any time now. Such an occasion occurs, with a friend, this very morning.
âItâs been too long,â Sooyoungâs voice calls out to you as you walk outside the front gate of the Kim residence, one of the captains had alerted you to her and Seulgiâs presence and you came as quickly as you could.
âWhat brings you here?â You ask, an inquisitive tilt of your head.
âWe have business with your leader, could you go and get him for us?â Seulgi responds, glancing towards the interior doors of the home.
âOh⌠the Chief isnât really in good condition to meet with people, I could go and get the Commanderââ
âThatâll do fine as well,â Sooyoung nods with a smile before youâre off to summon Jihoon.
After youâd let the two women inside, as well as summon the commander, the four of you stand in the main hall. Jihoon looks over the two warily before crossing his arms, âThis is unexpected, to say the least. What do you want?â
âI apologize for intruding again, but itâs important that I speak to you.â Sooyoung begins, her expression turning stony as she speaks to the commander, âIâve come to discuss your⌠Furies.â
Youâd been about to excuse yourself to make tea for the group, but upon hearing Sooyoungâs statement, you freeze in place. Jihoon seems to tense as well, a downward curvature of his lips etching into his face. âI wonât waste your time or mineâhow long do you intend to keep them in your service?â
âWhat do you mean?â Crossed arms, stern gaze, the signs that Jihoon is on the defensive yet again.
âYouâve kept them imprisoned here long enough; I think you know what Iâm saying.â Her words turn bitter midway through her statement, âEven the Crown has admitted to this failed experiment. They are too much for the Hwarang to handle. With Jisoo on your trail, it would be best for you to wash your hands of them.â
âIs it up to you to decide if theyâre a failure or not?â Jihoon questions, letting out a sigh, âWeâve done our research, Iâm not sure you have the authority to judge us.â
âThen are you aware that the Hwarangâs Furies have been murdering people on the streets to test their strength?â Seulgi asks, her gaze narrowing at Jihoon.
His eyes go wide, muttering a âWhat?â before looking at her. For a split second, his veneer of put togetherness fades and confusion and worry situates itself on his brow. And then itâs gone, his composure returning and frown reappearing.
âWhere did you hear that?â
âThereâs no reason for me to tell youâŚâ Seulgi states, âMy sources are reliable, and thatâs all you need to know. Your job is to protect Seorabeol, is it not? And yet you let your men whoâve succumbed to madness wander its streets and kill its civilians. It disgusts me, Commander.â Her eyes bore into Jihoonâs, âBefore all of Silla knows of your failure, I strongly suggest you disband your Fury Corps.â
Her logic is sound, no matter how scathing she is towards the Furies. The room falls silent, you can almost hear Jihoonâs thoughts racing in his head.
Sooyoung stops him, however, speaking up, âWe can quiet this conversation for a moment, thereâs something else I would like to address.â With that, she looks to you, âWill you still not leave with us?â The question simple, her eyes wide, âI know we spoke of this before, but with the current climate⌠I fear your safety here is jeopardized more and more with each passing day.â
 You know that war is coming, everyone in the room does. Yet to hear Sooyoung insinuate it adds even more weight to it all.
âAre you suggesting that we canât handle it?â Jihoon says, anger tinged by his words.
âThe truth is hard to accept sometimes,â Sooyoung turns to him, âIf Hong Jisoo shows up, can you protect her? If he comes while youâre amid battle to take her away, can you protect her then?â Sheâs angry, her tone rising as the commander stays quiet, âSheâs a Demon, not a human. She should be with her kind; we can protect her.â Looking back to you, she pleads, âIf youâre with us then their entire effort can go towards the war and battles to come.â
Each word is a blow to your chest, guilt wrought upon you for even thinking that your presence among the Hwarang wasnât detrimental to them. Meeting with Jihoonâs gaze says nothing, he averts his eyes as youâre left to make a decision.
Youâre sure Sooyoung is right, yet you canât find the words to say that.
âWhat do you say?â Sooyoung asks, her voice returning to a normal, soft level. You know she wants whatâs best for you, even if her means arenât the kindest towards those youâve begun to hold dear to you.
Jihoon, however, sees right through you.
âYou donât want to leave, do you?â The question is simple as it leaves him, and he knows your answer before you even say it. âThen donât, stay. There isnât much else to think about if your mindâs already set.â
âIs that really okay?â The implication behind you staying is far more dangerous than that of you leaving. Is Jihoon saying that he wants you to stay?
âIâm not going to repeat myself.â He shakes his head, âWhat proof do we have that they can keep your secret any better than we can? If that bastardâs after you tooâWell, if weâve got the same enemy, wouldnât it make sense to stick together?â
âSo⌠I can stay?â
âWhat kind of question is that?â Voice gruff as he huffs out, âIf you were as much of a pain in the ass as you think yourself to be, I wouldâve kicked you out years ago.â
A smile, small and timid, curling your lips, âThank you, Commander.â
The four of you disperse moments later, you leading Sooyoung and Seulgi to the front gate of the home before the first woman stops you just as you reach the gate.
âSo,â she says with an apologetic tone, âYouâve turned me down again, havenât you?â
âI appreciate your offer,â a nod of your head, âbut my place is here.â
âItâs alright,â another apologetic smile, âIf youâre so determined to stay then thereâs no way I wouldâve gotten you to leave with me⌠And⌠When you told me that you were staying because you were, ah, interested in someone, did you mean the Commander?â
Youâre not sure how to answer that question.
âTo be honest,â you begin, the toe of your shoe scraping atop the dirt of the ground, breath coming out in puffs of white air, âI donât know him all too well, butâŚâ The words stutter out of you, not sure how to explain yourself or because you, too, cannot comprehend your feelings towards the Hwarang. âThe men here call him the Demon Commander because of his harshness and strict nature, a lot of people think heâs cold because of that⌠But I think itâs his way of showing kindness, thereâs warmth there that isnât seen too often yetâŚâ You donât realize that youâre rambling as you continue, âHeâs responsible for most of the Hwarang, itâs not like he has a choice whether he can act like that or not, either. Iâm not sure what I can do for him, but Iâd like to stay and do whatever I can.â
âHe really has you wrapped around his finger,â Sooyoung hums to herself, âNot that I think he sees that, thoughâŚâ After giving her a confused look, she continues, âThey say my ancestor fell in love with a human and followed him to the capital. I'm their granddaughter so I suppose I can understand where youâre coming from⌠Rank and circumstance, whether human or Demon, mean little before the eyes of love.â
Wait. Wait⌠âWhat?â You squeak out, âLove?! I neverâSooyoung, I never said I love him.â
Her hand only finds your shoulder as she sighs and continues, âA human and a Demon, thereâs something romantic about that, I think⌠Donât think itâs destined to fail, either.â
âSooyoungâŚâ Seulgi calls out, probably to save you from dying of embarrassment, âWe should get going.â
âAh,â her hand lifted from your shoulder, âYouâre right.â The Demon looks to you, âTake care of yourself, please. Donât underestimate Hong Jisoo, heâs more powerful than Iâd like to imagine.â A slow nod as she sighs, âIf you need to contact me, please send a letter to Seulgi.â
âThank you, Sooyoung.â And with that, the pair are gone through the front gate. Your mind, however, lingers on Sooyoungâs words. Rank and circumstance mean little before the eyes of love⌠But was your desire to be close to Jihoon that? You want to be around him, to help him⌠The most important thing for him is the Hwarang, heâd invested his life into this organization, and put everything he is into it. With war on the horizon, he doesnât have the time to think of anything else.
As dusk descends on the compound, you find that the men of the Hwarang are ravenous. You would expect nothing less from men who spend their days training and patrolling and spend their nights doing the same as well. Any food given is gone as soon as it reaches their plate and you offer any that you have, finding yourself forgoing dinner tonight in favor of a younger member of the Hwarang getting a meal.
With pangs of hunger rattling through you, you decide to stave it off by going to the kitchens to either drink some water or make yourself some tea. Your hands gently clenching at your stomach as you walk, you almost donât hear the voice behind you.
âWas that your stomach?â Turning, you see the Hwarangâs Commander stopped to look at you, âI know the wang-do ate all of the food, did they not leave you any?â
âIâll eat later,â you nod, fingers still at your sides as you try to stop another growl from escaping your gut. âIâm alright.â
âI didnât ask if you were alright,â arms folded across his chest, âI asked if youâve eaten.â
âWell, um,â a shake of your head, âno, not yet.â
âReally,â he huffs, almost incredulously, as he reaches for the bag slung around his shoulder. He rummages around inside of it for a moment before grabbing something and tossing it to you. Unwrapping it from the cloth, you find that itâs one of the balls of rice that youâd made for the captains.
âCommander, this is yoursââ
âJust eat it,â he grits his teeth and the two of your gazes settle on the disputed food. After a moment of silence, he sighs and moves to break it in half, âDonât tell me youâre rejecting my kindness⌠If we halve it will it make you feel better?â Taking his half in his free hand, he offers the other chunk out to you.
You grab your half, â⌠Thank you.â
The two of you eat in silence, before Jihoon speaks again, âStop worrying so much about the other men and eat what you deserve. Okay?â
âIâll be sure to do that next timeâŚâ you nod as your hand drops to your side after finishing the food.
âI wasnât trying to lecture you,â Jihoonâs voice goes soft before muttering, â⌠thanks.â
âDonât worry about it, Iâll let the men eat what they want and get my own food another time,â you shake your head, âThey need it more than meââ
âI wasnât talking about that,â he coughs to clear his throat, âI meant to say thanks for staying. You decided to stay with us.â
Was the commander happy that you decided not to go with Sooyoung?
âWhatâs with the funny face?â The commander asks and you feel a swell of emotion come over you. âWas that not enough food?â
âNo, no,â you shake your head, âIt was fine.â
Jihoon nods as he tucks the cloth back into his bag and looks towards the entrance of the home, âIâm going to leave you in charge for now before I go out on my rounds. Take care of this place, okay?â Thereâs a small smile on his lips as he asks you.
âOf course,â you say, returning the smile. And with that, the commander turns on his heels and strides out of the front entrance to the home, heading off to his duties in Seorabeol.
Backburner | k.mg (18+)

There is a rule of thumb for casual relationships: do not fall in love with the other. Yet with Mingyu, it felt easier to watch the world burn than to stop yourself from falling for him.
one | two | three | four | five
Genre: friends with benefits, smut Pairing: Kim Mingyu x afab!Reader Warnings: angst, explicit content (18+) Notes: 21k words. Part 2 of the Heartbreak Hotel series, but can be read as a standalone fic. Listening to Backburner by NIKI. Disclaimer: This is a work of fiction. I do not know them personally and do not claim they would ever behave like they were portrayed in this story.
Playlist: Backburner by NIKI, Say Don't Go by Taylor Swift, Another You (Another Way) by Against the Current Taglist: @scoupsjin @iarayara @gaslysainz @silvermist002 @ssmebody @katfaceu

It was midnight, and what was usually a quiet evening was shattered by the persistent ringing of your phoneâtucked inside the drawer of your nightstand. You shifted from your comfortable position on the bed, laying on your back to stare at the ceiling, your ringtone still playing and making the nightstand buzz faintly.
âYou gotta be kidding me,â you muttered, groaning as you moved to grab your phone. The backlight made your eyes sting. Squinting at the words on the screen, you recognized the unique caller ID: âR18+++âÂ
One week of nothing and here he comes, calling you in the middle of the night. The audacity.
You shouldn't pick up. You were mad at him after all. But what if he had something important to say? Even if he didn't, would it really hurt if you pick up?
Not you trying to justify the desire to talk to him.
âHello?â you answered, against your better judgment (or not).
âHiâŚâ said Mingyu from the other line, his voice more dragged out than usual. Deeper. Lonelier. âDid I wake you?â
He did. âNo. Not at all.â
He hummed on the other side. âCan't sleep? What were you thinking about?â
âNothing important,â you sighed, sinking deeper into your soft pillow. âWhatâs up with you?â
âMe? I was just working on this paper,â he replied. You could hear him groaning as if he was stretching his limbs. âThis course is kicking my ass.â
âProfessor Jung?â you asked, remembering how he often complained about the same professor.
âYeah. Heâs the worst,â he chuckled but there was no humor in it. âIâve been staring at this screen all night, trying to make sense of it. You know when you read the same line over and over, and it still doesnât click?â
You hummed in acknowledgment, shifting on your bed. âSounds like every assignment Iâve ever done.â
He let out another laugh, soft and hollow. âRight? This oneâs on some theoretical nonsense. I keep typing, hoping somethingâs gonna make sense eventually, but itâs like... whatever. Iâll probably just wing it.â
You could hear the faint tapping of keys on his end as if he was still half-distracted by the work in front of him. But something felt off, and somehow, you knew exactly what it was. He didnât really want to talk about the homework, he was just stalling. The words were just fillerâsomething to pass the time, to keep the conversation going.
âMaybe Iâll just email the professor and tell him the universe swallowed my homework. Think heâd buy that?â Mingyu joked and you could hear the smile in his voice.
âProbably not,â you replied with a soft smile of your own, but your mind was elsewhere now, sensing the unspoken heaviness behind his casual complaints.
âYeah, I thought so,â he chuckled followed by a soft groan and the sound of him falling back on his bed.
Another pause settled between you, and this time you didnât wait for him to fill it with more empty chatter. âWanna come over?â you asked instead, and he was quiet for a moment.
âWell⌠yeah, Iâd love to. I meanâŚâ he paused and then chuckled. âIf itâs alright.â
You rolled your eyes. Of course, itâs alright. You'd always taken it in stride when he ghosted you and returned like nothing happened. Sometimes you wonder if he was genuinely oblivious or pretending not to know. âSure. You know where Iâll be.â
After hanging up, you let the phone slip from your hand, staring at the ceiling. You werenât supposed to do this. Mingyu was someone you shouldâve been keeping at armâs length, a complication you couldnât afford. The smart thing wouldâve been to ignore his call. But you didnât. No matter how much you tried to keep your distance, you would always find yourself waltzing back towards him.Â
You thought about how easy it would be to send a quick message, tell him not to come, maybe even block his number if you really wanted to make a clean break. You should. A single text, a few words, and it would all be over. Your fingers hovered over the screen, but you didnât type anything.
Then the knock came, gentle but firm, and you abandoned all protests, tossing them aside as easily as you tossed your phone back into the drawer. You didnât hesitate as you crossed the room, your hand already reaching for the doorknob.
When you opened the door, there he wasâtall, tousled hair, a lopsided smile, as if he wasnât entirely sure youâd actually let him in.
âHey,â Mingyu said softly, standing in the doorway like heâd been there dozens of times beforeâhe had.
âHi,â you replied, your heartbeat picking up pace, louder now that he was here, standing in front of you.
Without another word, he stepped inside, scooping you up by the waist like it was a habit, crashing his lips into yours. For a split second, your mind screamed at you to stop, to push him away, but your body betrayed you.Â
You kissed him back, letting yourself sink into the feeling. His hands moved to your back, pulling you even closer, and any remaining hesitation crumbled as the tension between you both sparked to life.
He was completely unaware, lost in the moment, and you let him beâbecause pretending felt easier than confronting the truth. It felt easier to let him kiss you like this, to let him believe everything between you was simpleâas if you werenât standing on the edge of something much heavier.
Mingyu pulled back just enough to look at you, brushing a stray lock of hair from your face with a grin. âIs Mina here?â His voice was teasing and light.
âYou wouldnât be here if she is,â you replied, breathless, your words barely forming as you watched him tug his sweater off, the urgency in his movements sending a fresh wave of heat through you.
For a moment, you stood there, watching as his sweater hit the floor, your heart racing against your better judgment. Here you go, again. You could stop it right hereâsend him home, tell him you donât want to see him again even if that was a lie. Again, you didnât. You reached for him, pulling him back toward you, his lips meeting yours with a kind of hunger that made you forget everything else.
The door clicked shut behind him, and with it, any resolve you thought you had.

âWait, hold up. Let me justââ You made a rolling gesture with your fingers, trying to gather your thoughts. ââroll it back a bit. I think I went straight to the intense part.â
Seungcheolâs calm demeanor didnât budge. He leaned back. âDidnât feel intense to me.â
âYeah, wellâŚâ You shifted in your seat. âI shouldâve started by telling you how we met, right? Or how we even ended up in⌠this kind of arrangement.â
He nodded. âContext would help.â
You paused, sipping your water. âOkay, so⌠I first met Mingyu in freshman year. Second semester, to be exact. We had one class togetherâgen-ed history. I was late the first day.â You smirked, remembering how rushed youâd been, shoes squeaking against the floor as you slipped into the back row, heart pounding from running across campus.
The only available seat was next to Mingyu. You didn't notice him at first because the room's quietness was the first to catch your attention.
You tugged his sleeve. âHey, sorry to bother you.â You told him your name. âI just came in. Did I miss anything important? I feel like I did.â
He glanced at you, brows slightly raised. He looked half amused, half confused. âI'm Kim Mingyu. And⌠yeah, you missed a bit. Professor gave us five minutes to pray for the diagnostic test.â
âPray?â youâd repeated, your disbelief clear, eyes wide as you stifled a laugh. âHow hard could a gen-ed diagnostic exam be?â
Very hard.Â
You cringed at the memory of that test and how you didnât know the answers for most of it. Mingyu was grinning beside you, walking in easy strides. âStill think you didnât need those five minutes to pray?â
You rolled your eyes, but there was no bite to it. âAlright, fine. Iâm humbled. But you donât have to be so smug about it.â
He chuckled, sliding his hands into his pockets. âIâm just teasing. Anyway, donât worry about it. The test wonât affect your grades or anything.â
Before you could respond, another classmate who overheard had stopped to join your conversation. âActually, it does count. It goes straight into your record.â
Mingyu snorted, clearly doubting it. âNo way. Itâs just a pre-assessment.â
âThe professor said so herself. You probably didnât hear because you left too soon.â She looked at you with a sympathetic smile. âBut hey, I bombed it too, so⌠youâre not alone.â
You felt a strange sense of closeness with her, but mostly, you were trying to process what that meant for your grades. âGreat,â you muttered, but you werenât sure if you were saying it sarcastically or just in defeat.
âI'm Mina,â she said, offering her hand for a shake.
âNice to meet you,â you chimed, shaking her hand and telling her your name.
âI know. See you around!â
When Mina walked away, you expected Mingyu to say something mocking, but instead, he just laughed lightly. âGuess I shouldâve prayed too.â
Over the next few weeks, Mingyu became someone you interacted with mostly during class. Youâd sit near each other by defaultâmainly because the two of you are often the last ones to arrive, you being late most of the time. You exchanged quiet jokes when the professor wasnât looking and sometimes teamed up when group discussions were required. But outside that lecture hall, you led entirely separate lives.
In the hallways, you'd pass by each other every now and then. Heâd nod or smileânever stopping, never lingering. Just a brief acknowledgment as you walked in opposite directions. Sometimes, youâd give him a quick wave, or heâd send you a lazy salute with his fingers.
During class breaks, when the professor let everyone stretch their legs for a few minutes, youâd talk. Mingyu liked to complain about how boring the lectures were, though his grumbling always seemed exaggerated, more for humor than actual frustration.
âThink I might pass out,â heâd groan, letting his head drop to the desk dramatically. âI donât know how anyone stays awake for this.â
âYouâd stay awake if you actually took notes,â youâd tease back, scribbling in your notebook as you spoke.
âAh, but see, thatâs what friends are for,â heâd reply, flashing you a playful grin. âYou can lend me yours later.â
âYouâre lucky youâre funny,â youâd retort, shaking your head with a smile.
But that was it. When class ended, he went his way, and you went yours. He wasnât someone who crossed your mind outside of that classroom, and you suspected it was the same for him. Mingyu wasnât a constant presence in your life, just a classmate who made lectures slightly more tolerable.
There was a comfort in that distance. He was easy to talk to, someone you didnât have to think too hard about. No expectations, no complications. Just small moments of shared boredom, passed with lazy smiles and half-hearted complaints.
For a while, that was all he wasâsomeone who filled the pauses between lectures. That is until the night of your first off-campus party for the semester.
The music pulsed around you, louder than it needed to be, vibrating through the floor and into your chest. You were seated at the edge of the crowded party, a half-empty cup of something strong in your hand, watching as your ex-boyfriend paraded his new girlfriend around like she was a shiny new toy. Every touch between them felt like a jab. You couldnât care less about him, not really. But watching him be all giggly and touchy with her after heâd cheated on you with her, no lessâyeah, that was annoying.
You took another sip from your drink, trying to keep your irritation in check. It didnât help that they were standing close enough that you could hear snippets of their conversationâhis low, stupid laugh and her breathy giggles.
âSomeoneâs pissed.â
The voice came from beside you, startling you out of your thoughts. You turned, finding Mingyu standing there with a half-smile, hands tucked in his hoodie pockets as he glanced over at your ex and his new girlfriend.
âI donât know what youâre talking about,â you replied, though your sarcasm was clear.
Mingyu raised an eyebrow, amused. âCome on. Iâve seen you shoot daggers at them from across the room.â
You sighed, leaning back in your chair and staring into your cup. âIâm not pissed. Just... annoyed.â
His eyes flicked over to the couple again, then back to you. âI get it. Ex-boyfriend?â
You hesitated but nodded. âYeah. Not that it matters. We broke up ages ago.â You bit your lip before adding, âBut he cheated on me with her. So, you know... watching them be all gross together isnât exactly fun.â
Mingyu winced in sympathy. âThatâs rough. Sounds like heâs not worth the headspace, though.â
âHeâs not,â you said quickly, and you meant it. âBut itâs still annoying.â
He snorted. âI donât blame you. If it makes you feel any better, they look like a bad reality show couple.â
You couldnât help but laugh at that. âYeah, they kinda do.â
Mingyu shrugged, leaning a little closer, his voice dropping. âIf itâs bugging you that much, want me to help you take your mind off it? We can head somewhere else, or... just stay here and make fun of them quietly. Your call.â
You hesitated, glancing at your ex one more time, then back at Mingyu. The idea of staying here, stewing in the background while they flaunted their new relationship, made your stomach turn. Maybe leaving was the better option.
âActually,â you said, standing up and finishing the last of your drink, âletâs get out of here. This partyâs boring anyway.â
Mingyuâs eyebrows shot up, clearly surprised but pleased. âAlright. Lead the way.â
The two of you slipped out of the crowded party and into the cooler, quieter night. The noise faded behind you as you stepped outside, the crisp air was a welcome relief from the stifling atmosphere of the party. You hadnât really thought about where you were going, just that you needed to leave.
âAny place in mind?â Mingyu asked, falling into step beside you, hands still casually tucked into his pockets.
You scoffed. âI donât know. This was your idea.â
He shrugged, glancing at the sky briefly before turning back to you. âWe could walk a bit. Sober up.â
âI barely drank.â
Mingyu nodded. âOkay, fair. If you want, Iâve got some soju and beer at my place. Not much, but itâs better than whatever was in that cup you were drinking.â
You glanced at him. There was no pressure in his tone, no hidden motiveâjust a suggestion. Still, something about the idea of going to his place made your heart beat a little faster.
âExactly how many ulterior motives do you have right now?â you asked, narrowing your eyes at him in mock suspicion.
A grin spread across his face. âFor now, zero,â he replied, showing a zero with his fingers.
âFor now?â You rolled your eyes. âBetter keep it at zero.â
Mingyu winced with a mock-hurt expression. âDo I have to make promises too? Man, this is a lot of work.â
âKim Mingyu!â
âOkay, okay,â he laughed, raising his hands. âCome on. Itâs this way.â
The walk to Mingyuâs apartment wasnât long, but the conversation between you was comfortable. He was funny, as always. By the time you reached his door, your cheeks were red and slightly hurting with how much you were laughing.
His place was a studio, small and cozy with a few mismatched pieces of furniture. It was tidy, except for the couch, which was covered in a pile of unfolded laundry.
âOh, crap,â he muttered, laughing awkwardly. âI forgot about that. Let me justââ
âOh, itâs okay. I donât mind at all,â you said, waving your hand dismissively.
âNah, thereâs nowhere else to sit,â he insisted, kicking off his shoes and quickly tidying the couch.
While he put his clothes into a basket, you took a moment to look around. The tidiness of his home was unexpected. You rarely judge peopleâs living spaces but it was surprising for a man to be this clean. Then again, that was just the stereotype speaking.
Mingyu grabbed two beers from the fridge, tossing you one as you settled onto the now-cleared couch.
You raised an eyebrow, inspecting the can. âYou promised me soju.â
He chuckled, opening his own drink. âWell, you told me to keep my motives in check, so soju is out of the table.â
âYouâre no fun.â
As you sipped your drinks, the conversation flowed easily. You talked about class, made fun of the test youâd failed, and joked about the people at the party. But somewhere between the laughter and the quiet moments, the atmosphere began to shift. The space between you felt a little smaller, the eye contact a little longer. It wasnât forced, just... there.
At some point, Mingyuâs arm stretched across the back of the couch, his fingers brushing against your shoulder. You didnât move away. Instead, you leaned into him slightly, the warmth of his presence comforting.
âI think you should go,â he said softly, his voice barely above a whisper.
âWow, okay. Thereâs no need to shoo me away. Iâll go,â you scoffed, offended. You stood up instantly, reaching for your jacket but he grabbed your wrist.
âNo, I donât meanââ he paused, sighing as he looked at your annoyed expression. âIâm sorry. Come sit. Donât go.â
You didnât answer, instead, swatted his hand away and put on your jacket. Mingyu stood up, taking your hand and squeezing it.
âPlease,â he sighed, holding your gaze.
You were exasperated. âWhatâs wrong with you? Why are you acting so confusing all of a sudden?â
There was a glint of hesitation on his face. âCan I be honest?â
You retracted your hand and crossed your arms over your chest. Then you raised an eyebrow, urging him to speak.
Mingyu leaned back slightly, his expression shifting to something more serious. âI have at least six ulterior motives.â
You raised an eyebrow, curiosity piqued. âSix? What are they?â
âAre you sure you want to find out?â he asked back, but it didnât seem like a question to know how curious you were. Somehow, it sounded as if he was asking for permission.
You held his gaze, feeling the warmth radiating from him, the air around you charged with an intensity you couldnât ignore. Time seemed to slow as you considered his question.
Finally, you broke the silence, your voice steady but low. âYes.â
Before you could think about what came next, he leaned in, closing the distance between you. His hand slipped around your waist, pulling you just a little closer. There was no hesitation this time, no second thoughts. The tension that had been building all night finally found its release as he leaned in, his lips brushing yours in a tentative kiss.
You kissed him back, slowly at first, as if testing the waters, but it didnât take long before the hesitation melted away. You know where this was goingâbut whether it was just the alcohol, the moment, or something more that drove you to do this, you didn't know. But for now, it didnât matter. All that mattered was the way Mingyuâs lips felt against yours, the quiet hum of desire building between you as you let yourself get lost in the moment.

Your fingers drummed rhythmically on the table, eyeing Seungcheol as if trying to gouge out his thoughts. His head was tilted slightly, thinking about your question: âWhat do you think happened next?â
âYou became friends with benefits,â he said with certainty.
Your fingers stopped abruptly. âReally? You didnât think weâd started dating after that?â
He shrugged nonchalantly. âDid you?â
âNo,â you replied sheepishly. âBut you seemed so sure that we were gonna be friends with benefits.â
âI had a hunch. It didnât seem like your connection was building up to a romantic relationship just yet.â
You scowled, confused. âWhat do you mean? You didnât think our connection was romantic?â
âNot at all. You were just friends. There was nothing that hinted any romance until the night you went to his flat.â
âAh, I see what you mean.â
Seungcheol nodded, not smiling but he seemed pleased with himself. âSo, what happened next?â
What happened next? You and Mingyu became friends with benefits, thatâs what happened. Despite that arrangement, Mingyu was thoughtful in ways that made it hard to draw a clear line between what was casual and what wasnât.
At university, nothing changed. You were still just classmatesâmaybe not even that close. Youâd smile at each other in passing, maybe sit near each other in a lecture like usual, but that was it. To anyone else, you were barely acquaintances. But behind closed doors, it was differentâpassionate, fervent, and surreally euphoric.
Soon after that first night, you moved your rendezvous to your place. Your apartment was bigger than Mingyuâs tiny studio, with enough space for both of you to comfortably exist, though most of the time you didnât bother with space. Whenever he came over, it didnât take long for his hands to find you or for you to pull him in. There was something magnetic between you, like a spark that kept reigniting no matter how many times you tried to cool it down.
The passion was always there, and you were always eager to touch each other. Sometimes, you wouldnât even make it to the bedâhis lips on yours, your hands tugging at his shirt, and before you knew it, youâd be tangled in each other, the sheets forgotten. Other times, when the heat had subsided, youâd lay there talking, conversations flowing easily about anything and everything.
It was odd, in a wayâhow effortless it felt when you were alone together. You could laugh, joke, and even sit in silence without any discomfort. Yet, in public, it was like nothing existed between you. Mingyu never brought it up, and neither did you. It was easier that way. You werenât together, after allâjust two people who couldnât get enough of each other when no one was watching.
Sometimes, the heat was so consuming, that it blurred the lines between passion and affection. And yet, after the fire died down, there was always this: Mingyu, showing up with bread that you loved, like it was the most normal thing in the world.
âYouâre here already?â you asked, surprised to see Mingyu standing in your living room, browsing your bookshelf like he had all the time in the world.
âHey, beautiful,â he greeted, flashing a smile as he carefully returned a small ceramic bear to its place.
âHow did you get here so fast? You texted me like ten minutes ago,â you said, dropping your bag on the sofa as you walked toward him.Â
âI was nearby,â he said with a casual shrug, wrapping his arms around your waist. His lips met yours in a soft kiss, the familiar spark flickering between you. When he pulled away, he said, âI picked up some bread on my way here.â
âNo way, is it the same ones you brought last time?â You couldnât hide your excitement as you reached for the bakery bag heâd left on the coffee table.
He nodded, looking pleased with himself. âYep, thatâs the one.â
You sat in the living room that afternoon, talking over warm cups of chocolate and bread. You barely paid attention to the football game on the TV, giggling and pawing at each other, feeling cozy despite the cold weather outside.
At some point, Mingyuâs hands moved to your shoulders, and you sighed in contentment. âThanks, I needed this,â you murmured, closing your eyes as his skilled fingers worked through the tension. It was one of Mingyuâs many skills, massages.
He leaned closer, pressing a kiss to your bare shoulder. âWe should take this inside.â
You opened one eye, pretending not to understand. âTake what inside?â
Mingyu chuckled, his lips curving against your skin. âWell, if you want to do it here, thatâs fine too but we should probably turn off the TV. I donât feel comfortable having my idols watch,â he replied, making you turn to face him.
âYour idols?â
Mingyu shrugged and then nodded towards the TV where the football game was still on. Scoffing, you grabbed a throw pillow and hit him with it. You both laughed about it for a while, but eventually decided to lock yourselves in your bedroom.
Later that night, you stirred, the quiet glow of a laptop screen pulling you from sleep. Blinking, you realized Mingyu was no longer beside you. He was sitting on the floor, his back resting against the bed, fingers tapping rapidly on the keys.
Reaching out, you squeezed his shoulder. âWhat are you doing?â you asked, your voice thick with sleep.
Mingyu paused, turning slightly to kiss your knuckles. âGo back to sleep, baby. I just need to finish this.â
âCanât it wait till morning?â you mumbled, burying your face in the pillow.
He shifted closer, wrapping an arm around you. With a soft shush, he ran his fingers through your hair. âShh, itâs okay. Iâll be done soon. Just sleep.â
You sighed, eyes fluttering shut as he kissed your forehead. At that moment, it seemed so normal, so typical of him. But you didnât realize at the timeâit was a sign that Mingyu had trouble sleeping through the night.

Mingyu had a quiet way of making you feel seen. It wasnât grand gestures or romantic proclamations, but in the little things he didâthoughtful acts that slipped under the radar until you realized just how much attention he paid. One time during class, he came over holding a tiny ceramic bear, almost shy as he handed it to you.
âWhatâs this?â you asked, turning the figurine over in your hands.
âI noticed that your bear family didnât have a dad, so,â he said with a small grin, watching as your eyes lit up in recognition.Â
It was such a simple thing, but the fact that he remembered your collection, that heâd thought of youâit left you feeling touched.
âYou didnât have to do this,â you murmured, smiling. âBut thanks.â
âItâs a grizzly, not a polar bear. Is that okay?â
âAre you kidding me? Itâs perfect,â you giggled. âHeâll have to take up the responsibility of taking care of kids who arenât his though.â
Mingyu shrugged, though there was a quiet satisfaction in his expression. âHeâll be a good stepdad to them. I can vouch.â
âYou barely know the guy,â you laughed, playing along.
It wasnât just gifts. Mingyu had a habit of taking care of the little things in your life without even asking. Like the time the lightbulb in your bathroom had gone out. You didnât mention it to him, but the next time he came over, he had a replacement bulb in his bag.Â
âDidnât realize you were an electrician now,â you joked as he stood on a chair, screwing in the new bulb.
He laughed. âJust figured youâd forget to buy one.â
âI wasnât going to forget,â you protested, even though he was right. âBut⌠thanks.â
It was like that often with himâeffortless, natural.
âAlright, letâs see,â he said, stepping down from the chair and reaching for the switch to test if it worked. When it did, he let out a satisfied hum. âThere you go. Good as new.â
âHow much for your labor, good sir?â you quipped, wiping away the tiny beads of sweat forming on his forehead.
The grin Mingyu gave you was menacing, shamelessly checking you out in your tank top and shorts. âIâll have you know I do not accept monetary fees.â
You knew what he meant and he made it especially clear when he casually pressed his palm on your left boob. You just scoffed and swatted his hand away. âI see you work pro bono. Thanks a lot.â
With a teasing grin, you walked away. In the kitchen, he cooked dinner while you sat on the counter, munching on an apple. You found it amusing that the wok he used was something he had brought from his own flat. It's been in your kitchen for a while now. Today, he brought his own kitchen knife.
âYou might as well move in at this rate,â you teased after he warned you to be careful with his sharp knife. âWhatâs next? A drawer for your clothes?â
He raised an eyebrow. âIâll consider it.â
âYou might as well do since youâre here almost every day,â you jeered. âYou should bring your own toothbrush too.â
âAh, that reminds me.â He moved toward you, placing a kiss on your cheek as he rummaged through the paper bag resting on your lap. From there, he fished out two toothbrushes, holding them up like a peace offering. âLook. They came in pairs.â
You laughed, shaking your head. âI use an electric toothbrush, you know.â
âThen keep it as a backup,â he shrugged, still grinning. âOr don't. Itâs not a big deal.â
Youâd joked at first, but eventually, you started using the toothbrush he brought. It felt like a small connection, something that tied him a little more closely to you, even if neither of you talked about it.
And he remembered everything. When you ordered food, he always knew exactly what you wanted without asking. âChicken katsu with extra sauce,â heâd say, already placing the order. Heâd put on music that matched your mood perfectly, like the playlists you loved but never had to mention. Even the book you had been readingâhe remembered the title, asked if youâd finished it yet.
Those little moments kept piling up, making it harder to separate the physical nature of your relationship from the real deal. Every time he remembered, every time he took care of something small, you wondered if maybe this wasnât just friends with benefits after all.
But then there were moments of uncertainty that made you question how much you really knew about him. Sometimes, in quiet moments, he would zone out, lost in thought. You vividly remember one evening when you were curled up together on the couch, a movie playing softly in the background. You had been laughing at the antics on-screen, leaning into him, when you glanced over and found him staring blankly at the flickering light of the television.
When he slept over, youâd sometimes wake up to find him staring at the ceiling. His face was relaxed, but there was a tension in the way his jaw was set, a hint of a furrow in his brow. You reached out to touch his face, hoping to draw him back into the intimacy you cherished.
âMingyu?â you whispered, your voice thick with sleep. Heâd blinked, as if waking from a dream, and he turned to you then. For a brief moment, you saw a flicker of something vulnerable in his eyes before he masked it with a smile. âWhatâs wrong?â
âNothing. I was just⌠thinking,â he replied, his voice trailing off. You could see it in his eyesâsomething was weighing heavily on him, a thought he was wrestling with that he didnât want to share.
âAbout what?â you prodded, trying to gouge out somethingâanything that heâs willing to share. He shifted slightly as if the question made him uncomfortable.
âJust stuff. Donât worry about it,â he said, a noncommittal answer that only left you more curious. He pulled you closer in a warm embrace. âLetâs go back to sleep.â
The way he shrugged it off felt like a wall going up between you, and for a moment, the warmth of his embrace dissipated. You didnât push further; you never wanted to pressure him. Instead, you closed your eyes, though you couldnât shake the feeling that something was off.
You wanted to know, to understand what made him so distant at times, but every time you tried to get closer, he would slip away like sand through your fingers. You had asked about it in passing, and while he always deflected your inquiries with a joke or a change of subject, it left you wondering if there was more to his silence. You didnât want to overthink it; after all, it didnât happen often. Or so you told yourself, hoping that with time, he would open up.
But instead of that, Mingyu disappeared, leaving behind an emptiness that echoed in the spaces where he once filled your days with warmth and laughter.

âAre you keeping up?â you questioned, raising an eyebrow at Seungcheol who seemed to be quite slow at processing what youâd just told him.
âYeah, of course. Though, Iâm not gonna lie. Iâm a little lost,â he admitted, arms crossed and holding his chin. âIf you donât mind, can I ask why he disappeared?â
You smirked, standing up at once. âIâm gonna need a drink for this.â
Seungcheolâs understood. âBy all means.â
Mingyuâs disappearance wasnât sudden or unexpected; there were signs you hadnât recognized until he was gone. It began with him replying late to your messages, then not replying at all. Youâd see him in class, and when you approached, he didnât avoid you outright but dodged your questions and made excuses to avoid conversation. Eventually, he started sitting on the opposite side of the lecture hall, far from you and even missed a handful of classes.
You were upset, not just because he chose to stop seeing you but because he didnât give you any warning. You had been easing into it, getting used to the idea of something more. But when he left so abruptly, you felt foolish.
Still, you had to come to terms with the fact that there was no commitment between youâwhat you shared was temporary, and he was free to walk away just as you were. It didnât change the fact that his action was a total jerk move.
âItâs okay. We were just fooling around anyway,â you told yourself after almost two weeks of silence. You forced a smile at your reflection in the mirror. âThatâs right. Youâll be fine.â
You tried to push Mingyu out of your mind, diving into a busy social lifeâgoing out with friends and meeting new people. At one party, you were in the midst of flirting with a cute guy when you spotted Mingyu across the room. A wave of warmth washed over you at the sight of him, but you played it cool, pretending to be engrossed in your conversation.Â
âSo, are you always at Jinwooâs party?â you asked, trying to sound charming but feeling more like a dork.
âOnly when thereâs free food,â he replied, a little too eagerly.
You forced a laugh, trying to play along. âWell, they do have snacks... and drinks.â
He leaned in closer. âYou know, Iâm really into snacks. Like, I could talk about snacks all night.â
Your stomach turned slightly at the sudden wave of ick. You couldnât tell if he was serious, or just saying it to be funny. What the hell does that even mean?
You caught a glimpse of Mingyu from the corner of your eye, leaning against the wall, arms crossed, watching the exchange with an amused expression. Heat rushed to your cheeks as you realized how embarrassing this wasâMingyu was listening, and you couldnât bear the thought of him hearing you flounder like this.
âRight, snacks. Thatâs... cool.â You shot him a tight smile, glancing around the room in a bid to escape. âSpeaking of snacks, Iâm gonna go get me some more. Excuse me,â you smiled and slipped away from the guy, the weight of Mingyuâs gaze following you as you headed outside.
âWow, that was awful,â Mingyu said, appearing beside you just as you stepped into the cool air.
âYou,â you spat, glaring at him.
âHello to you too,â he replied, a playful smirk tugging at his lips.
You narrowed your eyes at him, crossing your arms. âWhatâs your opinion on people eavesdropping on otherâs conversations instead of minding their own business?â
âI wasnât eavesdropping,â he teased, though the grin on his face suggested otherwise. âI canât help it if you guys were loud enough for me to hear, can I?â
âThat doesnât change the fact that itâs none of your business,â you replied smartly, looking away with a frown.
Mingyuâs laugh was deep, the kind that made your stomach twist in a way that was all too familiar. âAlright. Iâm sorry. How about hanging out with me so you need not deal with all those lame guys?â
âPretty sure youâre much much lamer,â you scoffed.Â
He called your name softly, a teasing smile playing on his lips but his eyes were more serious than before. You failed to ignore the way your heart began to race. âLighten up. I missed you, you know.â
You raised an eyebrow. âOh? Do you now?â
âI did.â Mingyuâs gaze flickered to your lips for a split second before he grinned again. âI missed you so much, I thought Iâd go nuts.â
The confession caught you off guard but your annoyance was stronger. You scoffed, struggling to hold back and trying not to just go ahead and smack him. âThen you shouldnât have ghosted me like that.â
His smile faltered slightly. The air between you shifted again, the playful banter fading into something heavier. Mingyu didnât respond right away, and the silence that followed wasnât awkwardâjust filled with something unspoken.
After a long pause, he finally nodded. âYeah, youâre right. Iâm sorry about that.â
You smirked, looking away and fixing your gaze into nothing. He should be sorry, itâs only right to be. But the fact remained: you were not in the kind of relationship where you could hold him hostage for something he was allowed to do. Yet here you were, feeling more hurt than you were allowed to be.
You let the silence hang between you, thick with unspoken tension. It went on for a while before it was broken by the sound of people clambering out of the main door, their drunken laughter echoing in the cool night air.
âWanna get out of here?â Mingyu finally asked, breaking the spell.
âTook you long enough to ask,â you replied, striding toward the street with him following closely behind.
As you were passing by the parking lot filled with cars, Mingyu suddenly grabbed your hand. âWeâre not walking to your apartment. Thatâs like a mile-long hike.â
âWhat?â you asked, confused but still allowing him to lead you toward a black SUV.
He opened the passenger door and gestured for you to get in. While he rounded the car to the driverâs side, you glanced around the unfamiliar interior, a fleeting thought crossing your mind that maybe this wasnât his car. But as soon as he slid into the seat and turned the key in the ignition, you relaxed a little.
âPlease tell me this is yours and you didnât just steal it.â
Mingyu chuckled, his smile easing some of your lingering unease. âWhy would you think that?â
âBecause last time I checked, you didnât have a car,â you replied, watching him navigate the vehicle out of the parking lot.
âOh, this is my dadâs. Heâs letting me borrow it while Iâm staying with them.â
You blinked, surprised. That was the first time Mingyu had mentioned his family or anything about his life outside of university. Naturally, curiosity sparked in you.
âYou moved back to your familyâs house?â you asked, hoping to finally get some insight into where heâd disappeared to.
âYeah, had to,â he said casually, his gaze fixed on the road ahead.
âWhy?â
He hesitated, fingers tightening on the steering wheel for just a second before he shrugged. âJust some stuff came up. Nothing major.â
There was something vague about his response, and you could sense the conversation wasnât going to go any deeper. Heâd always been good at deflecting when it came to his personal life.
You nodded, accepting the explanation without pressing further, even though the curiosity still lingered in the back of your mind. It was frustrating, but at the same time, youâd gotten used to the fact that Mingyu shared only what he wanted, and nothing more. Maybe it was just his way of keeping distanceâemotional distance, that is.
When you arrived at your apartment, you barely had time to take a breath before Mingyuâs arms wrapped around you, pulling you into him. It was like being caged, but in a way that made you feel safe, wanted. You couldnât explain how much you had missed thisâmissed him. His warmth, his touch, the way his presence alone seemed to fill the space around you.
As you moved together from the living room to the bedroom, it felt inevitable, like gravity pulling you into his orbit once again. You knew you were letting yourself fall, diving headfirst into the abyss of passion and euphoria that was Kim Mingyu. And yet, even knowing that, you didnât stop yourself.
You couldnât.
âYou missed me, didnât you?â he whispered as he took your breast in his mouth.
Yes, you wanted to scream out, but all that ever left your mouth was a lewd moan. And when he heard that, he slid a hand under your dress, moving down to your hips and slipping inside your lace panties to put pressure there. He caressed your sex slowly, and then urgently in circling motions while his kisses trailed up from your breast to your neck, nipping at the supple skin before they found your lips.
Your hands had a mind of their own, greedily removing his jacket, and then running your fingers on the firm muscles and warm skin underneath. As the pleasure grew, it clouded your brain and you clung your arms around his neck in fear that your trembling legs would collapse under you.
âLie down, baby,â he rasped in your ear, pushing you gently towards the bed.
You let yourself fall on the mattress, bouncing slightly. You watched as he undid his belt and kicked off his jeans before moving to undress you out of your dress. You saw how he ogled your body with those beautiful lustful eyes before he hovered over you and traced the outline of your face with his fingers.
âDo you have any idea how amazing you are?â he whispered. He slid a finger into your mouth and you sucked it, making him exhale sharply and dive in to kiss you feverishly.
You were almost breathless with desire, your skin prickling with anticipation of what was about to happenâof what Mingyu was about to do. You could feel him against your thigh, hot and hard, so you spread your legs open, welcoming him.
And then with one push, he was filling youâstretching your cunt in the most exquisite way possible. His body pressed against you as he thrust in and out in a rhythm that sent ripples of pleasure through every single nerve in your body.
And all of a sudden, he stopped, leaving you momentarily confused. He stood up and said, âCome here.âÂ
Without a word, you obliged, walking toward him in a haste. He then spinned you around so you were facing the full-length mirror in the corner of your room. âTake a good look at yourself.â
You saw yourself in the mirror; messy hair, flushed cheeks, and your lips swollen from kissing. You could see him in your reflection, standing behind you with fire in his eyes. You watched as he reached for your breast, while his other hand cupped your pussy, collecting the slick in his hand before bringing it to his tongue.
You gasped at how hot he looked, and seeing your reaction made Mingyu grin. Without warning, he pushed you back on the bed. Before you could move to lay on your back, he lifted you by the waist so your ass was sticking out. Then he pressed your face on the mattress before you felt a sharp, delightful pain on your buttcheek where he smacked you with his palm.
âOh, Mingyu!â you cried out.
He leaned down to whisper in your ear. âThatâs not loud enough, baby.â
âMingyu, please!â you begged, needing nothing but to be filled again.
Once again, he pushed his cock inside you, making you whimper in the most obscene manner.
âFuck,â he grunted. His fingers dug hard into your hips as he thrusted deeply and vigorously. Your hand held onto to the sheets, pleasure so intense that you couldnât think anymoreâyou couldnât even see your own naked, sweaty self in the mirror in front of you. But you could hear the sound of bodies slamming into each other again and again, and a breathless moan that must have been coming from your own throat.
When the ecstatic high engulfed the two of you, he loosened his hold of your waist and your legs felt so weak you could barely hold yourself up. So you collapsed on the bed, followed by Mingyu, panting beside you with a satisfied look on his face.Â
âHow was that?â he said smugly, knowing damn well how wonderful he made you feel.
You just laughed, snuggling into him as you put off washing up for a few more minutes.
The heated passion gave way to a quiet intimacy as you both settled into bed. The sound of rain tapping against the window filled the silence, soothing and rhythmic.
You chatted lazily about random thingsâmusic, classes, friendsâuntil you finally gathered the courage to ask, âWhat happened to you? Whereâve you been?â
âIâm really sorry. I got busy with school and stuff at home,â Mingyu replied, his tone casual. But you could sense something unspoken beneath his words, as always. âDid you miss me?â he added, trying to keep it light.
You had missed him. A lot. But you werenât about to admit that. âBarely. Didnât even notice you were gone.â
Mingyu chuckled, clearly not buying it. âIs that why you were out there flirting with every cute guy you meet?â
You raised an eyebrow, grinning. âYou seem to know an awful lot about me. One might think youâre interested or something.â
He laughed softly, the kind of laugh that made your stomach flutter. âYouâll find that I am, in fact, very interested,â he said with a quiet conviction. And suddenly, the air between you shifted again, filled with tensionâdesire mingling with uncertainty.
âSay,â Mingyu began, his voice lowering as he tucked a stray strand of hair behind your ear. âDo you want to be exclusive?â
Your heart raced at the word. âExclusiveâŚ? Likeââ
âLike not sleeping with other people,â he clarified, though that wasnât quite the question you were about to ask.
You were about to ask if he meant dating. Thank God you didnât.
âOhâŚâ you trailed off, unsure how to respond. âWhy?â
Mingyu shrugged, his tone still casual. âNo reason. Itâs okay if you donât want to. Youâre free to do whatever you want. But⌠itâd be nice, donât you think?â
There was no reason to say no. The truth was, youâd stopped considering other guys long ago, the moment this thing with Mingyu began. Still, his offer made your heart raceâboth giddy and nervous. But there was no way youâd let him see that.
âI donât know. Doesnât seem like a fair deal,â you quipped, hiding behind banter.
Mingyu narrowed his eyes at you, curious. âWait, what does that mean?â
You shrugged again, refusing to elaborate, though it didnât really mean anything.
âHold onâwhat?â He sat up, feigning shock, and flexed his arms dramatically. âYou donât think this is a fair deal?â
âWhere?â you teased, squinting at his muscles like you couldnât see them.
Mingyu grinned and started flexing even harder, pointing out specific muscles like they were on display. âYou seriously donât see this? Look closely and tell me this isnât a fair deal.â
You giggled, reaching for him with your toes. Grinning, he grabbed your foot and pulled you toward him. The sudden tug made you squeal.
âCome on, baby, take it back.â He leaned down, hovering over you, eyes soft. âTake it back while Iâm still being nice.â
âI didnât ask you to be nice,â you taunted, your coy smile daring him.
Mingyu chuckled low in his throat. âYouâre extra beautiful when youâre naughty, did you know that?â
âNo idea,â you replied, grinning as he leaned in, capturing your lips again. When his hand cupped your boob, you pulled away from the kiss and pushed him off. âNo.â
âAw, fine,â he sighed in defeat, falling next to you on the bed. Quietly, he settled behind you, wrapping an arm around your torso and sliding his other arm under your head. âGet some rest.â
He didn't say much after that, but there was a warmth in the way he pulled you closer, an unconscious act of intimacy that made your chest tighten.
It hit you thenâhow much youâd come to crave moments like this, not just the passion, but the feeling of being with him, of having him there with you in the silence. Youâd never felt this way before, not even with past relationships, and the realization made your heart race. You were falling for him, had already fallen. It wasnât the way he teased you or the way he kissed you, but the quiet moments in between, where you felt like he saw you, really saw you.

It had been a long week. Between schoolwork, dealing with your chaotic schedule, and pretending like everything with Mingyu was still as casual as it used to be, you were exhausted. The tension gnawed at youâthis thing between you two was starting to feel like more than it should. It wasnât something you were ready to acknowledge yet, but it lingered in the back of your mind.
You walked into your apartment after a particularly grueling day, half-expecting the silence to greet you. When you walked into the kitchen for water, you found a small plastic bag filled with food on the table. Next to it was a tiny ceramic panda bear, about half the size of your palm.
You blinked, trying to process it. It wasnât there this morning. Mingyu mustâve stopped by.
You walked over to the counter, looking at the items. Inside the bag were a couple of your favorite snacksânothing big, just the kind of things you liked to nibble on when you were too tired to cook. There was no note, but the panda felt like something only he would give you. It was cute in an oddly sentimental way, like he knew youâd smile at it.
You heard a knock at the door and quickly set the bear back on the counter, hurrying to open it. Mingyu stood there, casual as ever.
âHey,â he said, flashing you that familiar, easygoing grin.
âHey,â you replied, smiling back. âDid you stop by earlier? Or do I have a creepy psychopathic stalker whoâs obsessed with me and thinks itâs romantic to leave food for me at home while Iâm away?â
Mingyu laughed heartily. âWhat are you gonna do if the creepy psychopathic stalker was me?â
âIâm calling the police,â you told him, closing the door to his face. He didnât stop you, nor did he knock for about thirty seconds after you closed the door so you opened it again. âCome on in, then.â
âI was in the area so I thought Iâd drop by and surprise you but you werenât home,â he explained, kicking his shoes off at the foyer.
âSnacks and a panda?â you asked, raising an eyebrow but smiling. âThatâs quite a combination.â
Mingyu shrugged, a soft laugh escaping him. âI saw it in this shop near campus. And I figured if it was you, you wouldnât leave it alone in that shop.â
âI donât go around adopting every bear figurine I see, Mingyu,â you snorted, picking up the panda again.
âMaybe, but since heâs already here, you should have it up there with your little bear family,â he beamed, taking the panda from your hand and placing it up on the shelf with the rest of your bear collections. âShe can be their Chinese aunt.â
âBecause sheâs from China?â you asked and saw him nod his head. You both laughed. âIâm sure they appreciate you making their family bigger.â
âThanks for saying that,â he smiled, not the mischievous kind of smile that he usually sported, but a sincere oneâas if he was touched by your statement. âIâm glad I could make them happy,â he added, staring at the bear family.
You stared at him for a moment, something warm and unfamiliar swelling in your chest. This wasnât just some casual fling anymore, was it? You tried to play it cool, but the way he just knewâthe way he quietly showed up in your life, making you feel special in small but wonderful waysâmade it harder to keep pretending you didnât care. You could only hope heâd open up to you and let you into his world. That way, you could love him properly.
âThanks,â you said softly. âItâs cute.â
âYeah?â he asked, turning his gaze back at you. âYouâre cute.â
You rolled your eyes, though your heart skipped a beat. âShut up.â
Mingyu chuckled, leaning against the wall, watching you with an unreadable expression. It was like he wanted to say something but was holding back. You were holding back too, both of you toeing the line of something you could not bring up.
âIâll make you dinner,â you offered, trying to fill the silence.
âYou donât have to,â Mingyu replied, but you were already walking toward the kitchen, grateful for the distraction.
The rest of the evening was spent with each otherâs company, sitting together on the sofa with your head resting on his chest as he absentmindedly stroked your hair. The silence wasnât awkward or strained; if anything, it was soothing, the kind of peace that made you feel safe and whole.
It is in moments like this that you realize you need not fill every moment with words. Being with him like this was comfortable and nice.
Mingyu shifted slightly, one hand holding your shoulder as he reached for his phone on the coffee table. You glanced up at him, watching as the light from the screen cast soft shadows across his face. Youâd memorized every detail of how he looked by nowâthe sharp lines of his jaw, the way his eyes crinkled when he smiled, that playful smirk he always wore. But tonight, something about him felt different. His dark hair, slightly disheveled, framed his forehead just the right way, and you couldnât help but think of how soft it lookedâhow soft it felt the mornings you ran your fingers through it when he was half-asleep. He always looked good, like some kind of casual perfection, but right now, with his face relaxed in the glow of the phone, he looked almost unreal.
Youâd thought he was handsome the day you met himâheâd always had that charm that caught you off guardâbut now, now that youâd spent nights tracing every inch of him, mornings laughing at how messy his hair could get, and afternoons like this where he seemed so unaware of how much space he took up in your thoughts... it hit you all over again. He wasnât just good-looking. He was beautiful in a way that made you ache a little, like your mind couldnât fully comprehend that someone like him was sitting here with you.
His voice broke through your reverie, a gentle reminder that this wasnât some dream youâd conjured up. He really was here. âAh, I almost forgot. Exams start tomorrow. Are you ready?â
You pressed your lips together in a tight line, suddenly reminded of the real world. âIâve gone through all my notes, but Iâm not sure,â you muttered, the conversation feeling trivial compared to what was really on your mind. You werenât thinking about exams. You were thinking about how, with him beside you like this, nothing else seemed to matter.
âWe could pray,â he snickered. âFor our grades.â
You rolled your eyes. âAs if you have to. Youâre gonna ace everything and graduate with flying colors.â
Mingyu chuckled. âWeâre freshmenâages away from graduation.â
âYes, but if you continue at your current pace, youâd really graduate with distinction.â
He hummed, kissing your forehead. âYou think too highly of me. I like it more when you used to call me a himbo. Less pressure.â
Without thinking, you let out a soft sigh, turning to look at him. Really look at him. His focus had shifted back to his phone, his long fingers casually scrolling through whatever app he was on, but there was a subtle tension in his jaw, like maybe he was thinking about something too.
âLetâs go to bed. Iâm tired,â you said, nuzzling into his shirt.
Mingyu sighed, pulling you closer as he placed his phone down. âSorry. I have to be home tonight.â
âOh.â You didnât mean for it to sound so disappointed, but it slipped out anyway.
Mingyu rubbed the back of his neck, clearly sensing the shift. âI just have to help out at home tonight. My parentsâŚâ He trailed off, leaving the explanation half-formed, and you didnât press him for more.
âRight. Of course,â you said, forcing a small smile. âYou donât have to explain.â
There was an awkward pause before he kissed the top of your head again, his voice soft. âIâll see you tomorrow, okay?â
âYeah, sure.â You sat up as he rose from the couch, the warm space he left behind feeling a little colder already.
Mingyu grabbed his jacket from the chair, glancing at you with a small, apologetic smile. âIâll text you.â
You nodded, watching as he left, and once the door clicked shut behind him, the silence of the room felt a little too loud.

âHeâs just busy with exams,â you told yourself, sitting in your living room with your elbows propped on your knees, chin in your hands. You stared at the bears on the bookshelf, speaking to them as though they could somehow offer an answer. âOr maybe he had stuff to take care of at home.â
It had been four days, and you hadnât heard from Mingyu. He texted after he left your apartment like he said he would, but after thatânothing. The last thing he mentioned was that he was spending time with his father. But then, radio silence.
âHe should at least check in on me, right?â you muttered, leaning back into the sofa. âItâs been four days.â
Just as you were spiraling further into your thoughts, your phone buzzed in your hand, making you sit back up with a jolt. Your heart raced at the thought of Mingyu finally texting you, but your excitement died down as quickly as it came. It was just Mina.
Mina: otw to pick u up. U ready?
âOh, shit,â you cursed, bolting upright. You scrambled to your bedroom, throwing on the first outfit you could find that was semi-decent for a party.
You spent the next five minutes getting ready, knowing Mina lived nearby and would be here in less than ten minutes. By the time you heard the knock on your door, you were almost done with your makeup, except for the lipstick that you decided youâd do in the car.
âComing!â you called out, rushing to slip on your shoes as you headed for the door. But when you flung the door open, it wasnât Mina standing outside.
Mingyu stood there, his hands tucked into his hoodie pockets, wearing the faintest of smiles. âHi.â
âMingyu!â you exclaimed, gripping the doorknob to resist the urge to leap into his arms. âWhat are you doing here?âÂ
 âI thought Iâd drop by. Is now a bad time?â
âNo! I mean, yesâkinda! Iâm going to Hoshiâs party,â you rambled.
Mingyu nodded, a flicker of realization crossing his face. âAh! I was supposed to go there too. Should we go together?â
âMy friends are already on their way to pick me up,â you said quickly, wincing. âCome inside for a bit.â
You pulled him in by the sleeve, shutting the door before Mina could catch you in this whirlwind of confusion. Mingyu was hereâafter four days of nothingâand suddenly, all those unspoken thoughts came rushing back. Why hadnât he reached out? What was going on?
âYou said youâre supposed to go to the party?â you asked, trying to keep your voice steady.
âYeah,â he answered, walking closer and resting his forehead on your shoulder. His sigh was long, deep, and heavy. Much heavier than you expected.
âIs everything okay?â you asked, placing a gentle hand on his back.
âYeah, itâs just⌠Iâve been exhausted these days,â he confessed, sighing again. He wrapped his arms around your waist. âLetâs just stay like this for a while.â
And you did. You let him stay there, gently stroking his back in hopes that it would bring him comfort from whatever it was that was bothering him. It was as if you could sense the weight of his worries pressing down on him.
In that silence, your mind raced. You wanted to ask what was wrong, but something in his demeanor urged you to hold back. Instead, you focused on the rhythm of his breathing, the steady rise and fall of his chest. He needed this comfort, and for now, it felt like enough to be there for him. You didnât move, not even when you heard the first series of knocks on your door. You just stood there, giving Mingyu the warmest hug you could offer.
When the second knocks came, followed by Minaâs voice calling your name, Mingyu pulled away. âIs that your ride?â
âYeah,â you replied softly, almost in a whisper.
He smiled at you, tucking a few strands of hair behind your ear, lingering for a momentâthumb gently tracing the line of your jaw. âIâll see you there, then.âÂ
âAlright,â you whispered, leaning in to place a chaste kiss on his cheek. âIâll go first, okay? You can stay for as long as you need.â
âThanks,â he said, kissing your lips softly.
In the car with your friends, your mind was preoccupied with thoughts of Mingyu. Is he okay? What happened? Why did he seem upset and sad? Where was he these past few days?
âWhereâs Mingyu these days?â Mina asked, tugging on your elbow to get your attention. âYou guys are close, right?â
âHuh?â you asked, surprised by the question. What you have with Mingyu wasnât a secret, but you didnât openly tell other people about it. Whenever someone noticed that you seemed close, you always told them that you were friends. And in a way, you were.
Mina tilted her head slightly, confused. âWas I wrong? I thought you two got along.â
âOh, yeah. Weâre friends.â
Mina said, âI havenât seen him around campus in a while. Is he okay?â
âI think heâs fine, yes. Whyâd you ask?â you replied.
âWell, something happened a few days ago,â Mina said, hesitating. She turned to Jill, your other friend whoâs driving. âJill, tell her what happened.â
You met Jillâs gaze in the mirror briefly. âLea and I saw him getting slapped outside the campus.â
Your heart ached. âWhen was it? Who hit him?â
âIt was probably his mom,â said Lea, glancing at you from the shotgun seat. âShe looked like it and Mingyu got in her car after. Luckily there werenât many people there and I think only a few noticed. But he seemed really depressed at the time.â
You leaned on the backrest of your seat, crossing your arms over your chest as you wondered about Mingyu. Is he having problems at home? Is that why he was upset?
âYouâre worried. You must be close,â Mina said, probing for answers about your relationship with him.
âHeâs my friend. Of course Iâm worried.â
When you reached the party, you were stuck with your friends for a while, playing a round of drinking games with other people. When that was over, and youâd managed to slip away unnoticed, you searched the crowd for Mingyu.
You leaned against the wall, holding a half-full cup of punch, scanning the crowd. You spotted him nearby, talking to a group of friends, his usual easy smile lighting up his face. You smiled too, watching him. It was almost effortless with him, how he could make everyone around him feel comfortable. Youâd noticed it beforeâMingyu was always the life of the party wherever he went.Â
But then you remembered what your friends told you, and the smile faltered from your lips. How much pain was he hiding behind those sweet smiles? Were they fake the whole time? Or were they real and was he only able to smile this much outside his home? What was going on with his life? With him? At this point, the most fitting question would be, âWho is he really?â
You were about to join him when you noticed someone approach himâsome girl you hadnât seen before. She was tall, pretty, with perfectly styled hair and an outfit that screamed confidence. She touched Mingyuâs arm lightly, leaning in to say something that made him chuckle. It was a small, polite laugh, the kind he gave when he didnât want to be rude, but that didnât stop the knot from forming in your chest.
You tried to ignore it, reminding yourself that it didnât mean anything. But when she took another step closer to him, her fingers lingering on his arm, you felt a strange tightness, a familiar sensation that crawled under your skin.Â
Jealousy.
Jealousy was a strange thing. You had never felt it beforeânot like this. The idea of losing him, even though you werenât âtogether,â made your stomach flip.Â
Mingyuâs eyes flicked over the room, and then they landed on you. For a split second, you thought about looking away, playing it cool. But the look in his eyes, the way his face softened when he saw you, stopped you in your tracks. He smiledâhis real smile, the one that made his eyes crinkle at the cornersâand the knot in your chest loosened a little.
Without a word, Mingyu took a small step back from the girl and made his way over to you. You tried to act casual, leaning against the wall as if your heart wasnât racing.
âHey,â he said, his voice warm and familiar. He stood close, the heat of his presence drawing you in.
âHey,â you replied, trying not to let the relief show on your face.
âEnjoying the party?â he asked, leaning in slightly so you could hear him over the music.
âYeah, itâs fine,â you said, shrugging. âYou seem popular tonight.â You couldnât help the slight edge in your voice, even though you tried to play it off as a joke.
Mingyu raised an eyebrow, clearly catching the subtle tone. âYou mean her?â he asked, tilting his head toward the girl who was now talking to someone else. âSheâs just being friendly.â
âFriendly, huh?â you replied, taking another sip of your drink. âLooked like she was being a little too friendly.â
Mingyu laughed softly, stepping even closer. His hand brushed against your arm, sending a familiar warmth through you. âDid you know I like my women territorial?â he teased, but his tone was gentle.
You scoffed, trying to hide the sudden rush of embarrassment. âGo find yourself someone territorial then,â you said, bumping your shoulder against his when you pushed past him.
Mingyu chuckled, turning to grab your wrist and stop you from leaving. âI donât need to find one.â He tugged you towards him, hugging you from behind and planting a sloppy kiss on your cheek. âI have my territorial girl right here.â
You rolled your eyes, but your heart fluttered. âGet off me. Why are you doing this in public?â you chided, shaking him off but not putting in any strength to actually get away from him.
âOh, is this not allowed?â he asked and you were about to fire a retort when you caught your friendsâ gazes from across the room. You felt your cheeks flare, looking away to avoid Minaâs teasing grin.
âGet off.â You pushed him away and straightened your clothes.
Mingyu chuckled heartily, tugging your shoulder so youâd face him. He was smiling softly, a softness that made you feel seen in a way that was more intimate than anything else. âDonât worry. Iâm yours exclusively.â
You stared at him, trying to read what was on his mind. You wish you could, but it was impossible.Â
The words hit you harder than you expected. Exclusively? He must be talking about the fact that you were exclusive fuck buddies. You wished he wasnât, but youâd rather not have false expectations.Â
âI know,â you said, your voice quieter now.
For a moment, neither of you spoke. The tension hung in the air between you, thick and unspoken. You didnât need to say anything more. You both understood.
âMingyu!â shouted someone from across the room. You both turned your heads in the direction of the voice and saw a guy waving for Mingyu. âCome on, man! Itâs your turn!â
Mingyu chuckled, waving back. âYou guys continue without me!â he shouted back. Then he took your hand, fingers lacing through yours, and gave it a small squeeze. âWanna ditch?â
You shrugged.
âCome on. I know you want to leave and go for burgers right now.â
You felt a smile tug at your lips. âDid you just read my mind?âÂ
âNo, but I have a manual in my head with your name on it, and that information is saved here,â he replied, pressing an index finger to his temple.
âYouâre so obsessed with me. Arenât you embarrassed?â you quipped, pushing off the wall and walking toward the door, feeling the familiar warmth of Mingyuâs presence right behind you.
The night ended in your apartment, as expected. In the heat of the moment, you set aside everythingâyour confusion, the questions, everything. There was only you and him in this moment of passion. Once more, you let yourself spiral into the momentary distraction of pleasure. And when the high slowly dissipated, you found yourself in the warm bathtub, with your back leaning on Mingyuâs chest.
âAre you staying?â you asked softly. âOver, I mean. Or do you need to go home?â
âIâd love to stay,â he replied. âIs that okay?â
âOf course it is.â You closed your eyes, content with his answer. âI donât even want you to leave,â you blurted before you could stop yourself.
Mingyu chuckled lightly. âI donât want to leave either. I wish I could just stay here. Forever, if thatâs even possible,â he said and it left a bitter taste in your mouth.
âOh yeah? Then why do youââ You bit your lip, feeling vulnerable all of a sudden. You werenât used to confronting things like this. You looked up to meet his gaze, looking into his eyes. âWhere will you disappear next time, Kim Mingyu?â
For a second, his expression shiftedâjust a flicker of something in his eyes, something you couldnât quite read. âIâm not going anywhere,â he said, his voice filled with a quiet certainty. âNot unless you want me to.â
Your chest tightened. His words were simple, but the weight behind them hit you harder than you expected. How long had you been waiting to hear something like that? To know that, at least for now, he was yours, and he wasnât going to slip away without warning like he had before.
You swallowed hard, trying to find your voice again. âNo. I donât want you to go.â
Mingyu smiled, that same easygoing grin that always seemed to make everything feel okay, even when it wasnât. âThen stop worrying,â he said, his thumb still tracing those soft circles on your skin.
He didnât make a promise, and maybe you shouldâve asked for one. Because even though he stayed for a while, it didnât stop him from fading away all over again.

You were at Minaâs apartment, sitting on the edge of her bed while she packed her things. Beside you, Jill was cradling a bag of chips, pointedly refusing to share.
âI still donât get why youâre moving out,â Jill grumbled, slapping your hand when you reached for a chip. She shot you a glare and continued, âCanât you just tell your parents you donât want to live with them?â
âAsian parents,â Mina sighed, shaking her head. âYou wouldnât understand.â
âExactly! I donât understand why theyâd move to another state just to follow you here,â Jill said, incredulous. âThatâs some next-level parenting!â
âThey moved because they canât stand being away from their daughter,â you chimed in, swiping a protein bar from Jillâs stash. âAlso because they can.â
âYeah, and thatâs why itâs so confusing,â Jill scoffed, gesturing toward Mina. âMy parents love me too, but they wouldnât move out of their hometown just to keep me close. Are all Asian parents like hers? Do they really want their grown-ass kids living at home?â
You shrugged. âIâm not sure, but it happens more often than youâd think.â Your mind briefly wandered to Mingyu, remembering how heâd moved back in with his parents.
Before you could say more, music blared from outside the bedroom, cutting through the conversation. You looked up to see Lea entering the room, a towel draped over her shoulders like a makeshift cape. She carried a speaker in one hand, which she promptly set down on the nightstand.
âYou say!â she belted, voice dramatic as she launched into the opening lines of a Hamilton song. âThe price of my love is not a price that youâre willing to pay!â
The three of you groaned in unison.
Mina rolled her eyes, standing up to shove Lea out of the room. âGet out, nerd,â she said, feigning annoyance but unable to hide her smile.
âSheâs sad. Let her grieve,â you teased, glancing toward the door where Lea continued knocking persistently.
Mina sighed and switched off the speaker, silencing the music. âSheâs just overdramatic, thatâs what she is. Itâs not like we wonât see each other anymore.â
âMaybe you wonât,â you said, shrugging. âWho knows? Some people like to disappear and not say a word. Only to show up out of nowhere and act like nothing happened.â
Mina crossed her arms over her chest, tilting her head slightly as she observed you with a hint of suspicion in her eyes. âWhere is this coming from?â
You shrugged, glancing at Jill who was giving you the same look. The chuckle you let out was awkward and defensive. âNowhere. Iâm just yapping for no reason. You know me.â
âYeah, we know you,â Jill said, grinning playfully. âWe know youâre hiding someone up at your apartment.â
âWHAT?â you exclaimed, backing away and laughing incredulously. âNo. When did I ever! Youâre crazy," you denied, snorting.
âUh-huh? Then why havenât we been invited there in like, six months already?â Jill interrogated.
You looked away. âI didnât know you guys were keeping count.â
âWho is it?â Mina pressed, a teasing smile on her lips.
âNo one,â you said briskly. âWe havenât talked in like, a week.â
âOh, is it over before we even found out who it was?â Mina asked, appalled.
Before you could respond, Leaâs voice rang out from outside the door, full of flair. âYouâll be back! Soon youâll see! Youâll remember you belong to me!â
Yeah. Mingyu will be back. Like always.
You went on with your life, like always. Youâd learned to adapt. Classes came and went, each lecture merging into the next. On the first few times that Mingyu would disappear, you used to be distracted. Now you just went on as usual. Each day passed in a blur of classes, late-night study sessions, and the occasional laugh with friends.
âYou still havenât told us who this mystery man is. Heâs not a professor, is he?â Lea questioned while you were at a cafe one evening.
âNo! What the heck?â you said briskly, shaking your head at the ridiculous accusation.
âIs it Mingyu? You guys seem... close,â Mina teased.
âNo,â you lied, blatantly.
Mina nudged your elbow. âThen why wonât you tell us?â
You hesitated, glancing down at your plate. âItâs just⌠itâs complicated.â
âComplicated how?â Jill asked, leaning in, her eyes glimmering with curiosity. âHe ghosted you, right? Youâre better off without him.â
âYeah, I guess,â you said, but the words felt heavy in your mouth. You could not bring yourself to tell them that heâd done this before, and that heâd be back. When he does, youâd take him back like you always did.
You didnât want to tell them how much you craved his presence, even if it was a source of confusion and pain. The idea of him laughing and teasing you again, the thought of being held by him, being one with him in body and mindâit all felt like a drug you couldnât resist. How could you tell your friends that? Theyâd kill you if they canât kill Mingyu first.
Mina reached out, squeezing your hand. âYou deserve someone whoâs all in. Not someone who just pops in and out of your life.â
âI know,â you nodded, appreciating their concern. You know they were right, but you still wanted to wait for Mingyu.
Just as the ache began to dull into a familiar rhythm, you were in the library, buried under a pile of textbooks. The quiet hum of studying students surrounded you, but you were in your own world, focusing on an assignment.
âHey, stranger,â said a familiar voice that made your heart race. You looked up to find Mingyu and your stomach flipped as you caught his eye. He looked goofyâexactly as you remembered. âMissed me?â
âMore like I forgot what you looked like,â you retorted, trying to play it cool.
He laughed, that warm, infectious laugh that always made your heart flutter. âOh, come on! You know you missed my face.â
âNot as much as I missed your annoying habit of interrupting my study sessions,â you shot back, though you couldnât suppress the smile creeping onto your face.
Mingyu grinned, leaning closer. âI canât help it. Whatâs more interesting than me?â
Your heart swelled at his playful confidence, and for the first time in weeks, the tension in your chest eased a little. âA lot of things, actually,â you teased, trying to keep the atmosphere light.
âLies,â he said pouting as he slid on the seat next to you, scooting so close that your shoulders were squeezed together. âSo, any plans tonight?â
You rolled your eyes, but inside, you felt the warmth of his presence filling the void he had left.
Mingyu started to integrate himself back into your life seamlessly. He would swing by your apartment with snacks, distract you with silly anecdotes, and make you laugh until your sides hurt. You need not mention that most of these nights were spent with your limbs tangled underneath your sheetsâhalf his weight pressing on you, your fingernails digging into his skin, as your moans blended with his soft grunts, creating a beautiful melody that made you lose your mind.
One afternoon, you found yourselves in the park, lounging on the grass under the fading sunlight. âSo, whatâs new with you?â he asked, propping himself up on his elbow to look at you.
âNot much. Just the usualâclasses, studying, hanging out with the same friends,â you replied, your gaze drifting to the clouds above.
He raised an eyebrow. âJust that? No wild adventures? No spontaneous trips?â
You laughed softly. âYouâre my wild adventures, Mingyu.â
Mingyuâs expression shifted, his playful demeanor softening as he studied your face. âIâm sorry for disappearing like that. I just needed some time to take care of stuff,â he explained, playing with the ends of your hair. âI wish I didnât have to.â
His words hung in the air, and your breath caught in your throat. The way he looked at you made you feel special againâloved even. You could feel the warmth spreading in your chest, a blend of relief and yearning.
âIâm glad youâre back,â you said softly, your heart swelling with hope.
âI know,â he replied with a teasing smirk, but his eyes were sincere. You stayed like that for a while, just staring at each other, not quite understanding what your eyes were trying to tell each other, but content nonetheless.
âI should go,â you said, sitting up. Mingyu followed, holding your hand and resting his chin on your shoulder.
âGo where? I was hoping we could hang out again tonight. How does steak sound? Iâve gotten good at it recently.â
âI am tempted, but maybe next time. I made plans with the girls.â
âCan I sleep over tonight, then? I donât wanna go home,â he pleaded.
You winced. âMinaâs sleeping over tonight.â
âDidnât she sleep over the other day, though?â
âYeah, well. She doesnât have an apartment anymore. Itâs a long story.â
Mingyu gasped playfully. âIs she moving in with you?â
âNo, not really. But sheâd be sleeping over sometimes.â
âNot your friend cockblocking me.â
You threw your head back laughing. âDumbass. Go away.â
As the days turned into weeks, you settled back into the regular rhythm with him. Mingyu seemed lighter, more carefree. Every moment felt precious, as if you were both making up for lost time.
But behind the lighthearted moments, you could feel itâthe underlying tension that often accompanied Mingyuâs presence. You pushed it aside, choosing to savor the time you had together instead of dwelling on what might come next.
Then, one chilly evening, it happened.
Youâd heard somewhere before that one should expect disappointment. That way, the said disappointment would hurt less once it comes. They were only half-right.

âWhatâs your opinion so far?â you asked, watching Seungcheol lean back in his chair.
He shook his head slowly. âIâm not really in a position to comment.â
âItâs fine. I donât mind. Iâm the one asking.â
He hesitated, choosing his words carefully. âI think youâve got yourself stuck in an impasse. And honestly, itâs a frustrating one, because you knew what was going on, you didnât like it, and you knew exactly what you could do to get out of it.â
âAnd your point is?â
âMy point is, you could have spared yourself the trouble. You could have chosen differentlyâconfront him, walk away, tell him to leave if heâs just gonna keep doing what heâs doing,â he replied.
You shot him a teasing smile. âNotice how youâre listing all the things I could have done, instead of what Mingyu should have done?â
There was a flicker of realization on Seungcheolâs face, clearly caught off guard. âOhâŚâ
You chuckled softly. âExactly. Thatâs because people generally donât trust men to be capable of picking up after their messes.â
âThatâs actually a good insight,â he admitted with a nod. âSo what happened after that?â
âYou know what happened. Itâs where I started when I told you this story. He called me after a week of radio silence, complaining about his annoying professor. Then I invited him over, we had sex, and we fell back into the same cycle of pretending like nothing was wrong. With him. Or with us. Then he vanished again.â
Seungcheol nodded quietly as he refilled your empty glass. For some reason, the gesture felt like a pat on your shoulder. In your mind, you thought that maybe this was his way of comforting you. That isâif he cared at all.
âThat was the first time we fought,â you added, smiling bitterly at the memory.
At that point, youâd recognize the cues. Youâd had Mingyu memorized and knew exactly from the way he was beginning to get detached that he was about to disappear againâlate replies, making excuses and avoiding you at the campus. The thought of being abandoned by him once more struck a chord in you. Before you know it, you were confronting him, demanding to be heard.
âYouâre doing it again,â you said, just as he was reaching for the doorknob.
Mingyu stopped, looked back at you, and blinked, confused. âDoing what?â
You gestured at him at the door. âThis. The avoiding, the excuses.â Your voice was sharper than you intended, but you couldnât hold it back anymore.
He shifted, clearly uncomfortable. âIâve been busyââ
âStop!â you interrupted. âJust stop it! Donât lie to me, Mingyu. You think I donât notice? Youâre pulling away, and you always do this right before you disappear!â
Mingyu sighed, backing away from the door and facing you fully. He uttered your nameâsoftly, pleadingly. âCome on, baby. Letâs not do this right now.â
âWhat? Am I supposed to just take it in stride while you disappear to God knows where without so much as a word? No. Weâre doing this right now,â you demanded. The corner of your eyes began to sting with the tears threatening to fall.Â
He reached to touch you but you recoiled, and he could only clench his fist then withdraw his hand. âIâm sorry.â
âIs that all you have to say?â you asked, appalled.
âI donât wanna make excuses.â
âWho said you have to?â you asked quietly, your voice unsteady. âYou just have to be honest.â
âIt's easier said than done!â he snapped, exhaling sharply as he held your gaze. You could see the hesitation on his face before he looked away and ran his fingers through his hair in frustration.
âWhat do you want from me, Mingyu?â you croaked out, trying to steady yourself on your feet. âWhy do you keep doing this to me?â
âI donât mean to hurt you,â he said defensively, reaching out again but you backed away.
âBut you do! And I feel like absolute shit because⌠becauseâŚâ The words got stuck in your throat. How were you supposed to explain the constant tug-of-war inside you? The feeling of wanting more but being too scared to ask for it? âAm I just someone you use when itâs convenient? Someone you need when youâre lonely, then toss aside the moment youâre done?â
âNo! Donât say that!â Mingyu growled, grabbing you by the shoulders and pulling you into a tight hug. You tensed at first, but then you felt itâthe way his arms wrapped around you, not in anger, but in desperation. âI care about you. I care a lot about you.â
The force of his hold spoke louder than anything heâd said. His grip tightened slightly, but it wasnât suffocating. It felt⌠conflicted, as if he was holding onto you for dear life but didnât know how to tell you why. You felt his breath, unsteady against your hair, like he was battling with words that refused to come out.
But it wasnât enough.
You stiffened in his arms, resisting the urge to melt into his warmth like you always had before. âMingyu,â you whispered, your voice barely holding together, âif you care about me, why wonât you just be honest?â
He didnât let go, but his grip faltered, his fingers loosening just enough for you to feel the uncertainty. His silence stretched on, filling the air between you, but he still couldnât say it. He couldnât give you what you neededâa promise, a reason, something to hold onto.
âGo,â you said, your voice raw with pain.
Mingyu faltered, his arms falling to his sides, his eyes pleading as if youâd just said something he wasnât ready to hear. âPleaseâŚâ he whispered, reaching out again.
You turned your back on him. âJust go, Mingyu,â you repeated, voice cracking as you struggled to keep your tears at bay. âGo. I canât do this right now.â
With your back turned you didnât see him linger by the door, hand hesitating on the knob. You didnât catch the sadness clouding his eyes, the way his fingers twitched as if to reach for you one last time. And you missed the way he looked at youâtorn, brokenâbefore he slipped out of your life once again.
And with Mingyu gone, he didnât see your legs give out beneath you. You collapsed onto the living room floor, where the two of you had spent countless hours together, making memories that now felt like they belonged to a different time. Your sobs filled the silence of the empty room, the weight of everything crashing down on you, and for the first time, you let yourself break at the place where you had once felt whole.

You went on with your life, almost mechanical now with its repetition. Classes, study sessions, dinners with friendsâit was all about keeping your head above water, distracting yourself from the void Mingyu had left behind. You had been through this before, so in some twisted way, you were used to it. He always came and went, and every time he left, it hurt less. The only difference was that this time, you werenât sure if heâd ever come back.Â
You missed him in the morning. Your eyes searched for him around campus all day. And your soul ached to be held by him at night. Your friends noticed your distracted state, and they had asked once but didnât press on when youâd hinted that you didnât want to talk about it. They figured that, eventually, you'd open up. In the meantime, you stuck to your routine, pretending everything was fine. And in a way, it was. Your tears eventually dried up and the restless nights decreased. The pain had dulled, and you were starting to accept that maybe this was for the best.Â
But it seemed like fate wasnât done toying with you yet. One evening, you were lounging on the couch with Jill, Lea, and Mina. You were halfway through a movie youâd been meaning to watch, a quiet evening like so many before when your friends had kept you company so you werenât left to your sad thoughts.
Then your phone rang. At first, you thought it might have been a mistake, that you were hallucinating when you saw Mingyuâs nickname on your screen.
âR18 plus plus plus? Whoâs that?â Mina teased, noticing the name flash on your phone. âA fling?â
âItâs no one,â you muttered, still staring at the screen.
âArenât you gonna pick it up? Itâs kinda loud, love,â said Jill, motioning to the TV.
You stood up, heading to the kitchen to answer the call. You knew you shouldnât, but a part of youâthe part that still hoped, still craved his presenceâwanted to hear what he had to say.
âHello?â you answered, your voice shaky.
âHi.â The voice on the other end was unfamiliar, and they said your name uncertainly.
âYes. Who is this?â
âThis is Dan. Your number was on the phone so I called. Can you come to the bar downtown? Itâs right across from 00 University. The owner of this phone had a little too much to drink. Can you come pick him up?â
For a moment, you couldnât speak. Mingyu? You hadnât heard from him in weeks. âI⌠yeah, Iâll be there,â you managed, glancing at your friends. âGive me twenty minutes.â
You ended the call and stood, grabbing your coat. Mina raised an eyebrow, but you avoided her gaze. âI have to go,â you said quickly.
âNow, now. Youâre not ditching us for Mr. R18 plus plus plus, are you?â Mina teased again, but you werenât in the mood for jokes.
âR18? Is that a booty call?â Lea chuckled.
âItâs not what you think, guys.â You sighed, offering a quick, apologetic smile. âIâll be right back.â
Without waiting for their protests, you rushed out the door, your heart pounding. You were confused and surprised. Mingyu drunk and alone in a bar? This was so out of character for him. Heâd never done anything like this before.
When you arrived at the bar, you spotted him immediately. Slumped against the counter, his head hanging low, he was a mess. His hair was tousled, his eyes half-closed, and his cheeks flushed with alcohol. The confident Mingyu you knew was gone, replaced by this hollow, drunken version. You approached him, appalled at the sight of him looking wasted.
âYou must be her,â asked the bartender.Â
You nodded, glancing at Mingyu. âHow long has he been like this?â
Dan sighed. âA few hours. He was drinking alone, staring at your number. Said he wanted to call, but wasnât sure if he should.â
Your heart twisted at that. He wanted to call? He was thinking about you? But then, why hadnât he?
âHow much did he drink?â you asked, eyeing about a dozen bottles of beer in front of him and hoping he didnât drink all of those by himself.
Mingyu stirred at the sound of your voice, his head lifting slightly. He tried to focus on you, but his eyes were hazy. He mumbled your name. â...is that you?â
Dan gave you a sympathetic smile. âHeâs all yours.â
âYeah, itâs me.â You sighed, wrapping an arm around him, trying to lift him to his feet. He leaned heavily against you, his body sagging.
He whispered your name again, slurring the syllables, and for a moment, something inside you softened. But no. You couldnât do this again. Not like this.
With a struggle, you managed to get him outside. âKim Mingyu, youâre gonna have to pull it together, or Iâll leave you here.â
Mingyu groaned, trying to straighten up. âI missed you,â he mumbled, his words barely coherent. He stumbled, reaching for your face but missing, his hand landing on your shoulder instead. He rested his head on your shoulder, taking a deep breath. âMissed you so much.â
You winced at the words, unsure of what to feel. Did he mean it? Or was it the alcohol talking? âCome on. Letâs get you home.â
In the cab ride back to your apartment, he kept trying to pull you closer, his head resting on your shoulder, his breath warm against your neck. Every time he said your name, it felt like a knife twisting in your chest. How could he hurt you so easily, and yet make you feel so needed at the same time?
When you got him inside, your friends were still there, their faces full of questions. Jill stood first. âWhatâs going on?â she asked, though the answer was obvious.
âHeâs drunk,â you said simply, guiding him to the couch. âIâm sorry. Can we call it a night? I promise Iâll explain later.â
They exchanged looks but didnât argue. Lea gave you a quick hug before leaving, followed by Jill and Mina. âText us if you need anything,â Mina said quietly, her eyes lingering on you as if she wanted to say more.
Once they were gone, you turned to Mingyu, who had collapsed onto the couch. He was mumbling your name again, his eyes barely open.
You knelt beside him, brushing the hair from his forehead. âYouâre a mess, Mingyu.â
He smiled lazily, his hand reaching for your face. Then he chuckled. âDan, you bastard, what did you put in my drink? Why am I seeing things?" he drawled out the words.
âYouâre not seeing things,â you chided, albeit softly, as you pushed his hand away.
You sighed, pulling away from his touch. You started to help him out of his jacket, his body warm and damp with sweat. As you worked, he kept trying to pull you closer, his hands wandering over your body, his lips trying to find yours but clumsily landing on different spots in your face.
You swatted his hand each time, and pushed him away as much as you could. You stripped him down until he was left with only his boxers. Afterward, you gave him a blanket and were about to leave when he grabbed you by the waist.
âStay,â he whispered.
Just like that, the tears you thought had dried up started welling your eyes again. You stood there, letting yourself get enveloped by his warmth again. If only he could stay like thisâopen, vulnerable, needing you. But deep down, you knew this wasnât real. Tomorrow, heâd be gone again.

The morning light filtered through the curtains, soft and gentle. You stirred awake, feeling a familiar ache settle deep in your chest. The first thing you did was rise out of bed and go to the living room. Mingyu was still asleep on the couch, his arm draped lazily over the edge, his chest rising and falling in slow, steady breaths.
Quietly, you walked over to the couch. You sat down on the floor next to him, folding your legs beneath you. Your eyes traced the familiar lines of his face, softened in sleep. He looked peacefulâvulnerable even, like he wasnât the same man whoâd disappeared for weeks without a word.
How many times have you told yourself not to expect more? That he wasnât yours to keep. He was only yours in stolen momentsâwhen the world outside didnât exist, and it was just the two of you, tangled in each other. But those moments were fleeting, like a breath you couldnât quite hold on to.
You sighed, brushing a loose strand of hair away from his forehead. âDamn you, Kim Mingyu.â
What if this time was different? What if, just once, he stayed? Hope was a dangerous thing. Every time you thought you were free from him, he pulled you back in, sometimes with nothing more than a look, a word, or the weight of his presence.Â
Mingyu stirred, his eyelids fluttering open slowly. His gaze found yours almost immediately, bleary but aware. For a long moment, neither of you said anything. You just looked at each other, the silence heavy with unsaid words, with everything you were too afraid to admit. The hurt. The longing. The quiet hope that maybe, just maybe, he wanted you as much as you wanted him.
His eyes lingered on your face, as if he was trying to read your thoughts. You felt exposed under his gaze, like he could see through the walls youâd built to protect yourself from him.
Then, without a word, he reached for you. His hand, warm and tentative, cupped the side of your face, and you leaned into his touch instinctively, closing your eyes for a second as your breath caught in your throat. When you opened them again, his gaze was intense, searching.
His lips brushed against yours, soft and familiar. Then, his grip on you tightened, and you found yourself sinking into him. For a few moments, it felt like nothing else mattered. The pain, the confusion, the nights spent wondering where he wasânone of it existed here.
You knew this wasnât safe. Letting him back in, letting him hold you, kiss youâit was a cycle you couldnât break. But you didnât pull away.
He guided you to the bed, his hands sliding over your skin with tenderness, as though he was afraid youâd slip away from him. You werenât sure who needed who more in this momentâwhether he was seeking comfort from you, or whether you were the one hoping he would stay, if only for a little longer. Maybe it didnât matter.
Your clothes fell away slowly, piece by piece, until there was nothing left between you. His touch was familiar, yet it felt different somehowâsofter, more cautious. You shivered as his lips trailed across your collarbone, your breath hitching in your throat.
He then lay on his back, guiding you to straddle him. Youâd miss everything about him these past few weeks, but you didnât know how much you longed for him until he was deep inside you. It hurt a little, but you didnât falter, you just stayed there for a second, adjusting to the stretch that you hadnât felt in a while.
Mingyu sat up, his hands supporting your back as he pressed his forehead against yours. âYou okay?â he asked, his lips ghosting over your skin. You nodded, moving ever so slightly. Mingyu kissed the side of your head. âGood girl.â
You didnât reply, too caught in the moment to think beyond the feeling of his hands on you, and his manhood inside you. Soon you were breathless on top of him, grinding rhythmically, back arching with each motion. His hands were as strong as they had always been, gripping your hips as he guided your movements. You did not contain your moans, knowing Mingyu preferred hearing themâthat he loved hearing you.
Just as you were nearing release, Mingyu shifted your positions, pinning you underneath him. He stared into your eyes for a moment, caressing your cheek before he kissed your open mouth. And once again, he thrust into you. The room was filled with soft soundsâquiet breaths, gentle whispers of each other's names. Everything felt slow, like time had stretched out just for you two, giving you space to exist in this fleeting moment.
There was no rush, no frantic urgency. Just two people, tangled together in a slow, deliberate, and passionate sex driven not solely by lust but by something more powerful.Â
Love. You felt it in his every push, every kiss, and every touch. It was different this time. His hands lingered longer, his lips sought yours more often, and the way he whispered your nameâit wasnât just desire. It was more, and you felt it deep within your chest, like an ache that had finally found its release
And when it was over, you lay together, his arms wrapped around you, his heartbeat steady beneath your ear. You traced lazy circles on his chest, feeling the rise and fall of his breathing. His body was warm, his presence grounding you in a way that made you want to believe he could be yours.
âI love you,â he said suddenly, his voice quiet but clear.
You froze, your hand still on his chest as the words hung in the air. You werenât sure if youâd heard him right. Slowly, you lifted your head to look at him, your heart hammering in your chest. âWhat did you say?â you asked, your voice barely above a whisper.
Mingyuâs eyes softened, a faint smile playing on his lips as he repeated the words that made your breath catch. âI said, I love you.â
Your heart swelled, but with it came a surge of doubt. Could you believe him? Could you trust these words from the same man who had vanished from your life without a second thought so many times before? It felt like standing on the edge of a cliff, one step away from free-falling into something that could either break you or save you.
You wanted to say it back. The words were on the tip of your tongue, but they felt too heavy, weighed down by all the times youâd convinced yourself that this moment would never come. Instead, you settled for leaning up and kissing him, slow and soft, your lips lingering against his. Maybe this kiss could say what you couldnât. Maybe it could be enough to bridge the gap between hope and reality.
When you pulled back, you looked at him again, the uncertainty gnawing at your chest. âDo you really mean that?â you asked, your voice smaller than you intended. âOr are you just saying it because⌠because of what just happened?â
Mingyuâs eyes darkened with something unreadable. He reached up, cupping your cheek, his thumb brushing lightly against your skin. âI mean it,â he said, his voice rougher now, like the words were harder for him to say than he let on. âI wouldnât say it if I didnât.â
His eyes were heavy with exhaustion, but there was something else there tooâsomething softer, more vulnerable. He didnât say anything. He didnât need to. You both knew what this was, even if neither of you was ready to admit it.
You pressed another kiss on his lips, your hand cupping his face. Maybe this time would be different. Maybe.
Or maybe not.

Seungcheolâs eyes stayed locked on you, you could see curiosity and concern written on his face. You just stared right back, keeping your lips tight.
âThatâs it?â he asked, his voice soft, almost disbelieving.
You nodded. âThatâs it.â
He blinked slowly, clearly not satisfied with your answer. Heâd been so engrossed in the story that neither of you had noticed how late it had gotten.Â
âIt canât be,â he murmured. âWhat happened after?â
You let out a breath, shrugging as if it didnât matter. âWe talked. Well, fought, mostly. I asked him what he wantedâif heâd finally commit. In the end, he didnât pick me. After everything, I thought he would. You know confessing his love and all that. But⌠meh.â You rolled your eyes. âThatâs how it went.â
Seungcheol leaned in, his eyes narrowing. âSo you walked away?â
âI donât wanna go into details anymore, but yes I walked away with my dignity intact. I mean,â you paused to laugh. âI couldnât keep letting him do that to me, could I? I had to stop it. I was better than that, though it took a while for me to finally grasp that fact and walk away.â
Seungcheol nodded slowly, but there was something unsatisfied in his expression. âWell, good for you. You deserve that. You deserve better.â
âI know,â you chuckled, but the laugh felt forced. âItâs funny, looking back. I acted so stupid for him. But Iâm just glad itâs over now, you know? That chapter is closed.â
He tilted his head, his brow furrowed in thought. âThatâs good. Although I dare say, your storytelling is a bit, I donât know⌠anticlimactic?â
âIs it?â you asked like it wasnât something you already felt too. You forced a shrug. âMaybe. But thatâs how it went. Things kept circling back to the same pattern and this part is basically the same. Thereâs only so many times you can replay the same argument, you know? I just skipped it,â you added with a forced smirk, hoping it would distract him from prying any further.
Seungcheol observed you for a minute, and you wondered if he could see right through you. Seems impossible. He didnât really know you until today, and you were a pretty decent liar.
âRight,â he said, his tone softening, though the doubt hadnât entirely left his face. âWhatâs next then?â
You blinked. âHuh?â
âI mean, whoâs next?â he clarified, leaning back in his chair. âKim Mingyu is not the only guy youâd ever dated, is he?â
You let out a short laugh, but it was strained. âNo, there were others. But itâs late, Mr. Choi. The lady needs her sleep.â
He shot to his feet, his face immediately contrite. âAh, of course! I didnât mean to keep you up.â
âIâm sure you didnât. If you want to hear more, you can ask the front desk for me. Tomorrowâs my day-off so I have time. We can also discuss the fee you promised,â you said, smiling and then narrowing your eyes at him. âThat is, if you havenât forgotten about it.â
âI remember.â He smiled. âGood night then.â
âThanks for listening,â you said with a small wave as you turned to head toward your room.
As you made your way back to your quarters, thoughts of Mingyu swirled in your mind. Youâd lied to Seungcheol. The ending between you and Mingyu wasnât anticlimactic at all. It had been messy, filled with bottled-up anger and days wallowing in misery. But youâd never admit that to Seungcheol. Sharing a failed romance with a stranger was one thing; baring the ugly truth of just how miserable and pathetic you felt back then? That was something else entirely.
At the time, you thought heâd finally let you in. He did, for a moment. Mingyu had opened up about the weight of familial expectations, how it crushed him to follow a path that wasnât his. He talked about the people and dreams he had to leave behind. And he confessed that the reason he couldnât choose you, after all this time, was that same fearâthat one day, heâd have to turn his back on you too.
âYou donât have to,â you said, placing a hand on his arm. âIâll be here. Wouldnât it be easier if you had someone to rely on?â
Heâd smiled at you then, a smile filled with gratitude and maybe something like love. âThank you. I appreciate that.â
And so, you stayed. And Mingyu? He stayed the sameâthoughtful, goofy, always consistent. Sometimes, heâd come to you in low spirits, and youâd let him lean on you in silence, even though he never fully shared his feelings. You fell deeper in love with him, slowly realizing that everything felt emptier, harder without him. You barely noticed time fly by, but you did notice that Mingyu no longer disappeared. He no longer detached himself from you. He was there all the time, even on days when he didnât feel like himself.
Freshman year passed and you went up with him at his familyâs estate to spend the break. He lived in a big house but his parents werenât home the whole time you were there. It was nice to get a glimpse of his life, of the place he grew up in and the person he was before you met him. You spent time hanging out, making love, and being each otherâs support system.
But despite how wonderful it was, despite the burning passion, the cloud of uncertainty loomed over you while you were there. The happiness you felt was so overwhelming, it scared you. It felt too good to be true, like the calm before an inevitable storm.
This storm would come earlier than either of you expected. And it came in the mail.
âWhat is it?â you asked, wrapping your arms around Mingyuâs seated figure. You tried to peek into the letter, but he put it away.
âNothing important,â he replied, holding your arm and rubbing it as he looked up at you. He smiled at you and then pressed a soft kiss on your lips. âWhere were you?â
You pointed at your head, wrapped in a towel. âIn the bath,â you said, straightening up and walking toward the bed to undo your hair.
âYou were gone for an hour.â
âYeah. I was actually waiting for you to join me,â you said, not hiding your disappointment.
He groaned. âOh, man. You shouldâve told me.â
You grimaced. âNo, you shouldâve looked for me when you noticed I was gone.â
He tucked the envelope in the drawer before jumping in the bed with you. He pinned you down, making you squeal. Then he started peppering you with kisses all over your face. When he caught a whiff of your neck, his expression immediately shifted from goofy to naughty.
âIâd love to do it in the tub, but the bed isnât such a bad idea too,â he lilted, undoing the ribbon of your robe.
âThe bed is the best place to do it, dumbass.â
Mingyu hummed in satisfaction. âI love it when you talk dirty to me,â he said, making you laugh.Â
That afternoon was spent being one with each other too, like the previous ones. When you fell asleep, Mingyu was beside you, his head leaning on your chest while you play with his hair. But when you woke up, it was already dark and the spot where Mingyu laid was cold.
You pushed yourself upright, wrapping your robe around you as you padded across the room, calling out his name. âMingyu?â The sound echoed back in the silence. You checked the bathroom, the living roomâevery corner of the house, each step feeling heavier than the last. No sign of him.
You tried his phone next, only to find it sitting on the nightstand. Thirty minutes passed, then an hour. Your calls for him became more frantic, though still unanswered. It was only when the housekeeper returned that she offered some explanation.
âHe went out earlier, maâam,â she said, smiling kindly. âHe didnât say where, but Iâm sure heâll be back soon. Mr. Mingyu would never leave you alone.â
Right, he wouldnât. Yet that wasnât reassuring at all. This housekeeper might have watched Mingyu grow up, even took care of him during those years, but she had no idea what Mingyu had put you through. Still, you wanted to believe in him.
The hours passed, and the next morning came. He hadnât come home yet. You waited until the evening, and the following evening on the next day, and the next, and the next. Still no Mingyu. The house felt hollow without him, as though the walls themselves knew something was wrong.
It was on the fourth day, when your frustration turned to desperate curiosity, that you found the letter tucked away in the drawer of his desk. Your fingers trembled as you unfolded itâan acceptance letter to a university abroad.
He hadnât mentioned this. Was he planning to leave? Had he already left?
Youâd looked for him and asked everyone at his house for help but no one seemed to know where he went. They even had to contact his parents and you didnât really expect them to know either, but it was frustrating to hear them say it.
âHave you checked his flat, maâam?â the housekeeper asked.
You blinked. âI thought he moved out of his flat?â
The housekeeper shook his head. âNo, maâam. Heâs been living here again, but that place in the city still belongs to him. Maybe heâs there?â
It wasnât like himânot anymore. Ever since the two of you had gotten closer, you thought the days of him pulling away without warning were over. You had let yourself believe that, anyway. But now, you felt the creeping sense of something breaking, something final.
You commuted back to the city and went straight to his flat. You hated this feelingâthe waiting, the uncertainty. It felt like standing on the edge of something crumbling beneath your feet.
And now here you were, in front of his door, heart pounding as you knocked. You didnât expect him to answer. But, he did.
Mingyu stood there, looking disheveled, dark circles under his eyes like he hadnât slept in days. The sight of him was both a relief and a frustration, all the hurt and confusion swirling inside you.
âWe need to talk,â you said, pushing past him into the apartment before he could say anything.
He closed the door behind you but didnât move. âI know,â he muttered, his voice hoarse.
You turned to face him, crossing your arms. âWhatâs going on, Mingyu? You disappeared. Again. After everything we talked about. After you said you didnât want to keep doing this.â
He ran a hand through his messy hair, looking anywhere but at you. âIâm sorry,â he said, but there was no conviction in his voice.
âThatâs it? Thatâs all you have to say?â Your voice cracked despite your efforts to keep it steady.Â
Mingyu finally looked at you, his expression torn, like he didnât know how to put what he was feeling into words. âI donât know⌠I needed time. I couldnâtââ
âYou always need time, Mingyu,â you interrupted, your frustration boiling over. âYou say you donât want to do this alone, but then you push me away every chance you get. Do you even want me in your life?â
âI do! Iâve never wanted anything else! But I canât⌠Iââ he paused, running his fingers through his hair. âI canât keep dragging you into this.â
âYouâre not dragging me, Mingyu. Iâm here to stay! But if weâre gonna keep having this⌠if youâre gonna keep doing this to me, then whatâs the point?â you asked, the words heavy with your anger and frustration. âIâm sick of this, Mingyu. Arenât you?â
His eyes widened, and you could see the conflict in him. But he didnât answer. He didnât say anything, and that silence hit you harder than anything else.
You swallowed the lump in your throat, taking a step closer to him. âIf you donât want me, just say it. Tell me to go, and I will. But if you want me to stayâŚâ Your voice faltered as you searched his face, desperate for any sign. âTell me to stay, Mingyu. Say it.â
For a long moment, the room was filled with nothing but the sound of your uneven breaths. You waited. He opened his mouth to speak, then closed it again.
âMingyu, pleaseâŚâ you pleaded, holding back your tears. âJust say âdonât go,â and I wonât,â you added, shaking your head.
Mingyu reached for your face, staring at you with tears in his eyes. Then he pressed his forehead against yours as he sobbed. âIâm sorry.â
Your heart sank, the answer clear even though he never spoke the words. You took a shaky breath, nodding to yourself. âOkay,â you whispered, wiping away a tear that rolled down your cheek. âI get it.â
You backed away and then turned toward the door, your chest aching with every step you took. But before you could reach the handle, you stopped, glancing back one last time, hopingâprayingâthat he would say something, anything, to stop you.
But Mingyu stayed silent. And with that, you walked out with finality in your stride.

To say you were a mess after that was an understatement. You were a wreckâmiserable and sad, wandering through the days like a ghost of your former self. You ran to your friends, crying in their arms for hours, the kind of raw, gut-wrenching sobs that left you breathless. You thought youâd only cry about it for a few days and get over it. But it went on for a whole month.
Some nights, after too many drinks, youâd find yourself dialing his number, the alcohol loosening the grip of reason in your mind. âMingyuuuu,â youâd whine into the phone, your voice slurred and pathetic. âI love you so much! Take me back!â
The next morning, youâd wake up to the shame of your drunken confessions, staring at the ceiling with the weight of regret pressing down on you. Youâd replay the conversations in your mind, cringing at how desperate you sounded, wondering how you let yourself fall apart so completely.
Your friends did their best to pull you out of the darkness, but every attempt felt futile. Youâd join them for outings, but you were barely present, laughing too loudly at jokes that didnât register or staring blankly at the world around you. One night, they dragged you to a party, insisting you needed to have fun. But there you were, clinging to your drink, watching everyone dance and laugh, while the memories of Mingyu spun in your mind. Once the reality set in that he was no longer there to ditch the party with you, you stumbled to the bathroom and locked yourself in, sobbing into your hands as the beat thudded through the walls.
Even the simplest tasks became challenges. Your studies slipped away; assignments piled up, and your grades plummeted. Youâd sit in your lectures, staring at the board but absorbing nothing. Friends would express their concern, but you brushed it off with a half-hearted smile, not wanting to burden them any more than you already had.Â
Eventually, you hit a breaking point. On one particularly dark day, you sat alone in your room, surrounded by empty cans and bottles and crumpled tissues. The realization hit you like a freight train: you couldnât do this anymore. You werenât just grievingâyou were drowning.
In the haze of your despair, you made the impulsive decision to skip the semester and move back home with your family. The thought of facing another day in the city without Mingyu felt unbearable. Packing your things felt like burying a part of yourself, but it was your only option. Every corner of your apartment did nothing to help your move on anyway.
You took one last look of the place where you made the most memories with Mingyu. And as you closed the door, you hoped it would also close that chapter in your life.
Your parents welcomed you with open arms, concerned and confused by your sudden return. You pretended everything was fine, but they noticed the shadows under your eyes, the way you flinched at the slightest mention of your time at university.
In the quiet of your old room, you often found yourself staring at the ceramic bears on your nightstand, remembering the small joy of building a family for these inanimate decors. Your friends tried to reach out, but you brushed them aside, too ashamed to admit how far you had fallen. They understood, giving you the time and space that you needed, knowing you'd be back once things were all better.
And as the weeks passed, something began to shift. The sun shone a little brighter, and the weight of your grief slowly lightened. You spent time with your family, rediscovering old hobbies and connecting with friends who reminded you of who you were before Mingyu. Slowly, you started to feel like yourself again. You laughed more, shared stories, and realized that life still held moments of joy, even in the absence of him.
One day, while cleaning your room, your eyes caught your little bear family, focusing on the grizzly and panda Mingyu had gifted you. Their faces seemed more cheerful now and you felt a bittersweet pang in your chest.Â
Where could Mingyu be right now? How is he? You had no idea, but you wished he was in a better place than before. Somehow, you wish you could at least extend a hand to comfort him, even as a distant friend.
Then an idea came. You picked up the grizzly and the panda, memories flooding backâof laughter, of warmth, of love. But you knew that holding onto them was holding you back. And right now, you didnât really need them anymore.
You wrapped the figurines carefully in bubble wrap and wrote a short note:
âIâm sending these with a happy heart and I hope that instead of bitterness and sorrow, they will bring a smile to your face, just like they did when we first met them. Thank you for the memories. Know that I do not regret meeting you, and if I had to do it again, I would. Although, maybe Iâd make better decisions then. Youâll always have a space in my heart, Gyu. I hope youâre in a better placeâboth in your heart and mind. Love, me <3â
As you dropped the package off at the post office, you felt lighter, liberated. The storm that had raged within you had dissipated, replaced by the gentle promise of new beginnings. You smiled to yourself, knowing that while the past would always be a part of you, it no longer defined you. You were ready to embrace whatever came next. Youâre young, you have a whole life ahead of you.
And if you happen to run into Mingyu again in the future, you hope he will be in better circumstances. Whatever he was going through, you wished heâd get over it and be genuinely happy.
[fin]
AAAAAAHHHHHJHHHHHHHH??!??!!??!??!!????
I LOVE THIS I LOVE THIS I LOVE THIS I LOVE THIS
first of all you've out done yourself yet again, the story keeps getting better & better. Don't think about messing up cuz it's EVERYTHING and more, we as readers could have asked for đ¤
i reallyyyyy like the idea of keeping the members a mystery (pls keep doing that) & adding tags later for other people
spoilers in tags, pls read the story first! :)
Camp Seventeen: Chapter 2



Pairing - Afab!reader x ot13 (reader x 2 members for this Ch.)
Word count - 13K
Genre - Greek Demigod AU! Weâve got crack, smut, fluff , angst, hurt, comfort, all of it in this series, buckle up!
Previous chapter
Chapter summary - As you delve deeper into the world of the demigods, a party throws you spiralling down a road less taken. While it seems there's one member who may be able to help you with it, there's another you want to lend a hand to. And more.
A/n - As usual, I'm not revealing which member/s are in the chapter hehe :) I do have a taglist so comment/DM/send an ask to be added! And if you enjoyed reading, please don't forget to leave feedback in the comments or tags - we've got lots of chapters to go and hearing thoughts really helps <3
Smut warnings - I'm trying this thing where I won't be adding any detailed warnings as of now now, I will be including them after 1 week instead! I'm trying to keep the suspense for those who are interested but I understand there might be some of you who are wary of reading certain things - I will be adding warnings for your sake in a week's time! (There are no trigger warnings for this fic though!)

Today you slept with both the windows and the curtains closed.Â
Not just Seungcheol's eagle, even the late morning sun couldn't wake you up, leading to you casually strolling into the dining hall, late in the day. As you walked in, still dressed in your pajamas, twelve heads turned towards you, following your every step.Â
Seokmin turned towards Seungcheol who's gaze was fixed on his food, like it was adamant not to meet yours. Hesitating, the former cleared his throat, taking one for the team, questioning you instead.
âYou uhâŚ.didn't come to train today.â
âYes, I didnât.âÂ
Walking in, you grabbed a banana from the fruit bowl and sat as far away from Seungcheol as possible. If anyone noticed the hostility between the two of you, they didn't say anything. Seokmin looked at you like he was expecting to hear more - then he realised that was all you had for an answer.Â
âWhy didn't youâŚ...âÂ
âI got wet in the rain last night.â You munched on your fruit. âFelt sick in the morning.âÂ
A part of you expected at least one of them to have the decency to ask you how you were doing now but all the boys simply exchanged looks. As you frowned at them confused, Joshua finally looked at you. âDemigods don't fall sick Y/n.âÂ
You blinked. âWhat?âÂ
âWe're half gods, so uhâŚ. stuff like bacteria and viruses don't really have an effect against us.âÂ
Suddenly, at that point, the last 25 years of your life made a little more sense - you realised you hadn't ever fallen sick. You also realised that last weekend when you offered to watch a movie with Seungcheol because the two of you were alone in the house, he had declined, stating he had a cold and didn't want to pass it on.Â
Of course he lied. All that man did was lie.Â
Scoffing, you shook your head. âOf course we don't.â
âIs there a problem?â Minghao narrowed his eyes at you conspicuously. âAny particular reason you couldn't or didn't want to come?âÂ
Sighing, you shook your head. âIt's just been hard getting used to things, I'm trying but-âÂ
âThere's no room for but Y/n.â Seungcheol finally spoke, looking up. âQuest season is approaching and we cannot have a weak link on the team.âÂ
âCheol.â Jeonghan cautioned, looking at him just a little sternly. âEnough.âÂ
Seungcheol stared back at Jeonghan like he wanted to retort but when the latter shook his head at him, he got up, throwing his plate into the sink a lot louder than anyone had expected.Â
If Chan hadnât muttered that the cab was ready to leave, you would have exploded - how dare he? He was the one who hinted at something more last night and he was the one who had left you in the middle of the storm so why was he behaving like this was your fault?? But before you could say anything, Seungcheol and the members going for morning shifts grabbed their things and set out for the day, unusually quietly. As Mingyu began to follow the crowd, you held him by his wrist,Â
âWhere are you going? You donât have work today?âÂ
âAre you keeping tabs on me, newbie?â Mingyu bent down, smirking at you. âCan I consider you interested?âÂ
âYour schedules are on the white board genius.â You rolled your eyes, letting him go and pointing at it. âWe need to talk.âÂ
Mingyu frowned, both confused and curious.Â
âThe house Gyu, my house. I have a final plan for it.âÂ
âOh! Okay sure letâs go-âÂ
âWait.â Joshua stood up shaking his head. âI don't know what's going on with you Y/n, but unlike Cheol, I cannot walk away from what I am responsible for in this camp. You're going to put that fruit down-â He pointed at the plum you just reached for. â-go shower, have a full breakfast and then you can sit with Mingyu and finalise whatever you have to.âÂ
âBut Shua-âÂ
âNo.â He said in a tone that you knew meant that this was not open for any more discussion as he turned towards the man who was stuffing his face with cereal. âAnd Kwon Soonyoung, why are your sheets still in the dryer?âÂ
Oh fuck.Â
Soonyoung looked at you confused - you had completely forgotten about that.
âI uh couldn't carry them back in the rain last night.â He muttered, drinking the last of his milk straight from the bowl, wiping his mouth with the back of his hand. âI'll take them now.âÂ
âWhy did you need to wash your sheets in the middle of the night?â Hansol frowned at the man beside him sceptical and Soonyoung glanced at you but you were suddenly deeply interested in some random crack on the table surface.Â
âI was bored and jerked off.â Soonyoung washed up his bowl, shaking the water off his hands. âIt was a good one.â
Hansol groaned disgusted and you looked at Soonyoung scandalised as he shot you a cheeky wink before disappearing out of the hall. A part of you was kind of relieved - you were worried after last night, especially considering what he said as you were leaving. Perhaps you heard it wrong because Soonyoung seemed just as relaxed as ever, like nothing had changed.Â
You were thankful for that - now things could go back to like they were before.Â
Or could they? Because Jihoon was yet again looking at you like he knew everything

âThis is your final plan?âÂ
âYes.â
âIsn't this the first plan you had made?â
âYes.â
âY/n,â Mingyu groaned. âIf you wanted to do this we could have finalised it days ago.âÂ
âI told you, I was confused about the whole bathroom situation.â You muttered, tracing mindless patterns over the floor plan. âLet's just make the residence alone. I'll adjust with the common showers.â
âWe can still arrange to build a bathroom for you.â Joshua glanced at the papers. âSince we have to divert water pipes, it'll just take a little longer-âÂ
âNo.â You gripped the pencil tight. âI don't want anything that takes a little longer. I want this house made as soon as possible so I can shift to my own space.âÂ
Your adamance was definitely new but neither boys commented on it. Instead Mingyu pulled out his phone and scrolled through clumsily.
âI need to place an order for the brick and cement and sure Chan has got a decently sized cab but it's going to take a couple of trips to bring the whole load.â He sighed, not looking up. âIt's going to take a couple of weeks to get the house ready-â
âNo, no no.â You shook your head. This couldn't be happening. âI need my own house as soon as possible, MingyuâŚ.â You looked away rambling as both men frowned. âI'm in my final year, I've uh got projects and submissions to work on. The library isn't well lit enough to study all night and Seungcheol's house is too far from the charging station in the Great Hall, I can't keep making such long trips just to charge my laptop? What if it rains like last night again? What if all my stuff gets wet and-â
âOkay, okay, I get it.â Mingyu set his phone down and tried to calm you down. âThough if those are your concerns, you can move into my house. I live close to the Great hall and I have a loft - you wonât have any issues there.â
Oh no. No no. You weren't about to fall from the frying pan into the fire.Â
âNo Mingyu, what I need is my own space, like every other member of the camp.â You sighed. âAnd I know it's a lot to ask but I hope we can be done with it fast.âÂ
âI really wish I could help Y/n.â He looked at you pitifully. âYouâre an architect, you know the kind of time it takes to build a house. Maybe if you had opted for something simpler, like a wooden cabin-âÂ
âCan you build that faster?âÂ
âI mean we do live in the middle of a forest and I do have automations to cut trees-âÂ
âHow long will a wooden cabin take?â
âA few days.â Mingyu rubbed his chin in thought. âProvided it doesn't rain or-âÂ
âDo it.â
Both men looked surprised.Â
âYou're sure?â Joshua spoke up this time. âWooden homes tend to feel colder, it would also be harder to-â
âI'm sure.â You nodded, gathering the sheets. âI'll have to make a few amendments to the layout then you can start. Meanwhile, why don't you go ahead now with theâŚ.. wood gathering?â
Mingyu nodded, stuffing his phone into his pocket, resting his face on his interlocked hands.Â
âWhat're you waiting for Mingyu?âÂ
âNow as in right now??â
âYes right now.â You looked at him like it was obvious. âPlease.âÂ
Joshua nodded, signalling Mingyu to leave and grumbling, the bigger man left, much to your relief. Just a few more days. You could handle a few more days with Seungcheol, right?Â
âYou cannot.â Joshua turned to you. âYou cannot survive with a group of people if you don't communicate Y/n. Do you want to tell me what's going on?â
You let out a deep breath considering it for a minute but then shook your head. âIt's not worth discussing. I'll deal with it on my own.â
âWell you better do it fast because,â Joshua pulled out a sheet from his bag and slid it across the table to you. âThings are about to get a lot more hectic.â
You were too scared to extend your hand and reach for that paper. Good god, what else was in store for you.Â
âSeokmin and Minghao are already covering physical training for you but being a demigod is so much more than just combat - you need to learn about this world, about its people, about the laws that govern it.â He looked at you apologetically. âI've drafted a schedule where the members will cover these different areas with you. Of course you will have time for your own obligations but you will also have to strictly adhere to the restâŚ..âÂ
Joshua's words trailed off as your eyes landed on the timetable and the names scribbled on them.

You counted 12 names, all the members were scheduled to help you except-Â
âWonwoo.â You breathed out. âHis name isn'tâŚ.here?âÂ
âYeahâŚâ Joshua scratched the back of his head. âWonwoo isn't really available for stuff like this, he's got other things to doâŚ.âÂ
Of course he did. He was a top secret government official, he did guard duty at night, he was working on your case too, you could understand that he was busy.Â
But what you didn't understand was why he always ignored you. Even earlier when you popped into the showers forgetting that Wonwoo usually washed himself much after everyone, you had in fact, caught him butt naked.Â
Any normal person would've covered himself up or at least responded to your small scream, quick turn and innumerable apologies but Wonwoo? He simply grabbed a towel, wrapped himself and walked straight past you into the locker rooms like you didn't even exist, the trademark scent of his perfume the only thing lingering behind.Â
âY/n where are you lost?âÂ
You shook your head. âI was just thinking about how the bath house would've been more efficient if the showers were attached to the locker room so we didn't have to walk so far in a towel to change.âÂ
Joshua looked at you like he didn't understand a word you were saying. Or why you were saying it.Â
âIt's justâŚ. I'm just being an architect, don't bother.â You shook your head then the paper. âThank you for this.â
âNo worries.â He smiled sweetly, getting up, leaving you to your breakfast. âI see your first lesson is History of the Gods. Unfortunately I think Chan is busy with some delivery in the evening so, it'll be just you and Jihoon. I hope you'll attend the lesson earnestly.â
You nodded, giving him a hard smile.Â
How were you supposed to last 2 hours with a man who read you like an open book?Â

The darkness behind your closed eyelids was supposed to be comforting. That's why you were lounging in your chair, half asleep while waiting for Jihoon to show up. But somehow, it felt like you were being watched and sure enough when you opened your eyes, the face of your instructor of the day was inches away from you.
âJesus Christ JihoonâŚâ You sat up scrambling, pulling yourself away from him. âWhy didnât you say something?â
âYou're tired.â He tucked his hands in his pockets walking back. âI was wondering if I should let you rest-âÂ
âI'm fine.âÂ
â-but it's strange considering you skipped training and slept all morning, yet you're incredibly sleep deprived.â Leaning back against the table he looked at you amused. âWhat might have happened last night that exhausted you so?âÂ
Words refused to leave your mouth considering you didn't know if he was teasing you or actually concerned. Given the last few days you assumed it was the former and ignored him as you began closing all the books you had strewn on the table before you.Â
âI see you're doing pre reading.â
âChan gave these to me before he left for work. He said I should read to understand better.âÂ
âDid you?âÂ
Of course you didn't. You were almost snoring away and Jihoon saw that, yet he asked the question like he wanted you to feel embarrassed about the answer.Â
âI thought you were supposed to teach me.â You shut the last book and glared at him. âIf you just expect me to just read off a book, I donât see why youâre required here.âÂ
âAre you suggesting I leave my own class?â He raised his eyebrow amused. âIâm going to have to disappoint you but unlike some, I take what Iâm told at camp seriously.âÂ
You glared at him like you were contemplating throwing the book straight at him and you almost did when he walked around the table, sat down on the chair and cocked his head at you.Â
âFor someone who is the daughter of Hestia, hospitality isn't really your trait is it? Â
âHow would I know, arenât you supposed to be teaching me about this God stuff?âÂ
âI am.â He nodded, crossing his arms. âBut it depends on how much the mortal world has already taught you.âÂ
âIâve never really bothered myself with Greek mythology.â You rolled your eyes. âTheyâre just stories for bored children.âÂ
âExcept they arenât. They are your reality.âÂ
âNot by choice.â You mumbled. You did not wish to be an outcast in the only world you knew and thrown here. You did not wish for any of this.Â
âParentage is no oneâs choice.â Jihoon sighed. âBut to be a demigod is a gift. Itâs a shame that you disregard your power.âÂ
âWhat power?â You scoffed. âI donât have anyâŚ.â Trailing off you gulped.Â
That was a lie.Â
âI am the Son of Apollo which means I was there at the Court of Delphi when the Oracle assigned you.â Jihoon reminded you of the fateful night.
The night when a couple of masked men had forcibly picked you from your dorm, throwing you into a large room of unknown people and a round crystal in the middle on an altar. No sooner than you took a scared, confused step forward it spoke - Daughter of Hestia, Camp Seventeen.Â
âThe Oracle only recognises those who have God's blood. So if youâre telling me you donât have any powers and this is all a mistake, you must think Iâm an idiot.âÂ
âIf youâre so smart-â You narrowed your eyes at him. â-why donât you do that mind reading thing you do and figure out what my powers are?â
âI canât read minds Y/n,â Jihoon looked at you quizzically. âIâm not Athenaâs progeny.âÂ
âY-you canât? But all these daysâŚ..â You blinked at him confused. âOh my god, can Jeonghan??âÂ
He shook his head. âNeither can Jeonghan. Not all of Athenaâs children are mind readers. Iâve only ever come across one in my life and if she wasnât busy shuffling through everyoneâs brain in the quest, perhaps she wouldnât have been killed.âÂ
You opened your mouth and then shut it, unsure which of the hundred questions in your mind to ask first.Â
âIf you really must know, my father is the God of Medicine which makes me a natural healer.â He leaned back with a small smile. âI donât read peopleâs minds but their bodies. I can tell when one is sick, or hungryâŚ.or even horny.âÂ
You gulped, feeling your heartbeat raise. Could he tell that too?Â
âIt goes without saying that a demigod's powers are associated with their parentage. So as the daughter of the Goddess of Hearth and Home, Iâm assuming you have some sort of bond with fire.âÂ
Tightening your fists, you refused to meet his eye.Â
It made sense why you never told anyone in the human world about your ability to create fire out of thin air but somehow you couldnât bring yourself to tell anyone in the demi-world either.Â
You had seen the powers the boys had - Seokmin was the son of Posiedon, God of the Sea, but he couldnât create water, only bend it. And Mingyu? His father was the literal God of Fire and even he was only immune to flames.Â
But you, birthing fire from thin air? Something told you that even in the world of demigods, the world where you belonged, you were a freak.
âOr maybe Iâm an architect because of you know, the âhomeâ bit.âÂ
âI donât think so. Your college preference is pretty much just a personal interest.âÂ
âThen I guess I donât have any powers.â You shrugged. âMaybe the Oracle made a mistake.âÂ
âThe Oracle isnât human. It never makes mistakes.âÂ
âThen maybe my powers are too insignificant for us to care. I mean think about it - what can the daughter of such a goddess have to offer? I most definitely donât have anything of value.âÂ
Jihoon stared at you like he had too many thoughts.Â
âDo you know the life cycle of a demigod?âÂ
You shook your head confused about where he was going with this.
âNot everyone born half breed inherits powers and even if they do, it is dormant until puberty. At the ages of 16 to 18, demigods are at their highest energies which gives them an aura that makes them instantly identifiable - the stronger their abilities, the stronger the aura. After they are picked either by their parents or our scout force, theyâre taken to the Oracle who puts them in camp where they will be best suited to train and learn to harness their powers. If a demigod isnât placed in camp by 18, you best believe that they are dead.âÂ
âHuh?â You blinked. âWhy is that?âÂ
âBecause either the inability to handle their own powers will kill them or in rare cases, monsters.âÂ
âM-monsters?âÂ
âThereâs always good and bad in the world. Where you have gods, you have monsters too.â Jihoon opened one of the books to a page filled with sketches of the most gruesome creatures youâd ever seen. âMost of our predecessors have already locked up many of these in the Underworld but there are still some out there, lurking around. If they sense an aura and you arenât trained for combat, you donât stand a chance.âÂ
âSo you think because Iâve managed to survive the last seven years, on my own and untrained, I am powerful?â You frowned. âDid you consider the fact that perhaps my aura was so weak no one could detect me?âÂ
âI did. That was my first assumption till the Oracle.â He leaned onto the table. âEven Gods have to touch the orb for a reading but your mere presence lit her up Y/n. Your aura isnât weak, itâs different and my guess is it has something to do with being Hestia's daughter.âÂ
You hummed, trying to make sense of things. âWell, did the same thing happen with her other children?âÂ
Jihoon shook his head. âWe donât know. Unfortunately for us, there are no other known children of Hestia - you are the first ever.âÂ
You stared at him, letting the weight of his words sink in.Â
âIâm her only child?âÂ
Jihoon nodded slowly.Â
If that were true, the whole of last week made no sense. Ever since you had discovered the temple, you had been trying to reach out to your mother every other hour. You assumed she might have been busy or probably had too many places to be to tend to you, but to learn that you were her only progeny and she still didnât care hurt differently.Â
Scoffing sadly you shook your head. âWhat kind of mother doesnât care about her only child?âÂ
âOne who is not proud of her momentary lapse of judgement.âÂ
âWhat do you mean?âÂ
Jihoon sighed. âHestia is one of the three virgin goddesses, along with Artemis and Athena. Sheâs not supposed to have any offspring, much less one with a human. If anything, you are a walking talking symbol of her weakness.âÂ
âI am her child-âÂ
âIn theory.â Jihoon emphasised. âBut in reality, youâre merely a fragment of her.âÂ
âI donât understand.âÂ
âHumans and Gods donât mix Y/n. Hell, even humans and demigods canât.âÂ
âIâm aware.âÂ
Jihoon took a pause before he narrowed his eyes at you playfully. âWhy and how are you aware of that?âÂ
âIrrelevant.â You brushed off. âBut if what youâre saying is true, how can demigods even come to be?âÂ
âBecause itâs not unlike even the Gods to succumb to lust. At any time they feel particularly attracted to a human they enchant their partners.â When you frowned like you didnât understand, he sighed and continued. âEnchantment is what we call the process of godsâŚto crudely put it, possessing people. Taking over their bodies, controlling them.âÂ
Your jaw dropped.Â
âYou mean they possess one person to have sex with another???âÂ
âWell, sometimes itâs just sex but sometimes it is love. They stay on Earth for years together till the lesser gods arenât able to handle things and they are forced to go back.â Jihoon got up, pacing around the room. âDemigods are born to two human parents who are completely unaware about what happened with them and what their child actually is.âÂ
âWowâ You breathed out dumbfounded. âYou mean to say I have two parents in the Mortal world and one sitting in Olympus-â Jihoon nodded. â-and neither of them care about me?âÂ
Jihoon looked at you like you had given him more information than he asked for.Â
âI canât speak for your mortal parents but as far as Gods are concerned, they donât really care about their half human childrenâŚâŚ unless they are powerful.â He locked his arms behind his back. âDemigods train for years to become worthy of their parents' attention.âÂ
âSo being a demigod isnât really a gift after all.âÂ
Sighing, Jihoon sat down beside you. âYou canât allow yourself to be governed by emotions Y/n. You are the result of a Godâs lack of resistance to impulses - those who sit in Olympus have their own flaws. If you run your whole life seeking their validation, you will keep running. They will keep you running.âÂ
âWhat do I do then?â You blinked at him lost. âI think I have more than one question I want to ask the woman because of whom my life is a mess. How do I get her to notice me?âÂ
âPlay it smart. First, learn about our world and the things that shape it. Understand how Olympus works - what the God's weaknesses are, what ticks them off, what will bring them on your side.â He turned to you. âIf you play your cards right, trust me, your mother will come looking for you in no time.â
Letting out a deep breath, you whispered hesitantly. âWill you teach me how?âÂ
Smiling in a way that made your stomach turn a lot differently than it used to for Jihoon before, he nodded. âI'd love to.âÂ

You didnât even realise when your supposed two hour session with Jihoon dragged on till after the sun had set.Â
By the end of it, you had a book full of notes stuffed in your backpack and a head full of information that your instructor had filled. As you stepped out of the library building, Jihoon offered to walk you back to Seungcheolâs house given it was nightfall and as much as you wanted to continue talking to him, you politely refused. You werenât ready to face that man just yet but just as you began walking towards the Great Hall to grab a snack or two, your eyes fell on Jeonghan and Seungcheol whispering away near the trees.Â
As you skidded to a stop in your path, they turned towards you, both surprised and relieved by your presence. When you noticed Jeonghan nudge Seungcheol making him take a step towards you, you immediately walked back, knocking into someone behind you, earning a shriek.Â
âWatch it rookie.â Seungkwan muttered as you apologised under your breath. From the corner of your eye, you noticed a couple of the guys standing fully dressed like they were headed out to a party.Â
âY/n.â Seungcheol took another step, trying to get your attention again. âWe need to talk-âÂ
âI canât,â You walked over to the boys, placing yourself right in the middle of the group. âIâm going out tonight.âÂ
âDressed like that?â Seungcheol raised his eyebrows, looking up to down at a really old t-shirt you had donned over a pair of worn out shorts.Â
âFunny that a man who pairs socks with sandals is judging me about my outfit.âÂ
Behind you the boys snickered, glancing down at Seungcheolâs feet.Â
âThatâs not my point-âÂ
âCan you drop my bag in my room?â You looked over the leaderâs shoulder at his sidekick. âSince you love roaming around that house anyways.âÂ
Jeonghan caught the bag you threw to him, sighing as he swung it over his shoulder.Â
âWell, that would make a total of eight of us..âŚâ Seokmin looked around, doing a headcount. âDinoâs car can take us all but it will be a bit congested-âÂ
âI can take my bike.â Mingyu offered, running his hands through his hair. âItâll be more convenient for you guys and-âÂ
âCan I ride with you?â You turned to Mingyu, looking at him just a little pleadingly.Â
Even though you were on the way to a party, you werenât in the mood to be stuffed in a small car with a bunch of guys right now - all you wanted was some air and space away from Seungcheol.Â
Shooting you a small smirk, Mingyu nodded, just in time for his mechanical bull to jog over, modifying into a slick bike the moment it neared him. As he got on, you followed him, gripping his shoulders as you clambered on.Â
âHold tight.âÂ
Wrapping your arms around his waist, you glanced at the two boys left behind - Seungcheolâs jaw was tight and Jeonghan looked mildly curious, eyes darting where your body pressed up against Mingyuâs back. You could tell the normally cocky Mingyu did seem slightly tense under your touch, perhaps because you were not wearing a bra and he could feel everything very clearly.Â
âShall we?â He muttered, turning on the engine.Â
Sighing, you nodded, a part of you well aware that tonight was most definitely going to be a long night.Â
âLetâs go.âÂ

âIâve been to funerals better than this.âÂ
You muttered to Seokmin about fifteen minutes after reaching the house that the boys had brought you to for the night. Your expectation had been that of a frat party, one with pizzas and chips and dip and booze instead you were looking at a living room filled with pink balloons, rose gold streamers and french appetisers.Â
âWait till Soonyoungâs alcohol goes around.â Seokmin half giggled, grabbing a canape from the table. âThings always get so much fun after that.âÂ
You watched the man in question pulling out some bottles from his pockets, handing them over to some boys at the corner of the room.Â
The moment Chanâs car had stopped at the location, all the boys had practically disappeared. Seungkwan headed over to a bunch of people Mingyu said were some of his very close friends. No sooner than he said that, he too disappeared as did Chan, Soonyoung and Mingao. The only ones who remained by your side were Seokmin and Joshua but just as you stepped into the house, a couple of girls pulled Joshua away, leaving you with your current company.Â
âWhy do I feel like something about Soonyoungâs alcohol is sketchy?âÂ
âMaybe because itâs an illegal blend?â Seokmin shrugged before realising what he had let slip. âYou cannot tell anyone. Everyone in camp will kill him and Soonyoung will resurrect and kill me.âÂ
Laughing you shook your head, grabbing a cracker and topping it with brie, stomach rumbling due to the lack of dinner.Â
âYou donât have to keep me company Seokmin.â You turned to the man who was sweet enough to stay by your side. âI donât wanna ruin your night.âÂ
âItâs no big deal.â He muttered, putting himself between you and a drunk guy leaning over you to grab a drink from the table. âI know you donât know anyone here-âÂ
âIâm not looking to socialise anyways.â You confessed, piling a bunch of stuff on your plate. âIâm just going to sit outside and grab a bite in, hopefully, some peace and quiet.âÂ
âOh.â Seokmin looked a little upset, like he wanted to hang out with you but before you could tell him that you didnât mind his company, Mingyu popped by out of nowhere, pulling his friend by the elbow and dragging him away excitedly. Chuckling, you got back to piling your plate.Â
âYou worked up an appetite.âÂ
You turned to see Soonyoung hovering behind you, hands tucked in his pocket.Â
âYeahâŚ.â You shoved a spoonful of cold but nevertheless tasty pasta salad into your mouth. âApparently spending three hours learning about Greek gods can really drain you.âÂ
âJihoon can be a bit intense with teaching.â Soonyoung laughed, nonchalantly wiping the cream at the edge of your lips with his thumb. âThe trick is to remind him about his workout. He'll drop everything and run.âÂ
âHuh.â You laughed uncertainly before struggling to swallow your bite and turning to him. He stared at you stuffing your mouth with an expression you couldnât quite read.Â
âSoonyoung weâŚ. â You swallowed. âWe didn't get to talk about last night.â
âOh.â Soonyoung blinked. âWhat about it?â
About what he said. About if you heard it right. About if he meant it.Â
âAbout if whatever happened wasâŚ. of any use with Mina?â You diverted like a coward.
âI uh haven't spoken to her yet.â Soonyoung confessed, scratching the back of his head. âSurprisingly I haven't returned any of her calls.â
âWhy is that?âÂ
âI don't know.â He looked at you intently. âI don't feel like doing it.â
âIs thereâŚâ You whispered softly, wondering if you should even be asking this. If you were ready for his answer. â....something else you feel like doing?â
Soonyoung nodded, his tongue running across his lower lip, his eyes darting to your mouth. Just as it seemed like he leaned in, out of nowhere, the most beautiful girl you had ever seen, threw her arms around Soonyoung's neck, pulling his mouth to hers instead.Â
âHoshi.â She mumbled against his lips, pressing her body up against him not so subtly.Â
You weren't sure why exactly you were continuing to watch the two people before you shoving their tongues into each other's mouth but perhaps that's how shock worked. Though you didn't have the intention of continuing anything at all with Soonyoung, something about being interrupted this way stung differently.Â
By the time they had separated, you had chugged an entire can of beer, crushing the metal in your hand.
âAnd who might this be?â She looked at you, pushing her hair back.Â
âShe's the new member of camp seventeen Y/n,â He pointed between the two of you, âY/n, this is Mina, my uhâŚ.â
âGirlfriend.â She smiled, with an unbelievably perfect set of teeth. âSo the rumours are true. The infamous all-boys-celibate camp finally has a female presence. Tell me,â Her eyes glowed. âHave you gotten your eyes on any of them? Or even better,â She lowered her voice. âHave you gotten your hands on any of them already?â
You looked at Soonyoung, utterly uncomfortable.Â
âMina, you canât ask such things-â
âWhy not? It'll be between just us girls-âÂ
âPlease.â He pulled her back. âLast I saw you, we broke up and now you just waltz back and-âÂ
âI know, I know. We never should have broken up in the first place. That whole fight was stupid.â She pouted, wrapping her arms around him tighter. âForget about it Soonyoung-âÂ
âForget about it?â His expression was of disbelief. âSo you don't have anything to say to me?âÂ
She looked away, pretending like she was thinking before turning back to him with a smirk. âYes, I do. I didn't wear any underwear today.âÂ
Inwardly groaning you stared at the design of the tile hoping the ground would just swallow you instead. You wanted to get the fuck out of here since this conversation was of no interest to you but moving was impossible with both their intertwined figures blocking the way.Â
âCome on Soonyoung, it's been so long and I'm in the mood tonight. The bedrooms on the second floor wonât be free for long.âÂ
Soonyoungâs adam's apple shifted, his words stuck somewhere there as Mina held him by the wrist and began leading him away. As he was dragged off, you expected him to turn and shoot you a grateful look, instead, he looked at you wistfully.Â

Your plan was simple - stuff your face with all the incredibly bougie food, catch some air in the patio away from all the noise and then leave with the boys whenever they were ready to go. Instead here you were, your plate somewhere unattended while you were gripping the edge of the sink, leaning over it, chest heaving as you stared into the mirror.Â
Now you knew you werenât supposed to be hogging the washroom for this long but you couldnât bear to go out. One, you didnât want to see Soonyoung and his girlfriend again - especially if she was going to be all over him like a leech because something about that sight made your stomach turn violently. And two, you were somehow, for no reason at all, incredibly wet.
Perhaps it was because suddenly, everyone in the party was quite literally all over each other, or because you were thinking about what happened in Soonyoungâs residence this time yesterday, or because you were just plain desperate to have something, anything inside you.Â
Last night awakened something in you that you didnât know existed and now nothing seemed to satiate the beast. Chiding yourself for being out here when you could have been in your own room, having your way with Soonyoungâs toy or your own fingers maybe, you gripped the sink tighter, feeling your heart rate rise unprompted. It was getting harder and harder to stay modest.Â
The only thing that stopped you from putting your hand down your pants in a house full of sixty people on the other side of the door, was the knock on it.Â
âWhat part of I am throwing up in here do you not- Oh!â You gasped, walking back as the door flung open and in stepped a slightly inebriated Chan. âWhat are you doing!?âÂ
âYou wonât open the doorâŚ.â He slurred. âItâs been so long, Seokmin was worried.âÂ
âHow the hell did you open three locksâŚ.â You stared at the door as he slowly shut it behind him.Â
âMy father is the God of thieves. Are you really surprised that I can open any lock and any door?âÂ
âI guess not.â You muttered, sitting down on the edge of the bathtub. âBut you didnât need to, I was going to come out-âÂ
âYouâve been in here for over 20 minutes.â Chan crossed his arms, leaning against the wall. âI thought you passed out or something.âÂ
âI wish.â
Passing out would be much better than whatever was going on between your legs.Â
âYou donât look like youâre enjoying the party.âÂ
âIâm not. Iâm just waiting for us to head back.âÂ
âThen why ask to tag along?â He raised his eyebrow. âDoes it have anything to do with the hostility between you and Seungcheol?âÂ
âSo you noticed.âÂ
âI think everyone did.â Chan chuckled. âDo you want to tell me why or should I guess?âÂ
âShoot your shot.âÂ
Chan shrugged all knowingly, âHe rejected you.âÂ
You looked up at the boy before you so fast, you nearly fell back thanks to the inertia.Â
âW-what makes you think that?â
âSons of Zeus and Daughters of Aphrodite have a natural tendency to attract the opposite sex.â He stated like it was obvious. âSeungcheol has women swooning over him like they're in some sort of trance. He doesn't really care for them because he knows it's a mere chemical attraction thanks to his dad. Instead he just ignores them or if things get unbearable, he breaks their hearts so they snap out of it.âÂ
You knew Chan had to be quite tipsy to so bluntly place you in the list of women Seungcheol had rejected. It wasn't like that was it? Yesterday in the rain, he had hinted his feelings for you, he almost kissed you butâŚ.. what about what you were feeling? Was this irresistible attraction you felt towards him nothing but chemical?Â
Considering how you had been feeling since Mina wrapped herself all over SoonyoungâŚ. You wouldn't have felt that if your heart was set out on Seungcheol right?Â
Then againâŚ.. it was Seungcheolâs name that left your mouth as you orgasmed yesterday.Â
Staring at the floor you shook your head slightly. You could not think about last night again, not with how soaked you already were at the moment.Â
âHey,â Chan inched closer, putting his finger under your chin, lifting your face to meet your eyes. He did not however notice the way you pressed your thighs together at his touch. His eyes skimmed over the features of your face, a slight amused smile forming on his face. âYouâre flushedâŚ. Did you have any of Soonyoungâs alcohol?âÂ
You shook your head but were unable to shake his fingers from your face. âHis blend is not my drink of choice.âÂ
âOh gods, please donât tell me you had any beer.âÂ
âI think I had two cansâŚâŚ or maybe four?â You frowned. âI can't remember but I'm not drunk! Beer barely makes me-âÂ
âY/n,â Sighing, Chan finally let you go. âParty rule number one, you never drink alcohol at an Aphrodite rager.âÂ
âWhy not?âÂ
âBecause Aphroditeâs children are a bunch of troublemakers. Donât let their gorgeous faces fool you.â He brushed the hair off your face. âYou must think people like Joshua are the finest to walk the Earth, but donât judge a man without knowing his stories.âÂ
Joshua? You frowned. How could he be anything but a sweetheart? Soonyoungâs girlfriend maybe was an obnoxious toad but not Joshua. He was flawless.Â
âYou might as well have drank Soonyoungâs disgusting blend.â Chan muttered. âWhy do you think his alcohol sells so well at these parties?âÂ
âBecause his annoyingly beautiful girlfriend is a daughter of Aphrodite?âÂ
âYes, but also because only the insane drink the booze served at an Aphrodite party. She may be the goddess of Love but sheâs also the goddess of Sex and more importantly, her children are addicted to it.â Chan looked at you just a little worried. âThose drinks are their special concoctions of aphrodisiacs.âÂ
âA-aphrodisiacs???âÂ
âAphrodite, aphrodisiacs - not far off huh?â He shrugged. âIâm not sure if it hit you yet - do you feel anything?âÂ
âNoâŚ.â You shook your head.Â
The correct answer was hell yes. Everything going on with you suddenly made sense but you couldn't tell Chan that, not him.Â
âAre you not feeling unnaturally hot?â He looked at you concerned as he sat down beside you, his body unwittingly brushing against yours. âDoesn't the tiniest bit of proximity rile you up?âÂ
You didnât answer him. You didn't need him to know just how much even his presence was affecting you thanks to those stupid sex potions.
âI should tell you beforehand, when it hits, itâs going to be intense but the longer you resist it, the stronger it gets.â You turned to him, only just realising how close his face was to yours. âThe only chance you have of getting out of itâŚ. is to give in.âÂ
Gulping you stared at him. The boy who was always bright, laughing around and cracking jokes like he was an old man was looking at you with unusually darkened eyes, his thighs pressed against yours, your hand inches away from him.Â
The only chance you have of getting it out is to give in.
âChan do you thinkâŚ.â You gulped. â...you can guard the door for a while?â
Perhaps if it were anyone but Lee Chan you would have climbed them by now. Because he was right - the more you tried to control yourself, the more you felt yourself slipping. But not with Chan, definitely not with him. He was far too sweet and innocent to be dragged into whatever mess was going on with you.Â
âI might uh need a few minutes alone here.â You mumbled.Â
Chan blinked like he didn't understand but when you looked away, wiping the sweat trickling down your neck in a pretty cold room, he seemed like he got it.Â
âOh y-yeah sure.â He got up quickly, not looking at you. âI'll be right outside.â
And with that he scurried out, closing the door behind him.Â
The moment he disappeared you smacked your head - you didn't particularly enjoy beer anyways, why did you have to drink it tonight? If you were being honest, it was because of Soonyoung and his irritatingly gorgeous girlfriend and their unnecessary antics right in front of you face-Â
No.Â
No no no.Â
You couldn't be spiralling with these thoughts again. Chan said the longer you resisted, it was going to get worse so you were going to do whatever it took to get this feeling out of your system.Â
As you unbuttoned your shorts, you got up and leaned against the sink to avoid seeing your face in the mirror, barely able to meet your own eyes given what you were about to do. Pushing your embarrassment aside considering the need of the hour, you slid your hand past the material of your underwear, fingers feeling exactly how drenched you were.Â
âFucking hell.â You muttered. How was it possible that you were this wet absolutely unprompted and for no reason at all? What the hell was in those concoctions??Â
You thought you could just get off with your own fingers but given how easily they were sliding past your hole there was no way you could do this on your own, especially not here. Annoyed, you pulled your hand out and turned, washing it under the running water, sighing at your reflection in the mirror. Chan was right, you were incredibly flushed, your pupils were blown and the sheen of sweat was very evident - oh it was definitely getting worse.Â
Maybe you could go find Mingyu and convince him to give you a ride back to camp. If you could get your hands on Soonyoungâs toy again, you could help yourself out of this. That was perhaps the best thing to do right now.Â
Adjusting your hair and your clothes, you gave yourself a determined nod and opened the door, expecting to see Chan but finding someone else entirely guarding the door.
âM-Minghao.â You stuttered as he looked over his shoulder, eyes finding you.
âParty rule number two, never trust Lee Chan to do anything in a party with alcohol.âÂ
You should have known - he might be your age but Chan was like an overexcited child. And did Minghao just say rule number two? Did that mean he was awareâŚ.
âYouâre still very aroused.â He smirked as you felt your cheeks heat with embarrassment. âIâm guessing whatever you were trying to do in there didnât work out.âÂ
You groaned. âI canât believe Chan told you-âÂ
âHe didnât.â Minghao shook his head amused. You watched as he ran his eyes from your face down. âHe didnât have to, itâs pretty evident.âÂ
âI just need to get home and Iâll be fine-âÂ
âI donât think so.â He dropped his voice, his wide frame covering anyone from seeing you. âOn the contrary, you might quite literally pounce on the first guy you see-âÂ
âYouâre the first guy.âÂ
Minghaoâs eyes darkened as he looked at you wordlessly. Strangely, you felt something shift inside you too - oh god he was right.
âHow much longer-â
âThereâs bedrooms upstairs you know-âÂ
âAre you guys done-â Â
âNo.â Minghao shook his head, silencing the voices behind him as he slid his bracelet off his wrist and hooked it to the door handle, eyes not leaving you even once. âGet in.âÂ
Surprisingly you obeyed, taking a step back, allowing him to enter as he closed the door behind him much to the disappointment of the many queueing outside.Â
âY/n,â How was his voice so much deeper suddenly? âThis is the exact kind of trouble the Aphrodite children are looking for. They want the drama that comes from the inability to control oneself, youâre better than that.âÂ
âWhat do you want me to do?â You groaned. âBefore you shoved me back in here, I was trying to leave and get back to camp so I can deal with it myself-âÂ
âThe art of war lies in self control.â He slid his arms in his pockets, looking at you just like he did every morning on the training field. âAs a demigod, you are at your best when you learn how to control yourself. People misunderstand how this aphrodisiac works - you don't have to give in, it does wear off after a point. Most just don't happen to be able to control themselves till then.â
âWears off at what point because Minghao, it's been barely 20 minutes since Iâve had those drinks and Iâm barely able to get a hold of myself.âÂ
âWhich is precisely why leaving right now is a horrible idea - you donât have a hold over yourself.â He let out a deep breath. âWe can fix it. We can stay here for however long you need and you can let this pass. Consider it a lesson in your training.âÂ
âWeâre training in the middle of a party?âÂ
âAs warriors weâre always training.â He walked past you, sitting on the edge of the bathtub like you had been just a while ago, looking annoyingly relaxed. âDo you think I enjoy these all-pink, snooty french parties? I come here just for the drinks.âÂ
Your jaw dropped. âY-you had the beer too?âÂ
Minghao nodded.Â
âOn purpose? After knowing what they do?âÂ
He nodded again.
âWhy in the world would you do that?âÂ
âTo practise self control.â He stated like it was obvious.
âBy drugging yourself?âÂ
âA good warrior is one who doesnât allow himself to be governed by any kind of emotion - lust is usually the hardest to control.âÂ
âSo that concoction has no effect on you?âÂ
âIt's starting to hit.â Minghao looked at you intently as your eyes flickered down to his pants, noticing the bulge. âBut I'm not the kind to give in.âÂ
âWell I think I'm the kind to.â You muttered, throat going dry as you peeled your eyes away. Minghao didn't. âI don't know how to explain it.â You shut your eyes tight, embarrassed of the words leaving you but you knew he might be the only person who understood where you were at. âbut I have this feeling like I'm being clawed on the inside, like if I don't have anything in me right this second, I might just lose my mind.â
âI get it.â Your eyes flew open to find him standing right in front of you, his face inches away. âI feel like I'm on the edge of my sanity too but you can fight it.âÂ
Gulping you looked at the way his lips moved, the vein of his neck stark as was his collarbone peeking from under his shirt. Before this, you hadnât actually noticed just how handsome Minghao was.Â
âl can't.â You whispered, running your eyes over his features. âCanâŚcan you help me?âÂ
Leaning closer, his gaze hardened. You could see there were thoughts running in that head of his - the warrior was engaged in a battle with himself.Â
âMinghao please.â
Grabbing your waist, he spun you around swiftly, trapping you between his hands and the sink, meeting your eyes in the reflection of the mirror.Â
âHelp you how?âÂ
You looked at how his mouth was right by your ear and his frame so wide behind you that he was engulfing you merely with his presence. On one hand there were his arms, veins running up them as he gripped the edge of the sink and on the other was the fact that if you just took one step back, you knew you would feel his length pressed against you - both of which were making things exponentially worse.Â
âTell me how you want me to help Y/n.â He muttered, his breath soft against your ear.
âI⌠you know how-âÂ
âI was helping. I was telling you what to do-â
âCan't you do something instead?â Knowing exactly what you were doing, you took a small step back, pressing your back against his chest and your ass against his length. âDidn't you say it hit you too?âÂ
You thought it was a fair enough proposition. Both of you had taken the drink so it was easy to put the blame on it for anything that might potentially happen.
âBut I don't need any help.â He shook his head adamantly. âIf I help you, what's in it for me?âÂ
âI'll owe you one.â You sighed. âWhenever, wherever, please MinghaoâŚ.â
âRemember those words.â He whispered, his hand snaking around your waist to unbutton your shorts, fingers lingering over your skin.Â
âW-wait.â You gasped. Though this was exactly what you were expecting when you asked for his help, as it blended into reality, you felt an uncertainty kick in. âW-what if someone opens the door-â
âA door that has the bracelet of Ares on it?â Minghao's reflection raised his eyes amused. âThey'd be crazy to.âÂ
âb-but what ifâŚ. I'm too loud or something. Wouldn't we be in trouble?â
âY/n.â His hand drew back just a little. âAre you sure you want me toâŚ.âÂ
âYes.â You shut your eyes mortified that just the feeling of him withdrawing his touch was physically painful. âYes please âŚâÂ
Almost instantly Minghao obeyed, his hand snaking past the material of your shorts, just the thin layer of your underwear keeping his fingers away from you.Â
âOh you poor thing, you're drenched.â
You nodded as his hand pushed aside your panties, running his digits along your folds, smearing your arousal everywhere, a fingertip prodding your hole ever so slightly.Â
âI'm not sure two fingers are enough for you.â He muttered, groaning. âYou really want a dick inside don't you?âÂ
âSo bad.â You whispered back. âI wouldn't even mind two of them in me right now-âÂ
You felt your words die in your throat as Minghao chuckled, slipping his fingers into your wet hole. âLet's start with two of these first.âÂ
A soft moan left you as you agreed, hands gripping the edge tighter as his digits simply stayed inside you.Â
âLook at you.â He muttered in your ear. âOpen your eyes and look at yourself.âÂ
Hesitating you obeyed, catching sight of the two of you in the mirror as his free hand wrapped around your waist, holding you in place against him. Something about the way your small frame fit against his wider one wasâŚ.nice.Â
You wanted to ask him to move his fingers, to give you something but before you said it, he slowly began pumping his digits in and out, burying his face in the dip of your neck. As his mouth brushed your skin, you felt yourself tense around his fingers.Â
âSo tight. â He mumbled. âOh you'd be such a delight to fuck.âÂ
âThen fuck me.â You moaned as his fingers picked up speed.Â
âTempting.â His voice left him like a low growl as his teeth grazed your skin. âBut I'm a man of principles.âÂ
âAre you sure?â Reaching for the hand on your waist, you led it up your torso under your shirt, guiding him to your tits. Â
âNo bra?â He half groaned, squeezing it. âWhat a doll.â
âDon't you want to fuck me?â Moaning you tried to push your ass further against his rock hard self. âUse me and we can both be free of this-âÂ
âDon't be greedy Y/n.â Contrary to his words, he let a third finger join his act. âTake what I'm giving you.âÂ
Feeling a lot more full now, you felt your jaw slacken and no words left as both his hands took turns to harshly pump and squeeze, his mouth along your shoulder and neck, leaving painful, stinging marks of red.Â
âFaster.â You panted as his tongue ran along your skin to soothe the burn and fingers obeyed, stretching you out just right. Minghao could tell it wasn't enough and his thumb darted to your clit, having you keen in his arms. The moment he curled his fingers up, met your eyes in the reflection and whispered, âcum for me doll.â, all that was building inside you instantly snapped, your orgasm washing over you in waves.Â
Thank god he held you up against him because as you pressed your legs, riding out your climax, they began trembling. When your sight became clear and you came around, Minghao slowly let you go but whatever fire was burning inside you was not satiated.Â
Fucking hell.Â
âYou need more?â Minghao chuckled as he took a step back and you turned to him, eyes still hooded with lust.Â
âPerhaps just anotherâŚâ You ran your hand down his chest, unzipping his hoodie, revealing his black tank top. âFinish off the favour.âÂ
âI donât think so.â He shook his head. âAs your campmate I did help. But now as your trainer, I'm going to let you get over the rest on your own.âÂ
âMinghaoâŚ.â You groaned. If he was going to leave you halfway, he might as well not have done anything. Now you were, in fact, much more turned that you didn't think his fingers could even do the job anymoreâŚ..you needed the whole package.Â
But like he said, Minghao was a man of principles, he wouldn't give inâŚ. unless you could tempt him enough?Â
Humming you looked around. The four walls of this bathroom did not seem like the right place to try and entice him but thankfully, you remembered Soonyoungâs girlfriend mentioning the bedrooms upstairs.Â
âFine.â You agreed, adjusting your clothes and buttoning up while Minghao washed his hands. Perhaps if the two of you found yourself in the proximity of one of those rooms, you could get him to succumb.
As you pulled your hair into a ponytail, Minghao opened the door, holding it for you to leave first but being the girl you were, you wantonly brushed your hand against his erection, pretending your actions were innocent. He stared at you as you walked away from him, stopping only at the edge of the staircase to glance at him before heading up, hoping he was following.Â
Pushing through the crowd of people making out and feeling each other up in a way that was far from decent, you glanced down the corridor, slightly surprised. The house didnât seem so big from the outside but the corridor before you looked endless with dozens of rooms on either side. You walked past them, avoiding the ones with socks on the knobs, knocking on some to receive screams of âgo awayâ and âtakenâ and opening some unanswered doors to sights you wished you never saw. Half disturbed and half amused you continued to try and find an empty room when the sound of a particular something made you stop your tracks, eyes widening.Â
Your name.Â
Your name sounding like a strangled moan, repeated over and over, getting breathless with each word.
Gulping, you slowly pushed the door next to you open, both terrified and curious about what you were going to see because a part of you recognised that voice - it was one you heard on camp all the time.Â
Sure enough, before you was a large bed, Soonyoung sitting against the headboard, his pants pushed down his thighs and his dick in his fist, pumping it hard and fast. He didnât seem to notice your presence, his eyes screwed shut as your name continued to spill from his mouth. Of course this wasnât the first time you were seeing Soonyoung do this but something had most definitely changed since last time.Â
When you took a step ahead, letting the door close behind you, the click of it shutting was what finally got his attention, his eyes flying open. Catching sight of you he immediately swore loudly, tucking his length back into his pants, face turning a lot more red than it already was.Â
âGod woman, how long have you-âÂ
âLong enough to hear whose name you were saying.â You looked at him guiltily. âSoonyoung, you have a girlfriend-âÂ
âMina and I are not together.â He confessed, gulping.âShe wanted to but for the first time ever I refused toâŚ.âÂ
âWhy?â You whispered, terrified of the answer. Please, please, please. Kwon Soonyoung cannot be in love with you.Â
âFor the last ten years I thought no one could make me feel the way she did and thatâs why the two of us belong with each other butâŚ.â He sighed. âI learnt that thatâs not true.âÂ
You blinked at him as he looked at you softly.Â
âAnd you know why itâs not true.âÂ
âSoonyoung weâŚ.â You walked in, sitting on the edge of the bed. âWhat happened between us was just a favour, one friend to another. How can there be something between us-âÂ
âI know.â He nodded. âIâm not saying Iâm in love with you or something, IâŚ. I myself donât really know, all this is new to me too.âÂ
âBut what you were doing,â You tried not to glance at his pants where his erection was still very much evident. âThat seemed like-âÂ
âY/n Iâve only ever been with one woman my whole life who gave me a boner before I turned her down for good.â He couldnât look at you either. âWhat else could I really doâŚ..âÂ
A part of you understood him. You too were incredibly wound for a while now and you knew what it was like to try and fight it - you too had succumbed. In fact you were still not fully rid of the feeling and Soonyoung was right before you, just as aroused. Yesterday could be justified as an ignorant act whose consequences were not expected but if you went through with this today, there was no coming back from it. It wouldnât be rightâŚ..
.
.
.
But fuck it.Â
âYou didnât finish, did you?âÂ
Soonyoung shook his head slowly
Sighing, you kicked off your shoes and climbed on the bed on all fours, crawling towards him as he held his breath.Â
âThis is yet another favour.â You clarified, more to yourself than him, âJust so you can understand if it's me you want to fuck or just anyone who's not your girlfriend.âÂ
W-what?â He stuttered as your hand found the waistband of his pants. âWe're going toâŚ?âÂ
âWe don't have to if you don't want to-âÂ
âYes.â He breathed out, nodding fast. âGod yes I want to.âÂ
Smiling just a little, you pulled his pants down a bit, the way they were when you had entered. His erection sprung out, lying against his shirt, the tip pink and flushed. You were familiar with how it looked, but this was the most up close you had seen it and the first time you touched it as you wrapped your wrist around the base, earning a hiss from him.Â
âHow long have you been hard?âÂ
âOver 20 minutes.â He groaned. âEver since we spoke at the tableâŚ. your ass looked fucking good when you bent over the table.âÂ
âYeah?â You pumped his length slowly. âYou're not too bad yourself. Your abs are hot.â
Almost immediately, without needing to be told, Soonyoung pulled his sweatshirt over his head, tossing it on the floor.Â
âGood boy.â Tongue darting out, you licked the precum on his slit, looking up at his blown pupils. âYou taste good too.âÂ
âFuck y/n, I might just cum right now.âÂ
âIn my mouth?â You cooed. âNot inside me?â
Groaning Soonyoung threw his head back. Honestly, you had no idea how these words were even leaving you - you owed it to both the aphrodisiac coursing through you and also how submissive Soonyoung seemed in your hands. So reactive, so easy to please.Â
The moment you took his tip in your mouth, his hand gripped your ponytail, trying to push himself further in. Pulling back with a wet pop, you clicked your tongue.Â
âUh huh.â You shook your head. âIf we do this we do this my way.âÂ
âDo whatever the fuck you want.â He panted, his thighs twitching. âI'm all yours.âÂ
Although you had some thoughts about that statement you didn't voice them. One because you really wanted to suck him off and two because you heard a voice you knew most definitely wasn't Soonyoung.Â
âSo this is how you choose to tempt me.âÂ
Before you Soonyoung froze, eyes looking past you at the door where Minghao was standing. You could tell the man before you was both shocked and embarrassed and wanted to cover himself up but you didn't move to give him room for that.Â
âIf you're worried about your modesty Kwon, you should know I don't give a fuck.â Minghao leaned back against the door. âI'm only interested in what Y/n has to offer.âÂ
Soonyoung looked at you confused as you smiled just a little. Oh you managed to crack him and it didn't even take much.Â
âTell him my offer is still open.â You ran your tongue from his base up. âIf youâre okay with it too that is.âÂ
Soonyoungâs eyes widened, finally realising what was happening. You doubted that he wouldn't be okay with it - the man was quite literally falling apart in your hands.Â
Sure enough, he slowly nodded.
âFrom only one woman ever to this overnight?â Minghao raised his eyebrow. âYour girlfriend must've put you up to a really strong dose of those sex potions.âÂ
âI didn't drink a-any beer.â Soonyoung muttered as you ran your eyes over his face. He was the same as you - pupils widened, face flushed, breath fast and shallow.Â
Oh.Â
âYou're telling me that woman isn't capable of slipping in a little something to entice her boyfriend who won't crawl back to her like he always does?â Minghao chuckled. âBecause I think so.â
Well wasn't this ideal, now you could justify everything that was happening - it was simply three people succumbing to the effects of an aphrodisiac - nothing personal, nothing beyond anything physical. Except deep down you knew it must mean something if despite being drugged Soonyoung rejected his girlfriend because of you and Minghao who was a man of impeccable self control was crumbling for you.Â
Except he hadn't really yet.Â
Deciding to leave the thoughts for another time, you slightly looked over your shoulder at the man who was leaning against the wall.Â
âOnly my mouth is busy, I have two more free holes you know.âÂ
You could tell that something about the energy in the room had shifted the moment you said that, like it was only a matter of time before Minghao joined. Sure enough, you heard the lock of the door click behind you and from the way Soonyoung gulped and his eyes followed his teammate, you could tell Minghao had neared. Wrapping your mouth around the older man's tip again, you hummed at the weight of his dick on your tongue.Â
âF-fuck.â Soonyoung groaned under his breath.Â
As the bed dipped behind you, you knew Minghao had climbed in, finally succumbing, finally giving in. .Â
âIs that the best you got?â He chuckled with a deep voice, pushing your knees apart with his own and running his hand down along your back as Soonyoung stared at him wide eyed. âThat won't be enough for me.â
You could feel your mouth practically water, drool leaking down the corner of your lips as you took Soonyoung further in your mouth, earning a pained hiss. Minghao though was still not satisfied as he bent over, one hand unbuttoning your shorts, his breath at the shell of your ear, whispering.Â
âTake care of my friend and I'll take care of you.â You looked at Soonyoung to see his eyes flickering between the two of you. âThe louder he moans, the harder you'll get it.âÂ
Most definitely motivated, you sunk Soonyoungâs length deeper into your mouth, his tip touching the back of your throat, a deep groan leaving the man as his hand gripped your hair again to hold you back.Â
Minghao smacked it away with the shake of a head as he drew himself back, fingers hooking onto your waistband as he pulled down both your shorts and panties in one go, letting it pool at your bent knees.
You could feel your arousal drip down your legs given how incredibly wet you were. A part of you wanted to see Minghao's face but then you would have missed the sight of Soonyoung panting, looking down at you like the mere smell of you had awakened something wild in him. To make things a whole lot worse, Minghao ran his fingers up your slit, playing with your wetness before gathering it on his digit and holding it out to his friend.Â
âWant a taste?âÂ
âBold of you to assume this is my first time.â Soonyoung smirked as he sucked off Minghao's fingers and you grinned to yourself. Atta boy.Â
Minghao chuckled as he pulled his fingers away, smearing the wetness on the cheek of your ass, landing a smack that sent a sharp sting, making you moan around Soonyoung.Â
âBarely a week in camp and look at you.â He mimicked his actions on your other cheek, the impact jerking your forward, Soonyoungâs length slipping into your throat. âGood girl.âÂ
âSo fucking good.â Soonyoung moaned. âThat mouth is divine.â
âNot more than this.â Cupping the curve of your ass, Minghao dipped his finger into your quivering hole. You keened at the sensation, but didn't stop working on Soonyoung's dick - you knew if you gave Soonyoung what he needed, Minghao would give you what you wanted and god did you want to feel full of him. When you grinded against his hips, his hands left you and you finally heard the sound of Minghao's zipper despite the lewd noises leaving your mouth being much louder.Â
âFuck baby just like that.â Soonyoug groaned as you picked up the speed, making him feel more and more of your throat.Â
You still couldn't tell what Minghao was doing, the absence of his touch testing your patience, your teeth accidentally grazing Soonyoungâs dick making him hiss in pain.Â
Minghao chuckled, adjusting your body on each knee to pull out the clothes on your lower half and when he aligned himself behind you, you could tell he discarded his own too. His hands returned to your ass which you guessed was faint red, a colour that was exceedingly a part of Minghao's life, a colour he seemingly enjoyed. Although you did want him to rail you into tomorrow, you didn't mind if he took a moment to admire what he saw.Â
As though he was lost in thought about the same, Minghao dragged his dick along your folds, his length bumping your clit and sending a jolt down your nerves, before he aligned himself.
âW-waitâ Looking at his friend, Soonyoung let out a strangled cry. âShe hasn't been prepped-â
âOh Kwon.â You felt his tip pushing into your needy wet hole. âShe's already ready for me.âÂ
And with that he buried himself to the hilt, the suddenness making you choke around Soonyoungâs length much to the latter's surprise and delight. Barely giving you the time to get a hold of yourself, Minghao began thrusting into you, the force pushing your mouth to take more of Soonyoung, your hands painfully gripping his thighs. The older man, who could have been a little more considerate, also began ramming his dick into your mouth, barely allowing you to breathe.Â
You could feel yourself losing a grip on reality, one man fucking you onto another - you never thought you would ever find yourself in a situation like this but here you were, being wrecked on both ends by men who were strangers just a week ago but god did it feel good.Â
Minghao bunched the material of your shirt, pushing it up along your spine, as you pulled yourself away from Soonyoung, desperate to get some air before you passed out. He groaned at the loss of your warm mouth but his expression turned fond as you looked up at him, drool running down your chin messily. Considering you looked absolutely fucked out, you didn't get why he was so enamoured as he tucked your hair behind your ear.Â
âShit I could watch you all day sweetie.âÂ
You wanted to say something back but your throat felt too sore and bruised so you settled on just giving him a sweet smile. Minghao watched the interaction between the two of you intently, his movements slowing down to deep, hard strokes. You could feel him so far in, reaching spots no one ever had before. Not even Cheolâs dildo model.Â
âDo you need a breather?â
Soonyoung's concern laced voice was echoed by another one that sounded a lot more condescending. Â
âDo you?â
Though you had barely gotten any air in you for so long and your eyes were threatening to roll back, you knew Minghao would only allow you to cum if Soonyoung did and man did the latter have the stamina of a bull.Â
Shaking your head you spat in your hand and wrapped your fist around the base of his cock, stroking it.Â
âI'm tired.â You muttered. âFuck me Soonyoung.âÂ
Forgetting Minghaoâs previous instructions to not use his hands, Soonyoung obeyed, gripping your hair again, guiding your mouth back to his cock.Â
âTap me twice if you want to stop.âÂ
Much to his surprise, you took him in at a whole new depth, making him throw his head back in pleasure as he held your head down, dick getting squeezed down your throat. At the same time the man behind you decided to pay attention to your clit, making you tremble at the combined sensation but there was nothing you could do - you were at the mercy of both men.Â
As Soonyoung loosened his grip, allowing you draw back, you barely had the time to catch a breath before he was fucking his dick into your mouth, at the same speed Minghao was ravaging you from behind.Â
âFuck fuck fuck.â Soonyoung groaned as his movements got sloppy and his grip tight.Â
âFuck I'm gonna come.âÂ
Oh fucking finally.Â
But to your complete surprise, you felt Minghao's weight press against your back as he leaned over you, hips not stopping their abuse on your hole, whispering,Â
âEnough.âÂ
Although you knew it was cruel, you immediately tapped Soonyoungâs thigh and the moment he let you go confused, you pulled away, looking at him guiltily as you got on all fours.
âThat's my good girl.â
âXu Mingao.â Soonyoung groaned as the other man drew back. âWhat the hell?!âÂ
Minghao simply chuckled. âYou know how much I enjoy pain.â
âSadist.â Soonyoung mumbled, trying to push himself to the edge again, pumping his length slick with your spit, hard and fast.Â
âOh no.â Minghao shook his head, continuing to fuck the living daylights out of you. âIf you cum I'm not letting you get a taste of this.â
âThat's for Y/n to tell.âÂ
âTell him doll.âÂ
You didn't know how he expected you to answer as he rolled his hips against your ass, hitting all the spots.
âTell him what you want.âÂ
âDon't youâŚâ You moaned as Minghao tightened his grip on you painfully. âDon't you want to cum inside me?â
Muttering under his breath, Soonyoung looked at you with eyes filled with lust. You could tell he was leaning to kiss you, but suddenly Minghao's hand wrapped around your neck, drawing you away.Â
Sitting on his ankles, he pulled you back till your thighs rested on him and stripped you of your shirt, baring your body to Soonyoung like a mannequin on display.Â
âDidn't you say you could watch her all day?â He smirked at the older man, hand snaking around your waist. âNow watch.âÂ
You finally seem to understand where the shift in intentions was coming from as he began snapping his hips up into you. Though he wasn't hitting you as deep, his fingers found your clit again and was tightening that knot in you unbelievably fast, your body growing hot and tense.Â
It was the sound of Soonyoungâs soft sigh that brought you attention back to him as he watched where Minghao disappeared into you with unwavering eyes, fully discarding his pants. When you let out another unholy moan, he looked up, not before his eyes lingered at your tits, his tongue running along his lower lip ravenously. At the sight of him and with Minghao hitting that spot once again, you finally convulsed around him, your orgasm hitting you with an intensity it never had before. Under your grip as tight as a vice, Minghao swore in your ear as he came too, ropes of his release painting your insides.Â
It was only when his warmth hit your walls that you realised he had not worn a condom and you had not cared.
Before you could justify to yourself that Demigods probably didn't get STDs and it didn't matter, Minghao pulled himself out, depriving you of his girth to clamp around. With a swift movement that was all a blur to you, he manhandled you around till you felt your back aligning against Soonyoungâs chest, the latter spreading your legs apart, the mixed releases leaking out of you, onto his dick.Â
âJust a little longer.â Minghao tilted your head up by the chin, face hovering over yours. âBe a doll will you?â
You nodded as Soonyoung slipped himself into you with a groan.Â
âFuck I don't think I'm going to last long enough anyways.âÂ
Considering you still hadn't even fully come down from your orgasm yet, Soonyoung's intrusion felt like an intense surge of pleasure shooting up your being. Overwhelmingly, in less than a thrust or two, you found yourself cumming again almost immediately, walls fluttering, tightening around him.Â
Muttering a string of fucks, Soonyoung bit down on your shoulder, his hips moving erratically as he felt himself nearing his high. Cooing into his ear though his thrusts were starting to get painful given your sensitivity, you rolled your hips and with two sharp jerks, Soonyoung finally emptied his load straight into you, cumming copiously.Â
As he softly held you against him, letting your breaths slowly become regular again, your vision finally cleared and you caught sight of a half naked Minghao before you, watching you snuggled in the arms of his friend. Your eyes ran down, finally catching sight of the dick that had been inside you, lips curling into a small smile.Â
âGood?âÂ
He asked, scanning your features as he slid off the bed.
âSo good.â You muttered, beckoning him with your hand.Â
Narrowing his eyes confused, he walked around, picking up all the clothes tossed around before he neared you. Pulling him closer to the edge of the bed by the hand, you wrapped your hand around his dick, leaning over to take it in your mouth. As you licked it clean, tasting your mixed releases along his length, you watched his eyes darken.Â
âJust wanted to be fair.âÂ
âYou're not satiated are you?â He smirked amused as you slowly shook your head. âCareful doll, you won't be able to stay conscious through another round with us.âÂ
âI know..â You muttered, snuggling back into Soonyoungâs chest. âIâm tired. Wanna go back.âÂ
âLet's clean you and get you dressed first.â Soonyoung patted your head softly, unwilling to move as your eyes began fluttering shut. âHao, open that third drawer under the sink, there's washcloths in there.âÂ
âAnd how do you know that?âÂ
âThis is my gir- ex girfriend's room.â Soonyoung muttered.Â
That information seemed to surprise even Minghao who was usually quite unfazed. âYou're crazy Kwon.âÂ
He voiced your thoughts as he disappeared into the bathroom, shaking his head. Within seconds he returned, handing a white towel to Soonyoung who slowly wiped you clean, trying not to brush any sensitive areas.
Just as he finished and his lips softly pressed against your temple asking you not to fall asleep, the sound of a knock resounded in the room, along with a voice.
âAnyone from Camp Seventeen here?âÂ
âYes.â Minghao frowned in response.
âSomeone is here looking for your team. Says it's code yellow.âÂ
You watched as the boys shared looks, panicked. Slowly pulling himself away from you, Soonyoung caught the clothes Minghao threw to him, the two of them moving quickly to dress themselves.Pulling your hair into a neat ponytail again and trying to ignore your aching body, you swung your legs off the bed.
âWhatâs going on?âÂ
âGet dressed.â Minghao handed you your clothes, looking tense. âWhen a team member calls a code, it means everyone needs to gather immediately.âÂ
 You nodded, half understanding as you began to dress yourself. âBut what's code yellow?âÂ
Looking at your shivering self, Minghao threw you his hoodie, which you slipped on, letting it envelop you in its warmth.Â
âYellow is a moderate danger alert.â Soonyoung held the door open for you as Minghao stepped out. âIt most likely means the camp is under attack.â
Oh fuck.Â
Pushing through the crowd, you followed the boys downstairs, trying not to lose them in their hurry. Noticing you lagging behind thanks to the fact that you were struggling to walk, Soonyoung grabbed your hand, wrapping his hand around your wrist.Â
From the corner of your eye, you saw Seokmin and Joshua laughing away with a group of girls but before you could call them along, you were dragged away in the urgency of the boys you were with. As you reached the front door, coming to a halt right behind Minghao, your eyes fell on the familiar back of a man leaning against the frame.Â
Oh no.
âChief.âÂ
Seungcheol turned as both boys bowed, greeting him.Â
You simply stared wordlessly, as the blonde man's eyes found you, flickering from the jacket you had donned, to Soonyoung's hand which was still holding yours.Â
Behind him lightning cracked opened the sky and rain began pouring furiously.Â

a/n - please send me your thoughts - this series is waaaay out of my comfort zone, I need to know I'm not completely messing shit up and if I missed you in the taglist, please lmk! Also please be patient for chapter 3 - I have to temporarily shift focus to my other stories as well, I will be back here soon!